Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n antichrist_n bishop_n pope_n 2,756 5 6.3473 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A46359 The accomplishment of the Scripture prophecies, or, The approaching deliverance of the church proving that the papacy is the antichristian kingdom ... that the present persecution may end in three years and-half, after which the destruction of Antichrist shall begin, which shall be finisht in the beginning of the next age, and then the kingdom of Christ shall come upon earth / written in French by Mr. Peter Jurieu ... ; in two parts ; faithfully Englished from the new French edition, corrected and enlarged by almost a third part, with the explication of the visions of Daniel and the Revelation.; Accomplissement des prophéties. English Jurieu, Pierre, 1637-1713. 1687 (1687) Wing J1196; ESTC R6542 384,320 621

There are 63 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

increase_n of_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n it_o be_v know_v this_o papal_a tyranny_n have_v its_o degree_n since_o leo_n the_o first_o that_o sit_v in_o that_o see_v in_o the_o year_n 450_o to_o gregory_n the_o great_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n endeavour_v to_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o a_o superiority_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o yet_o however_o without_o desire_v to_o be_v call_v ecumenical_a bishop_n after_o gregory_n the_o first_o to_z gregory_z the_o seven_o the_o pope_n call_v themselves_o universal_a bishop_n but_o without_o style_v themselves_o sovereign_n and_o master_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n this_o gregory_n be_v the_o first_o that_o endeavour_v to_o depose_v emperor_n and_o king_n this_o be_v antichrist_n perfect_v those_o also_o that_o do_v not_o know_v he_o when_o he_o be_v yet_o in_o his_o first_o period_n do_v know_v he_o when_o he_o arrive_v to_o this_o we_o have_v many_o testimony_n of_o the_o german_a bishop_n of_o that_o time_n who_o profess_v that_o this_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o his_o successor_n be_v antichrist_n chap._n vi_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n re-establisht_a in_o their_o order_n a_o explication_n of_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n principle_n for_o the_o right_a understanding_n the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n divers_a interpretation_n give_v of_o it_o and_o their_o visible_a fault_n after_o have_v see_v the_o time_n in_o which_o the_o fall_n and_o last_o ruin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v happen_v it_o be_v time_n to_o see_v the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o fall_n and_o i_o be_o very_a well_o satisfy_v that_o therein_o we_o shall_v find_v what_o will_v confirm_v that_o which_o we_o have_v affirm_v touch_v the_o approach_a end_n of_o antichristianism_n i_o pretend_v to_o improve_v my_o conjecture_n to_o a_o kind_n of_o demonstration_n by_o the_o full_a agreement_n there_o be_v between_o my_o hypothesis_n and_o the_o prophecy_n the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o 11_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o and_o 19_o chapter_n it_o be_v certain_o that_o part_n of_o the_o revelation_n that_o have_v be_v least_o understand_v i_o mean_v as_o to_o what_o respect_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n for_o as_o for_o the_o character_n of_o that_o empire_n which_o be_v also_o contain_v in_o those_o chapter_n they_o have_v be_v well_o enough_o apprehend_v but_o as_o to_o the_o fall_n of_o that_o empire_n the_o time_n and_o progress_n of_o that_o fall_n god_n will_v not_o let_v man_n hitherto_o be_v so_o happy_a in_o their_o conjecture_n i_o hope_v that_o in_o what_o i_o shall_v now_o say_v something_o shall_v be_v meet_v with_o that_o shall_v much_o more_o bear_v upon_o it_o the_o character_n of_o truth_n vision_n divers_a circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n which_o the_o h._n spirit_n have_v not_o please_v to_o put_v into_o one_o vision_n the_o h._n spirit_n be_v so_o often_o repeat_v the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o its_o empire_n be_v not_o only_o to_o give_v we_o a_o perfect_a certainty_n of_o the_o event_n it_o be_v principal_o to_o mark_v out_o unto_o we_o that_o fall_v by_o divers_a circumstance_n but_o it_o have_v not_o please_v god_n to_o give_v we_o all_o these_o circumstance_n in_o one_o vision_n that_o so_o the_o prophecy_n may_v not_o be_v too_o plain_a for_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o intention_n of_o god_n to_o inform_v we_o clear_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v with_o respect_n to_o their_o circumstance_n but_o only_o as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o thing_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v the_o substance_n that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o support_v the_o hope_n of_o the_o church_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o obsecurity_n in_o the_o prophecy_n with_o respect_n to_o this_o no_o more_o than_o there_o be_v in_o the_o prophecy_n concern_v the_o messiah_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o and_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o come_n but_o there_o be_v much_o as_o to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o come_n therefore_o obscure_a god_n have_v misplace_v the_o circumstance_n in_o the_o vision_n that_o they_o may_v be_v obscure_a because_o god_n be_v willing_a that_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v obscure_a he_o have_v for_o this_o reason_n divide_v they_o into_o several_a vision_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o be_v that_o he_o may_v put_v a_o venerable_a veil_n upon_o that_o which_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a that_o we_o shall_v know_v before_o the_o time_n he_o have_v not_o place_v the_o circumstance_n exact_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o their_o come_n to_o pass_v the_o vision_n which_o march_v fore-most_a contain_v thing_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v till_o afterward_o and_o the_o vision_n which_o follow_v contain_v thing_n which_o ought_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v before_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v place_v these_o adorable_a obscurity_n in_o such_o a_o light_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o pierce_v into_o they_o we_o must_v bring_v thing_n into_o their_o natural_a order_n and_o explain_v the_o vision_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o those_o event_n which_o they_o foretell_v in_o do_v this_o we_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o 16_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n which_o contain_v the_o admirable_a vision_n of_o the_o seven_o viol_n which_o be_v the_o seven_o period_n through_o which_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n ought_v to_o pass_v to_o come_v to_o its_o fall_n lesser_a god_n do_v ordinary_o prepare_v for_o great_a vision_n by_o lesser_a the_o fifteen_o chapter_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o preparation_n for_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o sixteenth_o where_o be_v the_o seven_o last_o plague_n as_o the_o twelve_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o 14_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o preparation_n unto_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o vintage_n which_o be_v very_o evident_a from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 15_o chapter_n which_o be_v and_o i_o see_v another_o sign_n in_o heaven_n great_a and_o marvellous_a seven_o angel_n have_v the_o seven_o last_o plague_n as_o a_o preparation_n unto_o the_o vision_n of_o these_o seven_o last_o plague_n god_n do_v make_v the_o prophet_n see_v a_o sea_n of_o glass_n or_o of_o crystal_n mingle_v with_o fire_n that_o be_v a_o sea_n where_o ice_n and_o fire_n be_v mingle_v and_o they_o that_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n and_o over_o his_o image_n that_o be_v they_o that_o have_v escape_v his_o corruption_n and_o idolatry_n stand_v upon_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n or_o of_o ice_n and_o they_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o song_n of_o the_o lamb_n great_a and_o marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n it_o be_v clear_a persecution_n a_o lively_a image_n of_o those_o who_o escape_v the_o corruption_n of_o popery_n &_o its_o persecution_n that_o the_o prophet_n do_v make_v a_o allusion_n unto_o the_o passage_n through_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n who_o be_v get_v upon_o the_o shore_n of_o that_o sea_n sing_v the_o song_n which_o moses_n compose_v for_o they_o the_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n answer_n to_o the_o red_a sea_n they_o who_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o beast_n answer_v to_o the_o israelite_n who_o have_v overcome_v the_o egyptian_n egypt_n out_o of_o which_o the_o israelite_n march_v answer_v to_o this_o antichristian_a empire_n out_o of_o which_o the_o elect_n do_v escape_v therefore_o as_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o its_o wave_n be_v the_o danger_n out_o of_o which_o the_o israelite_n come_v out_o of_o egypt_n be_v deliver_v so_o this_o sea_n of_o glass_n mingle_v with_o fire_n represent_v the_o evil_n which_o the_o faithful_a who_o leave_n babylon_n do_v escape_v these_o evil_n be_v call_v a_o sea_n on_o the_o account_n of_o their_o greatness_n and_o bitterness_n my_o breach_n be_v great_a like_o the_o sea_n say_v jeremy_n they_o be_v call_v a_o sea_n of_o glass_n or_o a_o sea_n of_o ice_n because_o of_o their_o hardness_n it_o be_v more_o easy_a to_o escape_v out_o of_o a_o sea_n of_o water_n because_o the_o liquidity_n of_o water_n do_v make_v it_o possible_a to_o swim_v through_o they_o but_o if_o a_o sea_n be_v glass_n or_o ice_n it_o will_v be_v impossible_a to_o get_v out_o of_o it_o there_o be_v also_o fire_n mingle_v with_o glass_n to_o represent_v the_o burn_a and_o extreme_a dolour_n of_o those_o evil_n fire_n and_o ice_n be_v two_o extreme_n in_o evil_a yet_o they_o be_v join_v in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o seem_v inconsistent_a if_o it_o be_v a_o sea_n of_o ice_n there_o can_v be_v fire_n there_o and_o if_o
the_o h._n scripture_n use_v such_o high_a word_n to_o describe_v the_o popish_a idolatry_n and_o high_a than_o those_o it_o make_v use_v of_o to_o describe_v the_o pagan_a idolatry_n pag._n 183_o chap._n xx._n the_o deceive_a spirit_n which_o st._n paul_n speak_v of_o be_v evil_a spirit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n be_v that_o doctrine_n that_o have_v daemon_n for_o its_o object_n and_o not_o that_o which_o have_v daemon_n for_o its_o author_n there_o be_v a_o perfect_a conformity_n between_o the_o theology_n and_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o heathen_n about_o daemon_n and_o that_o of_o the_o papism_n about_o saint_n and_o angel_n mediatory_a spirit_n pag._n 199_o chap._n xxi_o what_o be_v the_o character_n of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o establish_v idolatry_n in_o the_o christian_a religion_n they_o be_v priest_n and_o monk_n author_n of_o the_o law_n of_o celibacy_n and_o of_o fast_n how_o many_o fable_n and_o fiction_n have_v be_v invent_v by_o these_o man_n sear_v in_o their_o conscience_n pag._n 215_o chap._n xxii_o the_o character_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o papism_n confirm_v by_o the_o great_a type_n of_o antichrist_n antiochus_n epiphanes_n that_o which_o be_v speak_v literal_o of_o this_o antiochus_n agree_v mystical_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o papism_n pag._n 228_o chap._n xxiii_o a_o notable_a prophecy_n of_o the_o mahuzim_n that_o antichrist_n be_v to_o worship_n the_o whole_a find_v admirable_o accomplish_v in_o the_o papism_n what_o be_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o prophecy_n with_o respect_n to_o antiochus_n a_o explication_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 12_o chap._n of_o daniel_n apply_v to_o antiochus_n and_o the_o papism_n pag._n 241_o chap._n xxiv_o in_o which_o be_v gather_v together_o 35._o character_n of_o antichrist_n that_o perfect_o agree_v to_o the_o papism_n and_o can_v agree_v to_o any_o but_o it_o pag._n 255_o chap._n xxv_o how_o antichrist_n come_v to_o be_v mistake_v be_v so_o well_o characterise_v in_o the_o prophecy_n a_o comparison_n of_o i._o christ_n and_o antichrist_n in_o the_o accidental_a circumstance_n of_o their_o come_n pag._n 263_o the_o table_n of_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o part._n chap._n i._n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n a_o refutation_n of_o that_o dream_n that_o it_o must_v last_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a ten_o argument_n which_o demonstrate_v that_o that_o supposition_n be_v false_a and_o impossible_a pag._n 3_o chap._n ii_o the_o last_o argument_n against_o the_o chimaera_n of_o three_o year_n and_o half_a take_v from_o the_o time_n during_o which_o the_o temple_n be_v profane_v by_o antiochus_n four_o quite_o different_a time_n set_v down_o for_o that_o in_o daniel_n prophecy_n a_o explication_n and_o a_o reconcile_n of_o those_o four_o time_n a_o application_n of_o these_o four_o time_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o that_o kingdom_n pag._n 17_o chap._n iii_o what_o the_o last_o time_n be_v it_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n there_o be_v many_o time_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n and_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o world._n if_o antichrist_n must_v reign_v 1260_o year_n he_o be_v come_v mahometanism_n be_v not_o antichristianism_n pag._n 29_o chap._n iu_o some_o principle_n to_o discover_v when_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n begin_v and_o when_o it_o must_v end_v three_o character_n of_o that_o empire_n idolatry_n pride_n and_o corruption_n that_o these_o three_o character_n begin_v to_o appear_v in_o the_o four_o age_n and_o do_v infinite_o increase_v in_o the_o five_o pag._n 38_o chap._n v._o that_o we_o must_v look_v for_o the_o point_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o antichristianism_n in_o the_o five_o age._n it_o must_v end_v about_o the_o year_n 1710_o or_o 1715._o pag._n 48_o chap._n vi_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n re-establisht_a in_o their_o order_n a_o explication_n of_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n principle_n for_o the_o right_a understanding_n the_o sixteenth_o chapter_n divers_a interpretation_n give_v of_o it_o and_o their_o visible_a fault_n pag._n 62_o chap._n vii_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o three_o first_o viol_n and_o the_o three_o first_o plagve_n pag._n 78_o chap._n viii_o the_o four_o plague_n the_o increase_n of_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n denote_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n which_o have_v almost_o utter_o ruin_v the_o world_n and_o the_o church_n the_o five_o plague_n be_v the_o desolation_n of_o rome_n when_o the_o pope_n retreat_v to_o avignon_n and_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n by_o the_o grand_a schism_n of_o the_o west_n pag._n 87_o chap._n ix_o the_o six_o plague_n be_v the_o turk_n who_o pass_v over_o the_o bosphorus_n and_o invade_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a empire_n the_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n which_o come_v out_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v the_o papal_a law_n arm_v with_o excommunication_n pag._n 97_o chap._n x._o the_o seven_o plague_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o luther_n and_o other_o reformer_n by_o which_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n papist_n lutheran_n and_o reform_v pag._n 216_o chap._n xi_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o 14_o chapter_n the_o vision_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n the_o harvest_n of_o the_o reformation_n make_v in_o the_o age_n last_o pass_v the_o vintage_n be_v the_o reformation_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v this_o present_a age_n pag._n 224_o chap._n xii_o the_o explication_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o 11_o chapter_n where_o the_o last_o persecution_n make_v by_o antichrist_n be_v foretold_v which_o be_v the_o present_a persecution_n in_o france_n the_o death_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n who_o shall_v not_o be_v bury_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o succour_n bring_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o france_n pag._n 236_o chap._n xiii_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n the_o reformation_n shall_v within_o a_o few_o year_n rise_v again_o in_o france_n after_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v establish_v by_o royal_a authority_n france_z shall_v renounce_v popery_n and_o that_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v convert_v pag._n 251_o chap._n fourteen_o observation_n upon_o the_o 17_o 18_o 19_o chapt._n of_o the_o revelation_n concern_v the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n a_o brief_a methodize_n of_o the_o event_n which_o the_o h._n ghost_n have_v displace_v in_o the_o vision_n pag._n 270_o chap._n xv._o the_o reason_n why_o in_o this_o work_n we_o speak_v of_o some_o thing_n so_o positive_o the_o link_a together_o of_o our_o principle_n suffer_v we_o not_o to_o doubt_v that_o we_o now_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o papacy_n pag._n 277_o chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o thousand_o year_n reign_n that_o in_o all_o the_o past_a time_n there_o be_v not_o a_o time_n to_o be_v find_v wherein_o satan_n have_v be_v bind_v four_o head_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o reign_n the_o first_o be_v the_o five_o monarchy_n so_o plain_o promise_v to_o the_o saint_n pag._n 285_o chap._n xvii_o the_o second_o spring_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o thousand_o year_n reign_n be_v the_o reign_n promise_v to_o the_o jew_n the_o promise_v make_v to_o they_o have_v not_o be_v fulfil_v but_o must_v be_v the_o conversion_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v a_o type_n of_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a nation_n pag._n 294_o chap._n xviii_o the_o three_o head_n of_o argument_n for_o the_o future_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n so_o many_o prophecy_n which_o concern_v the_o complete_a victory_n of_o i._o christ_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o perfect_a prosperity_n which_o have_v never_o yet_o be_v accomplish_v pag._n 312_o chap._n xix_o the_o four_o head_n of_o argument_n for_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v the_o type_n four_o type_n of_o this_o period_n the_o principal_a be_v the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o be_v not_o a_o immediate_a type_n of_o eternal_a rest_n but_o of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n pag._n 321_o chap._n xx._n the_o type_n of_o the_o creation_n have_v not_o be_v well_o explain_v we_o must_v make_v a_o system_fw-la of_o it_o principle_n to_o establish_v that_o system_n the_o division_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n into_o seven_o period_n answer_v to_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n pag._n 326_o chap._n xxi_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n signify_v by_o the_o chaos_n by_o the_o creation_n of_o light_n by_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o water_n and_o by_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o plant_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o the_o three_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 334_o chap._n xxii_o explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o four_o last_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n pag._n 345_o chap._n xxiii_o a_o far_a confirmation_n
first_o forbes_n will_v have_v this_o be_v that_o period_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o reform_v herself_o &_o in_o which_o the_o good_a separate_v from_o the_o evil_n i_o e._n the_o church_n from_o the_o albigenses_n to_o luther_n time_n now_o i_o leave_v every_o wise_a man_n to_o judge_v if_o a_o small_a number_n of_o albigenses_n &_o waldenses_n that_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o that_o endure_v so_o short_a a_o time_n can_v deserve_v from_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n so_o general_o corrupt_v the_o fair_a of_o all_o the_o praise_n that_o the_o h._n spirit_n give_v to_o the_o seven_o church_n thou_o suffer_v that_o woman_n jezabel_n that_o call_v herself_o a_o prophetess_n to_o teach_v &_o to_o seduce_v my_o servant_n to_o commit_v fornication_n this_o jezabel_n i_o confess_v very_o much_o resemble_v the_o antichristian_a church_n but_o why_o shall_v the_o albigenses_n be_v blame_v for_o suffer_v the_o roman_a church_n how_o can_v they_o destroy_v it_o who_o be_v so_o weak_a do_v they_o not_o cry_v out_o upon_o she_o as_o babylon_n as_o much_o as_o they_o be_v able_a sardis_n be_v the_o five_o church_n to_o which_o the_o h._n spirit_n write_v &_o according_a to_o forbes_n it_o be_v the_o reform_a church_n in_o which_o neither_o jezabel_n nor_o balaam_n nor_o the_o pope_n nor_o popery_n be_v any_o long_o tolerate_v because_o she_o break_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o why_o will_v we_o have_v the_o age_n of_o our_o reformation_n since_o luther_n to_o be_v brand_v with_o so_o black_a &_o fatal_a a_o character_n thou_o have_v a_o name_n to_o live_v but_o be_v dead_a be_v watchful_a &_o strengthen_v the_o thing_n which_o remain_v &_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v for_o i_o have_v not_o find_v thy_o work_n perfect_a before_o god._n i_o think_v our_o reformation_n deserve_v at_o least_o as_o much_o praise_n as_o that_o of_o the_o albigenses_n the_o zeal_n thereof_o be_v great_a &_o the_o doctrine_n pure_a philadelphia_n be_v the_o six_o church_n &_o signify_v according_a to_o forbes_n the_o church_n that_o shall_v carry_v the_o reformation_n to_o its_o great_a height_n that_o shall_v have_v but_o a_o small_a number_n of_o member_n but_o they_o shall_v be_v very_o zealous_a laodicea_n be_v the_o last_o church_n or_o the_o last_o period_n the_o holy_a spirit_n terrible_o blame_v it_o thou_o be_v neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a thou_o say_v i_o be_o rich_a &_o have_v need_n of_o nothing_o etc._n etc._n &_o do_v not_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v wretched_a &_o miserable_a &_o poor_a &_o blind_a &_o naked_a according_a to_o forbes_n this_o be_v those_o church_n that_o make_v all_o their_o glory_n to_o consist_v in_o their_o have_v quit_v babylon_n do_v fall_v back_o &_o make_v religion_n to_o consist_v in_o nothing_o but_o duty_n pure_o external_a this_o last_o period_n must_v be_v place_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n thus_o you_o have_v forbes's_fw-fr system_fw-la let_v we_o proceed_v to_o that_o of_o cocceius_n according_a to_o this_o late_a author_n the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v the_o apostolical_a church_n i._n e._n that_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n preach_v cocceius_n the_o explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n according_a to_o cocceius_n so_o that_o this_o period_n must_v be_v extend_v to_o the_o death_n of_o st._n john._n the_o nicolaitan_n speak_v of_o in_o this_o first_o epistle_n be_v heretic_n in_o general_n nicolaos_n in_o greek_a signify_v the_o conqueror_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v the_o character_n of_o heretic_n to_o make_v themselves_o master_n of_o the_o people_n by_o seduce_v they_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n signify_v the_o church_n suffer_v in_o all_o place_n &_o especial_o that_o of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n the_o persecution_n of_o ten_o day_n according_a to_o this_o must_v signify_v the_o ten_o persecution_n which_o the_o church_n suffer_v during_o those_o three_o age_n under_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n this_o do_v not_o fall_v out_o ill_a but_o i_o fear_v it_o be_v chance_v that_o make_v this_o hit_n for_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n the_o holy_a spirit_n say_v some_o of_o you_o shall_v be_v cast_v into_o prison_n that_o you_o may_v be_v try_v this_o be_v very_o feeble_o to_o express_v the_o great_a number_n of_o martyr_n and_o the_o cruel_a suffering_n to_o which_o the_o church_n be_v expose_v during_o these_o three_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v much_o more_o probable_a that_o this_o signify_v some_o light_a persecution_n that_o be_v to_o befall_v smyrna_n in_o which_o persecution_n the_o evil_n shall_v not_o go_v beyond_o the_o imprison_a some_o particular_a person_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n be_v the_o three_o &_o according_a to_o cocceius_n it_o be_v the_o church_n from_o constantine_n time_n to_o the_o birth_n of_o antichrist_n pergamus_n be_v the_o name_n of_o a_o famous_a fortress_n of_o troy._n rome_n signify_v strength_n or_o fortress_n it_o be_v in_o rome_n that_o satan_n seat_n be_v but_o why_o shall_v the_o seat_n of_o satan_n be_v fix_v in_o rome_n convert_v by_o constantine_n it_o have_v be_v much_o better_a to_o have_v fix_v it_o in_o rome_n pagan_a or_o to_o reserve_v it_o for_o rome_n antichristian_a that_o be_v to_o follow_v immediate_o after_o antipas_n the_o martyr_n signify_v say_v he_o the_o orthodox_n that_o maintain_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son._n antipas_n for_o antipatros_n &_o antipatros_n for_o isopatros_fw-la equal_a to_o the_o father_n i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v hereupon_o but_o it_o do_v not_o please_v i_o every_o well_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n be_v the_o four_o &_o signify_v according_a to_o cocceius_n the_o church_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n jezabel_n that_o appear_v in_o this_o epistle_n be_v the_o antichristian_a church_n they_o that_o suffer_v jezabel_n the_o prophetess_n be_v the_o elect_v mingle_v among_o the_o antichristian_a idolater_n that_o sickness_n that_o god_n will_v send_v on_o jezabel_n in_o cast_v she_o on_o her_o bed_n be_v those_o mortification_n which_o antichristianism_n be_v to_o receive_v by_o the_o several_a disaster_n that_o befall_v the_o roman_a church_n till_o the_o reformation_n this_o fall_v out_o pretty_a well_o but_o it_o be_v by_o mere_a chance_n for_o how_o can_v that_o magnificent_a elegy_n be_v apply_v to_o this_o period_n of_o the_o antichristian_a church_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n &_o thy_o charity_n &_o thy_o patience_n &_o that_o thy_o last_o work_n be_v more_o than_o the_o first_o never_o be_v the_o church_n so_o void_a of_o saint_n &_o of_o good_a work_n as_o in_o this_o sad_a period_n sardis_n be_v the_o five_o church_n &_o the_o five_o period_n &_o according_a to_o cocceius_n as_o well_o as_o according_a to_o forbes_n it_o be_v the_o reform_a church_n but_o i_o say_v hereto_o as_o i_o say_v before_o on_o occasion_n of_o forbes_n why_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o our_o reformation_n thou_o have_v a_o name_n to_o live_v &_o behold_v thou_o be_v dead_a strengthen_v the_o thing_n which_o remain_v &_o be_v ready_a to_o die_v philadelphia_n signify_v brotherly_a love_n this_o be_v the_o six_o church_n which_o carry_v in_o its_o name_n the_o character_n of_o a_o church_n yet_o to_o come_v wherein_o love_n and_o charity_n shall_v reign_v but_o among_o a_o very_a small_a number_n of_o people_n this_o church_n shall_v be_v persecute_v attempt_n will_v be_v make_v to_o shut_v the_o door_n against_o its_o conversion_n yet_o after_o this_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o it_o this_o be_v in_o after_o age_n so_o that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v about_o it_o laodicea_n signify_v the_o church_n that_o shall_v immediate_o precede_v the_o time_n wherein_o god_n shall_v pass_v that_o judgement_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o 11_o ch_n v._o 18._o i._n e._n when_o the_o reign_n of_o j._n christ_n shall_v come_v to_o be_v establish_v on_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o immediate_o before_o the_o kingdom_n of_o j._n christ_n come_v on_o the_o earth_n the_o church_n must_v fall_v into_o that_o dreadful_a decay_n mean_v by_o these_o word_n thou_o be_v neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a thou_o be_v poor_a blind_a &_o naked_a i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v how_o all_o this_o hang_v together_o the_o church_n o●_n philadelphia_n which_o be_v the_o six_o after_o it_o have_v be_v persecute_v shall_v remain_v victorious_a over_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o signify_v that_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v convert_v see_v here_o the_o reign_n of_o j._n christ_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o after_o this_o come_v a_o seven_o period_n wherein_o religion_n shall_v almost_o entire_o perish_v before_o the_o kingdom_n of_o j._n christ_n come_v on_o
the_o earth_n 11._o v._o 11._o and_o he_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o a_o lamb_n and_o he_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n hoth_n the_o second_o beast_n have_v two_o hoth_n in_o the_o foregoing_a vision_n the_o holy_a spirit_n represent_v the_o four_o monarchy_n in_o its_o two_o period_n and_o its_o whole_a extent_n by_o only_a one_o beast_n we_o have_v see_v more-than_a once_o that_o this_o monarchy_n have_v two_o period_n very_o near_o of_o the_o same_o duration_n the_o first_o be_v from_o the_o birth_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o imperial_a dignity_n and_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n into_o ten_o kingdom_n the_o second_o from_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o imperial_a dignity_n to_o the_o entire_a ruin_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v this_o second_o period_n which_o the_o prophet_n here_o represent_v under_o the_o image_n of_o a_o second_o beast_n it_o be_v another_o beast_n because_o it_o be_v another_o name_n another_o sort_n of_o empire_n a_o empire_n hide_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n that_o begin_v again_o all_o anew_o as_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n in_o its_o birth_n be_v little_a insensible_a a_o small_a matter_n in_o a_o word_n during_o two_o or_o three_o age_n so_o this_o new_a roman_a empire_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v forth_o again_o be_v to_o commence_v also_o from_o weak_a beginning_n and_o to_o be_v but_o a_o very_a little_a thing_n for_o some_o age_n as_o this_o late_a period_n of_o the_o four_o monarch_n be_v to_o last_o as_o long_o as_o the_o other_o and_o be_v to_o have_v a_o form_n whole_o different_a from_o it_o it_o deserve_v to_o be_v call_v another_o beast_n this_o second_o beast_n ascend_v out_o the_o earth_n and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o sea._n it_o be_v the_o same_o beast_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n that_o it_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o hell._n the_o one_o hinder_v not_o the_o other_o the_o papism_n come_v from_o hell_n but_o not_o by_o the_o same_o mean_n as_o the_o first_o beast_n do_v these_o two_o empire_n come_v not_o from_o the_o same_o place_n the_o first_o empire_n spring_v from_o the_o people_n and_o their_o ambition_n the_o second_o empire_n proceed_v from_o the_o clergy_n and_o their_o ambition_n it_o spring_v from_o the_o earth_n as_o a_o plant_n that_o shoot_v out_o small_a and_o become_v great_a insensible_o without_o effusion_n of_o blood_n and_o without_o spoil_n he_o have_v two_o horn_n like_o a_o lamb._n the_o roman_a church_n call_v herself_o the_o spouse_n of_o the_o lamb_n usurp_v his_o power_n the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v always_o in_o her_o mouth_n and_o if_o she_o may_v be_v believe_v she_o do_v but_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o have_v be_v lawful_o confer_v upon_o she_o jesus_n christ_n have_v two_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n all_o power_n be_v give_v i_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n say_v he_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o herself_o she_o ascribe_v to_o herself_o the_o temporal_a power_n and_o the_o spiritual_a one_o he_o speak_v as_o a_o dragon_n for_o he_o utter_v blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o terrible_a threaten_n against_o his_o child_n and_o he_o exercise_v all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o first_o beast_n before_o he_o 12._o v._o 12._o the_o papism_n have_v re-establisht_a all_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a emperor_n the_o roman_a church_n cause_v herself_o to_o be_v serve_v by_o king_n she_o take_v away_o their_o demeauss_n she_o dispose_v of_o their_o crown_n she_o draw_v tribute_n from_o they_o and_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n in_o all_o their_o state_n the_o first_o beast_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o roman_a pagan_a empire_n do_v no_o more_o in_o the_o country_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o it_o and_o cause_v the_o earth_n and_o they_o which_o dwell_v therein_o to_o worship_v the_o first_o beast_n raise_v up_o in_o herself_o the_o power_n of_o the_o ancient_a empire_n she_o make_v that_o ancient_a empire_n be_v raise_v up_o again_o under_o a_o new_a name_n viz._n that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v adore_v and_o serve_v 13._o v._o 13._o and_o he_o do_v great_a wonder_n so_o that_o he_o make_v fire_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n on_o earth_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o observe_v and_o prove_v several_a time_n hereafter_o as_o we_o have_v already_o do_v before_o that_o in_o the_o style_n of_o the_o prophet_n heaven_n when_o a_o estate_n and_o a_o empire_n be_v treat_v of_o always_o signify_v the_o sovereign_a region_n of_o those_o dignity_n the_o sun_n be_v the_o sovereign_n the_o star_n be_v the_o grandee_n here_o a_o empire_n a_o state_n be_v treat_v of_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o beast_n the_o sovereign_a region_n of_o that_o state_n be_v the_o heaven_n from_o that_o state_n fall_v fire_n that_o be_v to_o say_v thunders_z it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o this_o be_v what_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o call_v thunder_n and_o thunder_a bull_n it_o be_v those_o decree_n and_o those_o papal_a bull_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v no_o other_o than_o pasteboard_n thunder_v and_o artificial_a firework_n however_o it_o be_v know_v that_o they_o have_v set_v kingdom_n be_v a_o flame_n a_o hundred_o and_o a_o hundred_o time_n and_o have_v may_v time_n think_v to_o set_v all_o europe_n on_o fire_n to_o this_o be_v add_v sign_n that_o be_v to_o say_v prodigy_n of_o pride_n ambition_n madness_n policy_n carnal_a weapon_n and_o other_o mean_n by_o which_o the_o beast_n of_o rome_n have_v use_v to_o establish_v its_o dominion_n and_o subject_a king_n to_o its_o self_n this_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o false_a miracle_n which_o the_o papism_n have_v use_v to_o establish_v itself_o but_o as_o it_o be_v here_o consider_v much_o more_o as_o a_o kingdom_n than_o as_o a_o religion_n by_o these_o sign_n it_o be_v much_o better_a to_o understand_v the_o wicked_a mean_n it_o have_v employ_v to_o establish_v its_o tyranny_n than_o the_o lie_a miracle_n which_o it_o use_v to_o establish_v its_o false_a mystery_n and_o deceive_v they_o which_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o those_o miracle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 14._o v._o 14._o he_o induce_v they_o by_o all_o the_o way_n of_o deceit_n and_o violence_n to_o do_v homage_n to_o he_o and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o his_o dominion_n say_v to_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v a_o image_n to_o the_o beast_n 15._o v._o 15._o and_o he_o have_v power_n to_o give_v life_n unto_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v both_o speak_v and_o cause_n that_o as_o many_o as_o will_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v be_v kill_v this_o here_o be_v a_o admirable_a place_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o empire_n however_o it_o be_v but_o a_o image_n of_o a_o empire_n a_o imaginary_a empire_n found_v only_o on_o the_o deceive_a imagination_n of_o man_n they_o need_v but_o say_v not_o to_o destroy_v this_o empire_n the_o reality_n of_o a_o empire_n consist_v in_o citadel_n in_o fortress_n in_o army_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v none_o of_o all_o this_o for_o the_o little_a army_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v raise_v be_v not_o that_o which_o secure_v his_o empire_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o a_o true_a empire_n the_o convent_v of_o the_o monk_n be_v his_o citadel_n the_o monk_n be_v his_o soldier_n and_o army_n the_o priest_n be_v his_o emissary_n the_o bishop_n and_o arch-bishop_n be_v his_o lieutenanis_fw-la but_o all_o these_o be_v but_o image_n nevertheless_o this_o image_n of_o a_o empire_n speak_v act_n make_v decree_n raise_v all_o europe_n and_o cause_v all_o those_o to_o be_v kill_v that_o will_v not_o pay_v it_o the_o like_a homage_n which_o be_v render_v to_o the_o ancient_a roman_a empire_n and_o he_o cause_v all_o 16._o v._o 16._o both_o small_a and_o great_a etc._n etc._n to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o their_o right_a hand_n or_o in_o their_o forehead_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v buy_v or_o sell_v save_v he_o that_o have_v the_o mark_n or_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o forehead_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o profession_n thence_o it_o come_v that_o ancient_a christian_n signify_v their_o profession_n of_o christianity_n by_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n on_o the_o forehead_n the_o hand_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o action_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n can_v neither_o buy_v nor_o sell_v under_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o papism_n that_o be_v to_o say_v partake_v of_o its_o favour_n and_o its_o riches_n unless_o they_o have_v the_o profession_n of_o a_o papist_n
force_v to_o it_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o relic_n and_o merit_n of_o a_o saint_n a_o blind_a man_n receive_v his_o sight_n by_o put_v a_o cloth_n to_o his_o eye_n that_o have_v touch_v the_o coffin_n of_o the_o martyr_n the_o people_n by_o their_o credulity_n make_v such_o sort_n of_o miracle_n every_o day_n one_o the_o miracle_n be_v false_a one_o st._n austin_n have_v a_o good_a share_n of_o this_o credulity_n but_o though_o it_o be_v true_a the_o devil_n may_v do_v thing_n much_o hard_o than_o this_o of_o restore_a sight_n to_o a_o man_n that_o have_v not_o see_v for_o some_o time_n beside_o god_n that_o be_v willing_a that_o his_o decree_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v let_v loose_v the_o rain_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o illusion_n we_o need_v but_o follow_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o legend_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o there_o we_o shall_v find_v every_o where_o these_o dream_n these_o vision_n these_o apparition_n of_o soul_n saint_n speak_v the_o virgin_n mary_n appear_v to_o her_o devotoe_n the_o whole_a design_v not_o to_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n but_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o virgin_n the_o adoration_n of_o image_n the_o mass_n purgatory_n and_o other_o part_n of_o the_o antichristian_a abomination_n and_o this_o fountain_n of_o seduction_n be_v open_v in_o part_n by_o deceive_a spirit_n among_o man_n wicked_a superstitious_a wretch_n priest_n and_o monk_n in_o part_n by_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n that_o perpetual_o surround_v man_n to_o deceive_v and_o mock_v they_o the_o last_o character_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o antichrist_n here_o express_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n or_o of_o daemon_n give_v up_o themselves_o to_o deceive_a spirit_n and_o to_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n or_o of_o daemon_n what_o they_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n be_v that_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n or_o of_o daemon_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v those_o doctrine_n of_o which_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o author_n and_o inventor_n and_o that_o bear_v upon_o they_o a_o diabolical_a character_n joseph_n mede_n have_v make_v a_o new_a conjecture_n upon_o it_o and_o which_o i_o believe_v we_o owe_v to_o he_o he_o understand_v by_o daemon_n not_o wicked_a spirit_n that_o be_v represent_v as_o dwell_v in_o hell_n but_o those_o spirit_n which_o the_o heathen_n worship_v as_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n who_o in_o truth_n in_o their_o theology_n they_o call_v daemon_n for_o then_o the_o word_n be_v not_o take_v in_o a_o ill_a sense_n and_o daemon_n be_v proper_o in_o the_o heathen_a religion_n secondary_a god_n subject_n to_o the_o great_a gods._n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n he_o understand_v a_o doctrine_n of_o which_o daemon_n be_v the_o object_n not_o the_o author_n and_o according_a to_o he_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o man_n in_o the_o antichristian_a religion_n will_v renew_v the_o divinity_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o these_o mediatory_a spirit_n call_v daemon_n that_o paganism_n shall_v be_v introduce_v into_o the_o religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o therein_o shall_v be_v establish_v a_o second_o order_n of_o divinity_n beside_o the_o three_o adorable_a person_n of_o the_o trinity_n that_o dead_a man_n shall_v be_v invocate_v in_o this_o new_a paganism_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o be_v practise_v under_o the_o old_a that_o their_o relic_n shall_v be_v honour_v statue_n shall_v be_v erect_v to_o they_o image_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v for_o they_o which_o shall_v be_v worship_v that_o temple_n shall_v be_v build_v for_o they_o and_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o their_o honour_n that_o apotheosis_n or_o canonisation_n shall_v be_v renew_v that_o miracle_n shall_v be_v feign_v to_o be_v do_v by_o these_o image_n and_o these_o demigod_n that_o tree_n shall_v a_o new_a be_v set_v up_o with_o trophy_n which_o be_v the_o cross_n before_o which_o man_n shall_v prostrate_v themselves_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v pretend_v that_o god_n come_v to_o dwell_v here_o below_o in_o a_o piece_n of_o consecrate_a bread_n just_a as_o in_o the_o ancient_a paganism_n it_o be_v pretend_v that_o the_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o consecration_n come_v to_o dwell_v in_o their_o image_n author_n popery_n have_v certain_o devil_n for_o its_o author_n which_o interpretation_n soever_o we_o follow_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o antichristianism_n be_v find_v here_o it_o be_v compose_v of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v true_o diabolical_a and_o that_o have_v devil_n for_o their_o author_n it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o have_v establish_v that_o tyrant_n in_o the_o church_n who_o have_v exercise_v so_o much_o fury_n there_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n who_o say_v he_o can_v be_v judge_v by_o any_o one_o but_o though_o he_o shall_v lead_v man_n to_o hell_n by_o troop_n he_o must_v be_v suffer_v to_o do_v it_o and_o be_v leave_v to_o god_n to_o be_v judge_v it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n that_o have_v the_o devil_n for_o its_o author_n which_o set_v up_o other_o object_n of_o worship_n beside_o god_n that_o give_v jesus_n christ_n companion_n and_o believer_n other_o saviour_n it_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o devil_n that_o can_v inspire_v christian_n with_o the_o thought_n of_o adore_a image_n and_o bring_v in_o afresh_o that_o paganism_n that_o be_v once_o bury_v it_o be_v the_o devil_n the_o father_n of_o lie_n that_o form_v that_o monster_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o have_v contrive_v that_o profane_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o who_o of_o a_o sacrament_n have_v make_v a_o wretched_a idol_n of_o it_o and_o so_o to_o keep_v to_o the_o common_a opinion_n the_o true_a religion_n will_v not_o lose_v any_o thing_n by_o it_o object_n by_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n we_o must_v understand_v doctrine_n that_o have_v demigod_n for_o their_o object_n however_o i_o confess_v i_o have_v resolve_v on_o joseph_n mede_n sense_n it_o have_v not_o be_v without_o weigh_v thing_n and_o i_o do_v a_o long_a time_n believe_v that_o this_o interpretation_n be_v much_o more_o ingenious_a than_o solid_a but_o after_o i_o have_v well_o think_v on_o it_o i_o judge_v the_o quite_o contrary_a and_o that_o for_o these_o reason_n i._n first_o this_o expression_n doctrine_n of_o daemon_n do_v not_o more_o natural_o signify_v that_o the_o doctrine_n speak_v of_o have_v daemon_n for_o its_o author_n than_o it_o do_v that_o it_o have_v they_o for_o its_o object_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o all_o language_n these_o sort_n of_o proposition_n be_v aequivocal_a we_o say_v the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o signify_v the_o love_n of_o which_o god_n be_v the_o object_n more_o natural_o than_o to_o signify_v that_o love_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o author_n we_o say_v the_o knowledge_n of_o body_n to_o signify_v that_o knowledge_n of_o which_o body_n be_v the_o object_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o star_n to_o express_v astrology_n a_o treatise_n of_o angel_n to_o express_v a_o book_n not_o make_v by_o the_o angel_n but_o treat_v of_o they_o the_o same_o aequivocal_a speech_n and_o the_o same_o usage_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o sacred_a book_n in_o the_o six_o chapt._n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o baptism_n 6.2_o heb._n 6.2_o i._n e._n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o have_v baptism_n for_o its_o object_n st._n luke_n say_v that_o the_o proconsul_n sergius_n be_v astonish_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n 13.12_o act._n 13.12_o i._n e._n the_o doctrine_n treat_v of_o the_o lord_n 3.16_o gal._n 2.20_o act_n 3.16_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o faith_n of_o his_o name_n be_v the_o faith_n not_o which_o have_v jesus_n christ_n for_o its_o author_n but_o its_o object_n and_o thus_o you_o see_v we_o have_v already_o gain_v one_o point_n viz._n that_o grammar_n can_v put_v in_o no_o obstacle_n to_o this_o interpretation_n popery_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n must_v be_v understand_v the_o idolatry_n of_o popery_n ii_o my_o second_o reason_n be_v because_o explain_v it_o how_o you_o will_v i_o be_o persuade_v that_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n or_o of_o daemon_n be_v mean_v the_o idolatry_n which_o antichrist_n be_v to_o re-establish_a in_o the_o church_n for_o this_o be_v that_o which_o distinguish_v that_o religion_n from_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o which_o render_v it_o abominable_a it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o the_o papism_n which_o be_v not_o less_o abominable_a than_o its_o idolatry_n that_o be_v the_o usurpation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n power_n by_o the_o pope_n i_o confess_v it_o but_o beside_o that_o this_o
honourable_a woman_n upon_o thy_o right_a hand_n do_v stand_v the_o queen_n in_o gold_n of_o ophir_n 14._o v._o 14._o etc._n etc._n she_o shall_v be_v bring_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o raiment_n of_o needlework_n the_o virgin_n her_o companion_n that_o follow_v she_o shall_v be_v bring_v unto_o thou_o suppose_v the_o spouse_n to_o be_v the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v very_o difficult_a to_o tell_v what_o these_o daughter_n signify_v that_o be_v introduce_v to_o jesus_n christ_n different_a from_o the_o church_n i_o know_v well_o indeed_o one_o may_v easy_o imagine_v something_o thereupon_o but_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o it_o will_v be_v solid_a it_o be_v the_o fault_n which_o they_o fall_v into_o that_o do_v explain_v the_o type_n they_o stretch_v the_o parallel_n and_o fain_o will_v have_v the_o picture_n in_o every_o thing_n resemble_v the_o original_n whereas_o we_o must_v not_o search_v after_o the_o resemblance_n but_o in_o the_o principal_a subject_n all_o the_o rest_n be_v but_o as_o the_o leaf_n that_o do_v adorn_v the_o picture_n it_o be_v according_a to_o these_o principle_n that_o we_o must_v explain_v the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o eight_o eleven_o and_o twelve_o of_o daniel_n as_o to_o the_o latter_a it_o be_v the_o history_n of_o antiochus_n this_o antiochus_n have_v be_v the_o most_o considerable_a type_n of_o antichrist_n as_o david_n be_v the_o most_o glorious_a type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o prophecy_n that_o respect_v antiochus_n many_o thing_n that_o must_v have_v a_o mystical_a reference_n to_o antichrist_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o all_o that_o be_v say_v of_o antiochus_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n must_v be_v apply_v to_o antichrist_n in_o a_o mystical_a sense_n in_o some_o place_n antichrist_n be_v there_o with_o antiochus_n in_o some_o other_o place_n antiochus_n be_v there_o alone_o and_o it_o may_v be_v there_o be_v some_o place_n where_o antichrist_n be_v alone_o let_v we_o brief_o review_v they_o from_o one_o of_o the_o four_o hsrn_n of_o the_o he-goat_n horn_n ch._n 8._o v._n 9_o why_o antiochus_n be_v call_v a_o little_a horn_n which_o signify_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o greek_n come_v forth_o another_o little_a horn_n towards_o the_o south_n and_o towards_o the_o east_n and_o towards_o the_o pleasant_a land._n it_o be_v certain_a this_o little_a horn_n be_v antiochus_n he_o be_v describe_v by_o a_o little_a horn_n because_o he_o climb_v the_o throne_n not_o by_o the_o lawful_a right_n of_o succession_n public_o and_o with_o full_a right_n but_o by_o subtlety_n he_o ravish_v the_o kingdom_n from_o demetrius_n the_o son_n of_o his_o brother_n seleucus_n therefore_o the_o h._n spirit_n explain_v the_o prophecy_n in_o the_o follow_a part_n of_o the_o 8_o ch._n say_v and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o their_o kingdom_n 23._o v._o 23._o a_o king_n of_o a_o fierce_a countenance_n and_o understand_v dark_a sentence_n shall_v stand_v up_o and_o in_o the_o 11_o ch._n where_o the_o history_n of_o antiochus_n be_v more_o large_a it_o be_v say_v 21._o v._o 21._o and_o in_o his_o estate_n shall_v stand_v up_o a_o vile_a person_n to_o who_o they_o shall_v not_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o kingdom_n but_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o peaceable_o and_o obtain_v the_o kingdom_n by_o flattery_n it_o be_v because_o antiochus_n be_v a_o hostage_n at_o rome_n that_o he_o be_v repute_v as_o a_o stranger_n and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o asia_n have_v a_o elder_a brother_n who_o leave_v a_o son_n a_o lawful_a heir_n of_o his_o estate_n antiochus_n be_v return_v from_o italy_n apply_v himself_o to_o be_v liberal_a to_o the_o people_n he_o be_v affable_a and_o familiar_a he_o bathe_v in_o the_o public_a bath_n and_o by_o these_o mean_v he_o get_v away_o the_o kingdom_n from_o his_o nephew_n this_o agree_v well_o enough_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n who_o be_v also_o call_v a_o little_a horn_n in_o the_o 7_o ch._n this_o be_v plain_o that_o which_o have_v deceive_v two_o of_o our_o interpreter_n who_o will_v have_v the_o little_a horn_n in_o the_o 17_o ch._n also_o to_o be_v antiochus_n interpreter_n the_o little_a horn_n in_o the_o 17_o ch._n be_v not_o antiochus_n a_o strange_a oversight_n of_o some_o interpreter_n which_o i_o call_v a_o mighty_a great_a oversight_n and_o utter_o unworthy_a of_o great_a man_n for_o for_o this_o we_o must_v metamorphose_v the_o 4_o beast_n and_o whereas_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o interpreter_n it_o signify_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n it_o must_v be_v make_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o greek_n in_o despite_n of_o as_o great_a evidence_n as_o can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o prophecy_n for_o one_o must_v be_v blind_a not_o to_o see_v the_o roman_a empire_n the_o 4_o monarchy_n in_o this_o 4_o beast_n horn._n the_o pope_n be_v mystical_o the_o little_a horn._n the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n therefore_o be_v a_o little_a horn_n despicable_a in_o appearance_n that_o raise_v itself_o up_o from_o a_o low_a place_n and_o from_o a_o beginning_n that_o seem_v to_o promise_v nothing_o that_o be_v great_a be_v mount_v to_o that_o grandeur_n that_o have_v give_v it_o both_o the_o form_n and_o the_o power_n of_o a_o empire_n the_o head_n of_o this_o empire_n be_v of_o understanding_n in_o dark_a sentence_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v by_o subtlety_n that_o he_o make_v himself_o master_n of_o the_o western_a empire_n the_o little_a horn_n of_o the_o 8_o ch._n which_o signify_v antiochus_n god._n the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o against_o god._n wax_v great_a even_o to_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n cast_v down_o some_o of_o the_o host_n and_o of_o the_o star_n to_o the_o ground_n and_o stamp_v upon_o they_o yea_o he_o magnify_v himself_o even_o to_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o host_n these_o word_n agree_v to_o antiochus_n and_o to_o antichrist_n to_o antiochus_n because_o he_o insolent_o exalt_v himself_o against_o god_n the_o head_n of_o the_o heavenly_a army_n and_o of_o the_o church_n make_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o even_o some_o of_o the_o priestly_a race_n fall_v into_o apostasy_n to_o antichrist_n and_o the_o papism_n because_o he_o have_v exalt_v himself_o against_o j._n christ_n and_o engage_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o his_o revolt_n cease_v the_o pope_n make_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n to_o cease_v antiochus_n make_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n to_o cease_v by_o reason_n of_o transgression_n and_o cast_v down_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o ground_n and_o prosper_v the_o history_n of_o the_o macchabee_n inform_v we_o that_o this_o be_v accomplish_v according_a to_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o it_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n have_v be_v accomplish_v by_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n that_o have_v abolish_v the_o continual_a service_n because_o it_o have_v destroy_v the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o pure_a prayer_n in_o mingle_v with_o they_o the_o worship_n of_o creature_n the_o invocation_n of_o he_o and_o she_o saint_n the_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o their_o relic_n and_o in_o establish_v a_o new_a continual_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o true_a one_o it_o have_v prosper_v for_o its_o success_n have_v be_v prodigious_a for_o 8_o or_o ten_o age_n in_o the_o 11_o ch._n the_o prophet_n begin_v from_o the_o 21_o verse_n to_o speak_v of_o antiochus_n but_o we_o must_v not_o look_v for_o antichrist_n therein_o till_o the_o 34._o v._o the_o ten_o first_o verse_n be_v a_o description_n of_o the_o victory_n which_o antiochus_n obtain_v over_o his_o neighbour_n and_o of_o his_o quarrel_n with_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n quarrel_n which_o in_o my_o opinion_n have_v nothing_o typical_a in_o they_o and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v clear_a because_o antiochus_n be_v not_o a_o type_n but_o in_o what_o he_o do_v against_o the_o church_n for_o the_o strange_a nation_n have_v no_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n nothing_o that_o the_o tyrant_n do_v against_o they_o be_v mystical_a at_o the_o 31._o v._o begin_v the_o violence_n which_o this_o persecute_v prince_n be_v to_o offer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n arm_n shall_v stand_v on_o his_o part_n and_o they_o shall_v pollute_v the_o sanctuary_n of_o strength_n and_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n this_o be_v what_o be_v already_o say_v in_o the_o 8_o ch._n and_o what_o we_o have_v apply_v to_o the_o papism_n and_o its_o head_n the_o prophet_n add_v 32.33_o v._o 32.33_o and_o such_o as_o do_v wicked_o against_o the_o covenant_n shall_v he_o corrupt_v by_o flattery_a and_o they_o that_o understand_v among_o the_o people_n shall_v instruct_v many_o he_o continue_v to_o the_o 36_o v._o to_o describe_v the_o way_n full_a of_o fraud_n and_o violence_n violence_n the_o papism_n be_v establish_v by_o
fain_o find_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n but_o it_o be_v not_o there_o 11._o praep._n evan._n l._n 12._o c._n 11._o eusebius_n only_o use_v the_o word_n honour_n which_o do_v not_o import_v either_o invocation_n or_o adoration_n it_o be_v only_o out_o of_o a_o design_n to_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o martyr_n that_o they_o assemble_v at_o their_o tomb_n but_o the_o ignorant_a people_n surprise_v with_o the_o deceit_n of_o some_o false_a miracle_n which_o the_o devil_n wrought_v at_o those_o tomb_n from_o a_o simple_a honour_n immediate_o proceed_v to_o a_o religious_a worship_n and_o a_o few_o year_n after_o the_o pastor_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v carry_v down_o the_o torrent_n they_o give_v way_n to_o it_o and_o labour_v to_o establish_v this_o false_a devotion_n saint_n basil_n in_o the_o east_n and_o saint_n ambrose_n in_o the_o west_n be_v the_o most_o ancient_a father_n in_o who_o we_o find_v the_o footstep_n of_o the_o invocation_n and_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o for_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n it_o begin_v to_o be_v great_a at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n age._n corruption_n of_o manner_n begin_v also_o in_o the_o four_o age._n the_o church_n be_v become_v queen_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o her_o emperor_n clothe_v herself_o with_o its_o luxury_n and_o follow_v all_o its_o manner_n covetousness_n unchastity_n debauchery_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n we_o need_v only_o to_o see_v what_o st._n jerome_n who_o live_v in_o that_o time_n say_v of_o rome_n and_o the_o roman_a clergy_n and_o of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n in_o general_n in_o his_o day_n he_o represent_v rome_n as_o already_o become_v a_o babylon_n mercellam_fw-la panla_n &_o eustochium_fw-la ad_fw-la mercellam_fw-la go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n say_v he_o for_o she_o be_v fall_v babylon_n the_o great_a she_o be_v become_v a_o habitation_n of_o devil_n and_o a_o dwell_a place_n of_o unclean_a spirit_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o pride_n grandeur_n power_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v find_v in_o that_o city_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o life_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o monk_n the_o same_o author_n say_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o church_n live_v in_o deliciousness_n and_o imagine_v they_o do_v preserve_v their_o purity_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o mighty_a repast_n and_o lascivious_a action_n elsewhere_o he_o say_v 2._o comment_fw-fr in_o mic._n cap._n 2._o that_o the_o ecclesiastic_n do_v kiss_v and_o caress_n the_o lady_n stretch_v forth_o their_o hand_n to_o they_o to_o receive_v their_o present_n they_o observe_v the_o temper_n of_o woman_n they_o cause_v great_a estate_n to_o be_v give_v to_o themselves_o and_o their_o covetousness_n become_v so_o odious_a nepotianum_fw-la ad_fw-la nepotianum_fw-la that_o the_o christian_a emperor_n forbid_v the_o ecclesiastic_n the_o receive_a legacy_n by_o will_n while_o whore_n and_o comedian_n be_v permit_v so_o to_o do_v last_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o so_o it_o be_v that_o pride_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n in_o this_o and_o the_o follow_a age_n age._n the_o pride_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n increase_v in_o the_o same_o age._n then_o it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n who_o till_o that_o time_n have_v be_v all_o equal_a through_o pride_n make_v themselves_o arch-bishop_n and_o patriarch_n patriarch_n that_o be_v diminutive_a pope_n and_o consequent_o petty_a antichrist_n above_o all_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o be_v very_o plain_a it_o be_v in_o the_o four_o age_n that_o that_o noble_a roman_a consul_n live_v who_o say_v make_v i_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o i_o will_v be_v a_o christian_n marcellin_n st._n jerome_n ammian_a marcellin_n these_o bishop_n cause_v themselves_o to_o be_v carry_v in_o a_o litter_n keep_v sumptuous_a table_n have_v great_a equipage_n and_o live_v like_o the_o great_a one_o of_o the_o world._n it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n also_o that_o they_o begin_v to_o ascribe_v to_o themselves_o the_o primacy_n over_o other_o bishop_n therefore_o bribery_n and_o violence_n begin_v to_o be_v use_v to_o climb_v up_o into_o that_o see_v in_o less_o than_o a_o age_n this_o torrent_n of_o pride_n superstition_n and_o corruption_n swell_v to_o such_o a_o degree_n that_o it_o become_v exceed_v plain_a in_o the_o 450_o year_n superstition_n be_v already_o advance_v to_o the_o degree_n of_o idolatry_n corruption_n be_v very_o high_a and_o pride_n very_o great_a idolatry_n in_o the_o five_o age_n superstition_n be_v advance_v to_o the_o degree_n of_o idolatry_n to_o know_v to_o what_o degree_n idolatry_n be_v already_o advance_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o five_o age_n we_o need_v read_v but_o the_o 8_o book_n of_o theodoret_n de_fw-fr curandis_fw-la graecorum_n affectionibus_fw-la he_o say_v the_o christian_n call_v the_o martyr_n their_o physician_n and_o their_o protector_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o martyr_n say_v he_o be_v remarkable_a for_o their_o greatness_n and_o their_o magnificence_n they_o be_v fill_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o ornament_n and_o they_o diffuse_v abroad_o the_o splendour_n and_o glitter_a of_o their_o beauty_n we_o assemble_v there_o not_o only_o one_o two_o three_o four_o or_o five_o time_n a_o year_n but_o we_o celebrate_v feast_n therein_o very_a often_o yea_o and_o every_o day_n we_o sing_v in_o they_o the_o praise_n and_o hymn_n of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o martyr_n they_o that_o be_v well_o desire_v the_o martyr_n to_o preserve_v they_o in_o health_n and_o they_o that_o have_v any_o disease_n desire_v of_o they_o to_o be_v cure_v of_o it_o man_n and_o barren_a woman_n ask_v child_n of_o they_o and_o they_o that_o have_v they_o desire_v they_o to_o preserve_v they_o they_o that_o take_v a_o voyage_n pray_v to_o the_o martyr_n to_o accompany_v they_o in_o the_o way_n and_o also_o to_o guide_v they_o and_o they_o that_o return_v in_o health_n thank_v they_o for_o it_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v from_o they_o they_o have_v receive_v that_o benefit_n not_o that_o they_o look_v on_o the_o martyr_n as_o god_n but_o pray_v to_o they_o as_o divine_a man_n and_o invocate_v they_o as_o their_o intercessor_n with_o god._n now_o that_o they_o who_o pray_v devout_o and_o with_o faith_n receive_v that_o which_o they_o desire_v appear_v plain_o enough_o by_o the_o gift_n which_o they_o present_v they_o with_o acquit_v themselves_o of_o their_o vow_n which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o health_n which_o they_o have_v recover_v for_o some_o hang_v up_o figure_n of_o eye_n other_o of_o foot_n other_o of_o hand_n make_v of_o gold_n and_o silver_n all_o these_o thing_n expose_v to_o view_n show_v that_o disease_n have_v be_v cure_v see_v they_o have_v be_v give_v by_o those_o that_o have_v be_v cure_v these_o thing_n i_o say_v show_v how_o great_a be_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o of_o their_o tomb_n age_n the_o great_a corruption_n of_o manner_n in_o the_o five_o age_n if_o any_o will_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o degree_n to_o which_o corruption_n of_o manner_n be_v advance_v in_o the_o same_o age_n he_o may_v read_v salvian_n bishop_n of_o marseilles_n speak_v concern_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o territory_n of_o aquitain_n provide_v l._n 7._o the_o provide_v and_o that_o abundance_n wherein_o its_o inhabitant_n live_v he_o say_v that_o as_o they_o surpass_v all_o other_o in_o riches_n they_o surpass_v they_o also_o in_o vice_n that_o never_o be_v there_o any_o where_o see_v more_o infamous_a pleasure_n that_o their_o life_n be_v exceed_v filthy_a and_o that_o discipline_n be_v entire_o corrupt_v this_o be_v say_v he_o the_o returns_z they_o have_v make_v to_o god_n for_o his_o holy_a liberality_n he_o confess_v the_o inundation_n of_o the_o barabarians_n that_o have_v spoil_v they_o of_o their_o good_n can_v not_o take_v away_o their_o vice_n from_o they_o and_o that_o they_o remain_v unchaste_a to_o that_o degree_n that_o the_o very_a barbarian_n be_v scandalize_v at_o their_o impurity_n for_o the_o goth_n suffer_v not_o among_o themselves_o either_o impurity_n fornication_n or_o adultery_n spain_n say_v he_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o same_o vice_n if_o not_o in_o great_a speak_v of_o the_o people_n of_o africa_n he_o say_v that_o the_o city_n of_o carthage_n be_v full_a of_o abomination_n that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n nor_o street_n without_o a_o whore-house_n all_o the_o street_n be_v full_a of_o snare_n and_o bait_n as_o so_o many_o ditch_n of_o impurity_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o they_o who_o dislike_v these_o sort_n of_o crime_n can_v not_o prevent_v their_o fall_n into_o they_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o great_a city_n be_v plunge_v into_o the_o filthy_a mire_n of_o those_o infamous_a debauch_n they_o breathe_v from_o one_o
the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o scripture_n prophecy_n or_o the_o approach_v deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o that_o that_o kingdom_n be_v not_o far_o from_o its_o ruin._n that_o the_o present_a persecution_n may_v end_v in_o three_o year_n and_o half_a after_o which_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v begin_v which_o shall_v be_v finish_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o age_n and_o then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v come_v upon_o earth_n write_a in_o french_a by_o mr._n peter_n jurieu_o one_o of_o the_o present_a minister_n of_o the_o french_a church_n at_o rotterdam_n in_o two_o part_n faithful_o english_v from_o the_o new_a french_a edition_n correct_v and_o enlarge_v by_o almost_o a_o three_o part_n with_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o vision_n of_o daniel_n and_o the_o revelation_n london_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1687._o to_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n i_o desire_v of_o that_o people_n that_o they_o will_v please_v to_o read_v this_o book_n attentive_o and_o without_o prejudice_n especial_o from_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o second_o part_n to_o the_o end_n they_o will_v find_v nothing_o there_o that_o can_v irritate_fw-la irritate_fw-la they_o i_o confess_v the_o hope_n they_o conceive_v of_o a_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n which_o shall_v be_v chief_o for_o they_o be_v build_v upon_o express_a and_o unquestionable_a prophecy_n that_o even_o their_o jerusàlem_n shall_v be_v rebuilt_a and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v again_o gather_v together_o in_o their_o own_o land._n and_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v capable_a to_o recover_v they_o from_o their_o obstinacy_n for_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o against_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v certain_o the_o most_o likely_a method_n which_o we_o make_v use_v of_o because_o it_o grant_v they_o almost_o all_o the_o advantage_n which_o they_o expect_v advice_n to_o all_o christian_n concern_v the_o approach_a end_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o afflict_a church_n seek_v for_o consolation_n where_o can_v she_o find_v it_o but_o in_o the_o promise_v of_o god_n when_o the_o present_a prospect_n be_v sad_a and_o doleful_a we_o must_v search_v for_o it_o in_o what_o be_v future_a the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v either_o general_n or_o particular_a the_o general_a promise_n be_v such_o as_o assure_v we_o in_o the_o general_n that_o god_n will_v not_o cast_v off_o his_o child_n that_o this_o grace_n shall_v never_o forsake_v his_o church_n that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o though_o the_o mountain_n be_v overthrow_v he_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o they_o but_o afflict_a person_n will_v be_v glad_a of_o something_o more_o particular_a they_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o see_v in_o some_o particular_a promise_n near_o about_o what_o time_n they_o may_v expect_v the_o period_n of_o their_o calamity_n now_o the_o promise_n and_o this_o insight_n into_o the_o future_a be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v have_v but_o in_o the_o prophecy_n they_o doubtless_o contain_v the_o promise_n which_o respect_v the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o they_o set_v forth_o the_o very_a time_n and_o the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o but_o as_o god_n have_v cause_v the_o prophecy_n to_o be_v write_v more_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n than_o for_o our_o sake_n it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a to_o dive_v into_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o till_o their_o accomplishment_n the_o depth_n of_o the_o prophecy_n and_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o even_o after_o the_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o pass_v we_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v the_o prophecy_n which_o foretold_a foretold_a they_o insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o god_n have_v rather_o conceal_v thing_n in_o the_o prophecy_n than_o thereby_o reveal_v reveal_v they_o he_o have_v reserve_v to_o himself_o the_o knowledge_n of_o futurity_n it_o be_v his_o prerogative_n nevertheless_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v in_o that_o strict_a and_o rigid_a sense_n as_o if_o we_o be_v to_o reckon_v all_o the_o prophecy_n to_o be_v unintelligible_a to_o all_o man_n and_o in_o every_o age_n to_o be_v so_o as_o his_o providence_n have_v preside_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n in_o compose_v the_o prophecy_n so_o it_o be_v certain_a it_o do_v particular_o direct_v and_o govern_v as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o god_n will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v understand_v in_o every_o age_n but_o from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o year_n to_o year_n his_o spirit_n discover_v to_o interpreter_n what_o he_o think_v fit_a and_o leave_v the_o rest_n under_o a_o vail_n of_o ignorance_n till_o the_o fix_a time_n which_o his_o wisdom_n have_v appoint_v shall_v come_v for_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a revelation_n of_o it_o they_o be_v not_o impenetrable_a we_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v discourage_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o difficulty_n we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o prophecy_n as_o absolute_o impenetrable_a we_o must_v seek_v that_o we_o may_v find_v we_o must_v ask_v that_o we_o may_v receive_v we_o must_v humble_o and_o devout_o knock_v at_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n that_o it_o may_v be_v open_v to_o we_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o those_o interpreter_n who_o have_v go_v before_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v discover_v nothing_o it_o may_v be_v no_o entrance_n be_v make_v we_o shall_v never_o have_v attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o mysterious_a truth_n but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o stop_v at_o their_o labour_n and_o acquiesce_v in_o what_o they_o have_v do_v as_o if_o they_o have_v succeed_v well_o in_o every_o thing_n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v true_a that_o the_o contrary_n be_v much_o more_o so_o for_o one_o truth_n which_o they_o have_v hit_v upon_o they_o have_v miss_v several_a the_o misforture_n of_o other_o interpreter_n have_v not_o dishearten_v i_o hope_v that_o i_o have_v discover_v many_o thing_n which_o to_o they_o be_v conceal_v but_o i_o may_v say_v that_o i_o do_v not_o out_o of_o choice_n apply_v myself_o to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o prophecy_n i_o find_v myself_o force_v to_o it_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o violence_n which_o i_o can_v not_o resist_v two_o thing_n lead_v i_o to_o it_o 1._o the_o cruel_a and_o horrible_a persecution_n which_o at_o this_o day_n make_v such_o terrible_a ravage_v and_o desolation_n in_o the_o church_n endeavour_v some_o consolation_n under_o the_o deep_a sorrow_n i_o ever_o feel_v by_o search_v into_o the_o ground_n we_o may_v have_v to_o hope_v for_o a_o speedy_a deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o find_v they_o other_o where_o i_o inquire_v after_o they_o in_o the_o prophecy_n which_o foretell_v the_o destiny_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o most_o remarkable_a change_n through_o which_o she_o be_v to_o pass_v 2._o the_o next_o thing_n that_o make_v i_o resolve_v to_o dive_v into_o these_o sacred_a oracle_n be_v the_o concurrence_n of_o so_o many_o prophecy_n obscure_a indeed_o &_o of_o a_o uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a original_n which_o foretell_v a_o speedy_a and_o perfect_a deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n for_o example_n the_o concurrence_n of_o modern_a prophecy_n concern_v the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n the_o famous_a prophecy_n of_o usher_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n who_o foretells_a a_o most_o terrible_a persecution_n at_o hand_n the_o most_o dreadful_a of_o any_o which_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v hitherto_o but_o withal_o the_o short_a after_o which_o shall_v come_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n the_o prophecy_n of_o cotterus_n christina_n poniatouski_n and_o those_o of_o drabitius_fw-la and_o several_a other_o more_o obscure_a one_o which_o i_o have_v hear_v and_o consider_v without_o give_v much_o credit_n to_o they_o i_o compare_v these_o prophecy_n so_o universal_o spread_v and_o come_v from_o so_o many_o several_a place_n to_o the_o general_a rumour_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v every_o where_o divulge_v throughout_o the_o roman_a empire_n of_o a_o great_a king_n that_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o east_n to_o who_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v pay_v obeisance_n i_o do_v not_o find_v myself_o much_o dispose_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o those_o modern_a prophecy_n credulity_n be_v the_o ordinary_a source_n of_o much_o delusion_n i_o always_o stand_v upon_o my_o guard_n in_o that_o particular_a as_o much_o as_o possible_a nevertheless_o i_o can_v not_o but_o be_v touch_v with_o a_o secret_a opinion_n that_o in_o all_o this_o there_o may_v be_v something_o more_o than_o humane_a something_o of_o a_o hand_n of_o providence_n therein_o as_o the_o holy_a virgin_n i_o keep_v these_o say_n in_o my_o heart_n without_o pass_v a_o judgement_n
i_o wait_v till_o far_a time_n which_o be_v the_o only_a true_a touchstone_n will_v distinguish_v foolish_a vision_n from_o real_a prophecy_n i_o find_v something_o surprise_v and_o extraordinary_a in_o the_o prophecy_n of_o cotterus_n christina_n and_o drabitius_fw-la which_o be_v publish_v by_o comenius_n cotterus_n who_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o three_o be_v great_a and_o magnific_a the_o image_n of_o his_o vision_n have_v so_o much_o majesty_n and_o grandeur_n that_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n have_v hardly_o more_o they_o be_v also_o admirable_o lay_v together_o every_o thing_n support_v itself_o and_o one_o part_n do_v not_o contradict_v another_o i_o can_v conceive_v how_o a_o simple_a artisan_n can_v have_v imagine_v such_o great_a thing_n without_o divine_a assistance_n the_o two_o year_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o christina_n be_v in_o my_o judgement_n a_o train_n of_o as_o great_a miracle_n as_o have_v ever_o be_v since_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o even_o the_o life_n of_o the_o great_a prophet_n have_v nothing_o in_o it_o more_o miraculous_a than_o what_o happen_v to_o that_o maid_n drabitius_fw-la have_v also_o his_o height_n and_o excellency_n but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n he_o be_v obscure_a these_o three_o prophet_n concur_v to_o foretell_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n as_o a_o thing_n that_o shall_v short_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o withal_o they_o have_v so_o many_o thing_n that_o offend_v that_o no_o man_n can_v satisfy_v himself_o to_o rely_v upon_o what_o they_o say_v therefore_o i_o resolve_v to_o look_v into_o the_o fountain_n itself_o of_o the_o holy_a oracle_n to_o see_v if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o teach_v i_o something_o more_o certain_a and_o more_o exact_a concern_v the_o approach_a ruin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n than_o what_o other_o interpreter_n have_v discover_v from_o thence_o i_o will_v free_o acknowledge_v that_o when_o i_o first_o look_v into_o the_o divine_a oracle_n my_o opinion_n be_v in_o favour_n of_o what_o i_o search_v for_o be_v altogether_o incline_v to_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v near_o the_o end_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n i_o be_v also_o full_o persuade_v of_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o that_o the_o principal_a character_n of_o that_o antichristianism_n be_v the_o superstition_n which_o for_o more_o than_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n have_v disfigure_v the_o church_n and_o make_v her_o desolate_a many_o thing_n without_o reckon_v the_o modern_a prophecy_n make_v i_o hope_n that_o we_o be_v near_o the_o end_n of_o that_o period_n of_o 1260_o year_n at_o the_o close_a whereof_o babylon_n must_v fall_v the_o heathen_a be_v convert_v and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v full_o settle_v first_o i_o reflect_v on_o the_o long_a duration_n of_o that_o idolatry_n which_o have_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n i_o see_v that_o it_o begin_v about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o century_n that_o be_v thirteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o no_o instance_n can_v be_v give_v where_o god_n suffer_v so_o great_a a_o corruption_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n without_o give_v some_o remedy_n and_o relief_n i_o consider_v far_o that_o in_o the_o last_o age_n god_n give_v a_o terrible_a blow_n to_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o the_o pagan_a religion_n the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n swede_n denmark_n the_o protestant_a state_n of_o germany_n the_o unite_a province_n the_o swisser_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o france_n break_v from_o the_o papacy_n all_o at_o once_o appear_v to_o i_o so_o considerable_a a_o matter_n that_o i_o can_v nor_o persuade_v myself_o but_o that_o god_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o it_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o yet_o i_o find_v no_o such_o thing_n among_o the_o expositor_n of_o that_o book_n or_o i_o find_v that_o they_o have_v look_v for_o it_o in_o those_o place_n where_o i_o see_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v not_o hereupon_o i_o suspect_v that_o that_o part_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n which_o describe_v the_o degree_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v not_o well_o understand_v and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v much_o near_o than_o be_v common_o think_v consider_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o last_o age_n as_o one_o half_a of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n i_o suppose_v that_o the_o other_o half_o can_v not_o be_v far_o off_o there_o be_v already_o near_o 200_o year_n from_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o when_o god_n make_v great_a empire_n fall_v and_o not_o all_o at_o once_o the_o distance_n be_v not_o common_o so_o great_a between_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o the_o second_o after_o this_o i_o consider_v the_o present_a posture_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o as_o if_o all_o thing_n be_v prepare_v for_o some_o great_a revolution_n it_o be_v as_o easy_a with_o god_n to_o work_v in_o one_o moment_n and_o without_o precede_a disposition_n as_o to_o take_v time_n and_o prepare_v the_o matter_n nevertheless_o we_o see_v that_o by_o secret_a method_n which_o man_n perceive_v not_o he_o open_v the_o way_n to_o his_o great_a work_n for_o example_n the_o fall_n of_o paganism_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o heathen_a world_n be_v a_o great_a revolution_n god_n prepare_v all_o thing_n for_o this_o great_a event_n many_o age_n before_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o admirable_a mean_n of_o which_o no_o man_n then_o know_v the_o tendency_n and_o design_n 1._o he_o reduce_v the_o world_n to_o two_o language_n which_o be_v almost_o universal_a the_o greek_a and_o latin_a that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v communicate_v difference_n of_o language_n be_v a_o great_a hindrance_n of_o such_o a_o communication_n it_o be_v true_a the_o apostle_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n and_o can_v speak_v all_o language_n but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o all_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v the_o same_o privilege_n 2._o the_o world_n be_v almost_o whole_o unite_v under_o one_o empire_n viz._n the_o roman_a which_o be_v another_o mean_n to_o facilitate_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o nation_n for_o if_o the_o earth_n have_v be_v divide_v into_o many_o little_a principality_n under_o several_a soyeraigns_n as_o the_o west_n be_v at_o this_o day_n it_o have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v impossible_a but_o that_o divers_a of_o they_o if_o not_o the_o most_o part_n will_v have_v deny_v entrance_n to_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v the_o new_a preacher_n little_a lord_n who_o have_v not_o much_o to_o do_v concern_v themselves_o more_o particular_o about_o every_o part_n of_o their_o territory_n than_o great_a emperor_n who_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o mind_n be_v force_v to_o remit_v the_o care_n of_o less_o important_a matter_n to_o their_o deputy_n and_o lieutenant_n 3._o the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o their_o frequent_a captivity_n be_v also_o a_o mean_n which_o god_n make_v use_v of_o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n they_o give_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god._n 4._o another_o thing_n which_o contribute_v very_o much_o to_o this_o design_n of_o god_n be_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o bible_n into_o the_o greek_a tongue_n whereby_o the_o sacred_a oracle_n become_v common_a among_o the_o heathen_n and_o about_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n appearance_n in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v multitude_n of_o those_o proselyte_n which_o be_v call_v proselyte_n of_o the_o gate_n such_o as_o be_v not_o real_o jew_n but_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v pagan_n they_o renounce_v their_o idolatry_n they_o be_v present_v every_o sabbath_n day_n at_o the_o read_n of_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n they_o have_v a_o distinct_a place_n in_o the_o synagogue_n it_o be_v of_o they_o we_o so_o often_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o act_n under_o the_o name_n of_o devout_a and_o such_o as_o fear_v god_n among_o the_o gentile_n cornelius_n be_v of_o that_o number_n it_o can_v not_o be_v difficult_a for_o they_o to_o abandon_v paganism_n for_o they_o have_v already_o leave_v it_o and_o they_o can_v not_o be_v hinder_v from_o become_a christian_n by_o judaisme_n for_o they_o have_v never_o embrace_v it_o so_o that_o they_o become_v christian_n without_o change_n or_o violence_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o convert_a gentile_n be_v such_o as_o these_o 5._o and_o by_o the_o same_o good_a providence_n of_o god_n philosophy_n begin_v to_o flourish_v among_o the_o pagan_n a_o little_a before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o refine_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o
small_a number_n of_o true_a believet_n remain_v victim_n expose_v to_o the_o rage_n of_o a_o army_n of_o a_o hundred_o thousand_o man_n which_o be_v let_v loose_a upon_o the_o kingdom_n this_o i_o say_v again_o be_v without_o example_n in_o any_o histsry_n s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la seem_v to_o say_v that_o some_o such_o thing_n happen_v in_o the_o persecution_n of_o decius_n but_o he_o himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o apostasy_n be_v not_o so_o general_a for_o he_o remit_v those_o who_o have_v fall_v to_o be_v judge_v at_o the_o return_n of_o peace_n in_o the_o assemblic_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o persevere_v so_o that_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o persevere_v must_v have_v be_v considerable_a in_o our_o time_n it_o will_v be_v difficult_a out_o of_o every_o flock_n to_o make_v up_o a_o assembly_n of_o such_o as_o persevere_v to_o judge_v the_o rest_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o event_n wherein_o we_o must_v admire_v the_o depth_n of_o divine_a providence_n it_o be_v a_o speak_a prodigy_n which_o tell_v we_o we_o be_v now_o in_o those_o last_o day_n when_o christ_n shall_v come_v and_o not_o find_v true_a piety_n or_o true_a faith_n upon_o earth_n this_o be_v a_o touchstone_n for_o all_o protestant_n their_o brethren_n of_o france_n be_v not_o more_o wicked_a than_o other_o wherefore_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o the_o same_o thing_n will_v happen_v in_o any_o other_o place_n on_o supposition_n of_o the_o same_o circumstance_n and_o consequent_o that_o christian_a courage_n and_o true_a faith_n be_v at_o this_o day_n very_o rare_a and_o few_o instance_n to_o be_v find_v last_o this_o affair_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n will_v melt_v the_o heart_n of_o that_o people_n and_o suffer_v they_o to_o sink_v and_o be_v swallow_v up_o that_o he_o may_v short_o raise_v to_o himself_o another_o a_o new_a people_n these_o be_v the_o character_n of_o this_o persecution_n which_o make_v i_o regard_v it_o as_o very_o singular_a and_o extraordinary_a in_o its_o kind_n and_o consequent_o as_o a_o presage_n that_o god_n will_v short_o finish_v the_o establishment_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o that_o of_o antichrist_n if_o we_o only_o consider_v how_o this_o persecution_n have_v be_v more_o effectual_a than_o any_o the_o church_n ever_o suffer_v it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v we_o judge_v that_o the_o devil_n now_o employ_v his_o utmost_a force_n and_o power_n as_o apprehend_v it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n and_o that_o the_o ruin_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v at_o hand_n when_o paganism_n be_v ready_a to_o fall_v under_o constantine_n he_o then_o excite_v the_o sharp_a persecution_n under_o the_o emperor_n dioclesian_n these_o be_v the_o different_a reflection_n that_o conspire_v to_o possess_v i_o that_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v near_o to_o destroy_v the_o wicked_a one_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n i_o have_v a_o strong_a inclination_n to_o be_v certain_a and_o assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o these_o thought_n which_o can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v do_v but_o by_o find_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o accomplishment_n of_o those_o circumstance_n which_o be_v to_o precede_v and_o accompany_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n with_o this_o design_n i_o betake_v myself_o to_o read_v over_o the_o apocalypse_n not_o the_o several_a commentator_n on_o that_o book_n but_o the_o book_n itself_o only_o with_o the_o exposition_n of_o joseph_n mede_n who_o i_o former_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o man_n inspire_v for_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o prophecy_n his_o key_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o annex_v commentary_n do_v heretofore_o charm_v i_o i_o can_v find_v nothing_o like_o it_o in_o all_o the_o other_o expositor_n i_o add_v that_o of_o his_o chronicle_n and_o his_o book_n call_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o latter_a time_n which_o be_v a_o large_a commentary_n on_o 1_o tim._n chap._n 4._o v._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o and_o the_o spirit_n say_v express_o that_o in_o the_o last_o time_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o who_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith._n beside_o several_a excellent_a and_o curious_a thing_n a_o part_n whereof_o you_o will_v find_v in_o this_o treatise_n i_o meet_v with_o in_o that_o author_n the_o thing_n which_o i_o so_o eager_o seek_v for_o viz._n the_o true_a epocha_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n during_o which_o time_n the_o antichristian_a empire_n shall_v last_v he_o make_v they_o to_o begin_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 450._o or_o 455._o by_o date_v they_o from_o thence_o they_o must_v end_v about_o the_o year_n 1710_o or_o 1715._o which_o agree_v very_o well_o with_o my_o conjecture_n but_o joseph_n mede_n who_o set_v i_o right_o at_o first_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o true_a path_n forsake_v i_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o way_n and_o when_o the_o circumstance_n and_o preliminary_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n be_v to_o be_v adjust_v according_a to_o this_o calculation_n which_o be_v so_o exact_o describe_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n i_o find_v no_o assistance_n at_o all_o from_o he_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o lead_v i_o out_o of_o the_o way_n wherein_o he_o himself_o have_v put_v i_o and_o to_o make_v i_o wander_v and_o go_v astray_o according_a to_o the_o epocha_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v mark_v for_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n for_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n i_o shall_v see_v the_o end_n of_o it_o in_o 25_o or_o 30_o year_n but_o according_a to_o mr._n mede_n there_o must_v be_v many_o age_n to_o accomplish_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v before_o the_o period_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o 11_o 14_o &_o 16_o chapter_n we_o have_v a_o account_n of_o the_o circumstance_n and_o degree_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o that_o empire_n the_o eleven_o chapter_n speak_v of_o the_o death_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n for_o three_o day_n and_o half_a of_o their_o resurrection_n and_o of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 14_o chap._n where_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o act_n one_o be_v call_v the_o vintage_n the_o other_o the_o harvest_n in_o the_o 16_o chap._n where_o the_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o declension_n and_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o seven_o viol_n and_o seven_o plague_n of_o all_o this_o joseph_n mede_n understand_v nothing_o yea_o suppose_v as_o he_o do_v that_o of_o those_o seven_o plague_n not_o above_o two_o or_o three_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o his_o time_n he_o remit_v we_o far_o enough_o off_o for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o five_o other_o the_o period_n describe_v by_o every_o viol_n be_v each_o of_o they_o more_o than_o one_o age_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n yet_o to_o come_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n if_o every_o one_o of_o the_o four_o viol_n that_o remain_v to_o be_v pour_v out_o be_v but_o of_o fifty_o year_n we_o shall_v have_v yet_o two_o hundred_o year_n long_o to_o wait_v i_o confess_v that_o after_o have_v read_v those_o place_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o review_v they_o twenty_o time_n i_o understand_v nothing_o more_o therein_o i_o be_v only_o more_o and_o more_o confirm_v that_o no_o man_n have_v right_o understand_v they_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o distraction_n i_o yet_o begin_v my_o work_n without_o know_v well_o where_o i_o went._n but_o i_o can_v say_v that_o god_n so_o open_v my_o eye_n in_o the_o way_n that_o give_v i_o unexpressible_a consolation_n for_o after_o have_v consult_v the_o eternal_a truth_n above_o a_o hundred_o time_n with_o a_o deep_a humility_n and_o very_o great_a attention_n at_o length_n i_o receive_v a_o answer_n at_o least_o i_o believe_v so_o and_o think_v it_o very_o plain_a that_o all_o that_o must_v precede_v the_o last_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v full_o accomplish_v i_o have_v no_o right_a to_o require_v the_o same_o assurance_n from_o other_o neither_o do_v i_o require_v it_o but_o that_o which_o i_o demand_v at_o least_o be_v a_o little_a of_o that_o attention_n which_o i_o employ_v in_o the_o meditation_n of_o those_o divine_a oracle_n and_o then_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o if_o you_o be_v not_o as_o full_o convince_v as_o i_o be_o you_o will_v yet_o see_v reason_n enough_o not_o to_o condemn_v i_o of_o rashness_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o work_n you_o will_v find_v nothing_o new_a for_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o long_a time_n that_o rome_n have_v be_v call_v babylon_n and_o that_o the_o character_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n have_v be_v confess_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o papacy_n i_o
one_o of_o the_o late_a commentator_n on_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o one_o of_o the_o most_o esteem_v i_o find_v that_o he_o follow_v mede_n in_o every_o thing_n save_v in_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n of_o the_o 14_o chap._n the_o seven_o viol_n of_o the_o 16_o and_o the_o death_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n of_o the_o 11_o chap._n that_o be_v that_o he_o have_v follow_v he_o in_o those_o place_n wherein_o he_o have_v succeed_v well_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n impossible_a to_o differ_v from_o he_o in_o those_o place_n but_o in_o those_o place_n where_o mr._n mede_n be_v not_o happy_a dr._n moor_n be_v no_o more_o so_o than_o he_o if_o any_o other_o have_v discover_v these_o truth_n he_o will_v oblige_v i_o that_o shall_v let_v i_o know_v it_o i_o shall_v be_v rejoice_v to_o understand_v that_o any_o other_o have_v make_v the_o same_o discovery_n this_o will_v confirm_v i_o in_o the_o persuasion_n which_o i_o have_v that_o i_o have_v find_v that_o which_o i_o inquire_v after_o after_o have_v prove_v in_o this_o second_o part_n that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n i_o treat_v of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v after_o that_o fall_n viz._n the_o famous_a reign_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n which_o have_v be_v so_o often_o contradict_v since_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n i_o have_v enlarge_v a_o little_a upon_o it_o as_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o consolatory_a truth_n which_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n i_o can_v but_o ascribe_v to_o a_o secret_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o blindness_n which_o most_o christian_n have_v be_v under_o hitherto_o concern_v it_o for_o certain_a reason_n god_n will_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v that_o reign_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o prophecy_n though_o it_o be_v there_o as_o clear_o describe_v as_o the_o come_v of_o the_o messiah_n which_o yet_o the_o jew_n will_v not_o see_v to_o be_v there_o you_o will_v therein_o find_v one_o chapter_n for_o which_o the_o jew_n be_v indebt_v to_o i_o for_o i_o re-establish_a they_o in_o their_o right_n and_o in_o their_o hope_n far_o than_o christian_n have_v as_o yet_o do_v among_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n you_o will_v find_v a_o explication_n of_o the_o type_n of_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n which_o will_v not_o be_v unpleasant_a to_o those_o who_o love_v mystery_n i_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v in_o vindication_n of_o this_o book_n it_o must_v run_v the_o common_a risk_a it_o must_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o public_a a_o risque_n so_o much_o the_o great_a in_o that_o treat_v of_o prophecy_n no_o man_n think_v himself_o oblige_v to_o subscribe_v to_o the_o thought_n of_o those_o who_o interpret_v they_o i_o may_v well_o expect_v to_o be_v ill_o treat_v by_o other_o the_o learned_a and_o the_o wise_a as_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v who_o mock_v at_o all_o prophecy_n and_o all_o those_o who_o go_v about_o to_o interpret_v they_o these_o man_n be_v upon_o the_o border_n of_o impiety_n if_o they_o be_v not_o already_o plunge_v into_o it_o it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o sake_n that_o i_o write_v i_o despise_v they_o at_o least_o their_o judgement_n but_o i_o pray_v god_n for_o their_o salvation_n it_o be_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o good_a and_o upright_a that_o this_o work_n be_v undertake_v god_n grant_v it_o may_v contribute_v to_o it_o if_o i_o be_o deceive_v i_o shall_v have_v but_o my_o common_a lot_n with_o many_o other_o nevertheless_o i_o deserve_v some_o thanks_o for_o my_o good_a intention_n let_v i_o add_v one_o word_n that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o book_n to_o be_v read_v cursory_o over_o and_o that_o but_o once_o i_o consent_v that_o it_o be_v read_v the_o first_o time_n as_o a_o romance_n but_o let_v such_o a_o one_o return_n to_o it_o and_z lay_z aside_o his_o prejudices_fw-la by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o at_o length_n accustom_v himself_o to_o those_o idea_n that_o at_o first_o seem_v strange_a this_o advice_n i_o give_v chief_o to_o roman_a catholic_n assoon_o as_o they_o perceive_v by_o the_o title_n of_o a_o book_n that_o the_o design_n be_v to_o persuade_v they_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v antichristianism_n they_o fall_v into_o a_o rage_n and_o their_o passion_n blind_v they_o but_o yet_o for_o once_o let_v they_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v it_o as_o a_o romance_n and_o afterward_o let_v they_o think_v that_o the_o matter_n deserve_v at_o least_o to_o be_v examine_v because_o no_o less_o than_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n be_v concern_v in_o it_o i_o have_v no_o design_n to_o anger_v they_o i_o desire_v their_o salvation_n it_o be_v the_o only_a end_n i_o propose_v god_n be_v my_o witness_n a_o supplement_n to_o the_o advice_n to_o all_o christian_n this_o be_v what_o i_o have_v advertise_v the_o public_a in_o the_o first_o ediction_n in_o this_o second_o i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v to_o remove_v two_o scandal_n which_o i_o have_v learn_v have_v be_v take_v on_o the_o account_n of_o this_o book_n first_o there_o be_v some_o who_o believe_v the_o hope_n i_o give_v of_o a_o re-establishment_n within_o a_o few_o year_n may_v do_v much_o hurt_v because_o all_o those_o who_o be_v thus_o persuade_v will_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o sleep_v secure_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v if_o it_o be_v thus_o we_o may_v expect_v a_o while_n and_o bear_v our_o captivity_n as_o well_o as_o we_o can_v we_o shall_v ere_o long_o see_v the_o end_n of_o it_o during_o which_o expectation_n they_o will_v still_o go_v to_o mass_n and_o join_v in_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o this_o i_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o say_v first_o that_o god_n end_n and_o way_n be_v different_a from_o we_o at_o this_o rate_n god_n shall_v never_o have_v promise_v to_o deliver_v his_o church_n that_o man_n may_v not_o grow_v secure_a in_o the_o expectation_n of_o it_o god_n have_v almost_o always_o hide_v event_n from_o we_o and_o will_v not_o that_o at_o all_o time_n the_o prophecy_n shall_v be_v understand_v lest_o the_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n of_o they_o shall_v prejudice_v their_o accomplishment_n lest_o man_n shall_v oppose_v it_o and_o stand_v upon_o their_o guard_n in_o that_o respect_n but_o who_o know_v whether_o god_n ought_v not_o at_o last_o to_o make_v the_o prophecy_n be_v understand_v that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o be_v fulfil_v who_o know_v whether_o so_o many_o of_o the_o romish_a communion_n who_o be_v already_o disgu_v with_o their_o religion_n may_v not_o open_v their_o eye_n by_o the_o light_n which_o we_o set_v before_o they_o and_o resolve_v to_o become_v instrument_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o great_a work_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o oftentimes_o prophecy_n counterfeit_v or_o real_a have_v inspire_v those_o for_o who_o they_o be_v make_v with_o the_o design_n to_o effect_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v promise_v they_o after_o all_o when_o god_n discover_v any_o truth_n of_o this_o nature_n he_o have_v his_o reason_n for_o do_v so_o and_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o resist_v it_o upon_o pretence_n of_o some_o ill_a consequence_n that_o will_v follow_v jeremy_n during_o the_o siege_n of_o jerusalem_n declare_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o the_o chaldean_n will_v take_v the_o city_n shall_v he_o have_v forbear_v to_o speak_v that_o truth_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o he_o because_o of_o some_o ill_a consequence_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o nothing_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o lessen_v the_o courage_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o take_n of_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n than_o such_o a_o discourse_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o other_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v to_o say_v on_o this_o first_o scandal_n be_v this_o that_o such_o who_o take_v occasion_n from_o this_o book_n to_o continue_v in_o the_o roman_a superstition_n wait_v for_o deliverance_n have_v no_o need_n of_o this_o book_n to_o cherish_v the_o disposition_n they_o be_v in_o to_o remain_v there_o they_o be_v people_n who_o only_o search_v for_o pretence_n to_o flatter_v themselves_o in_o the_o condition_n they_o be_v in_o and_o can_v never_o want_v they_o either_o here_o or_o there_o from_o this_o thing_n or_o another_o but_o in_o truth_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o ridiculous_a than_o to_o take_v occasion_n from_o hence_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o three_o or_o four_o year_n or_o more_o there_o will_v be_v a_o great_a change_n in_o the_o papacy_n we_o must_v then_o remain_v there_o wait_v till_o that_o change_n happen_v it_o be_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n as_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o in_o
of_o the_o future_a prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n the_o 21_o and_o 22._o chap._n of_o the_o apocalypse_n interpret_v that_o in_o those_o chapter_n the_o church_n be_v describe_v as_o victorious_a upon_o earth_n and_o not_o as_o triumphant_a in_o heaven_n pag._n 357_o chap._n xxiv_o the_o character_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o church_n eight_o be_v certain_a and_o five_o doubtful_a what_o shall_v happen_v after_o this_o kingdom_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o gog_n and_o magog_n there_o shall_v probable_o be_v a_o lesser_a kind_n of_o antichrist_n a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n pag._n 375_o chap._n xxv_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o anti-millinaries_a against_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n pag._n 388_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n or_o the_o approach_v deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o antichristian-empire_n &_o its_o character_n chap._n i._n of_o the_o seven_o epistle_n to_o the_o seven_o church_n that_o in_o all_o probability_n they_o be_v not_o prophetical_a the_o thought_n of_o interpreter_n thereupon_o when_o i_o undertake_v this_o work_n i_o have_v no_o design_n to_o make_v a_o complete_a commentary_n on_o that_o which_o be_v prophetical_a in_o the_o revelation_n as_o do_v appear_v in_o the_o first_o edition_n however_o when_o i_o observe_v that_o without_o design_v it_o i_o have_v explain_v almost_o the_o whole_a apocalypse_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o as_o for_o three_o or_o four_o chapter_n that_o remain_v to_o be_v explain_v i_o ought_v not_o to_o leave_v they_o behind_o though_o they_o have_v no_o respect_n to_o the_o scope_n of_o this_o book_n which_o be_v to_o find_v out_o antichrist_n &_o learn_v when_o his_o empire_n must_v end_v when_o one_o see_v a_o system_fw-la that_o be_v very_o perfect_a &_o well_o attend_v with_o all_o the_o event_n foretell_v in_o this_o book_n this_o will_v give_v such_o a_o fair_a aspect_n of_o truth_n to_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o as_o will_v be_v most_o easy_o perceive_v moreover_o the_o public_a may_v have_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o portraiture_n of_o antichrist_n i_o have_v refer_v the_o reader_n in_o many_o chapter_n as_o in_o the_o 13_o &_o the_o 17_o to_o my_o book_n of_o prejudices_fw-la now_o we_o i_o have_v promise_v to_o epitomise_v the_o book_n of_o prejudices_fw-la i_o think_v it_o will_v be_v more_o proper_a to_o bring_v out_o of_o that_o book_n into_o this_o present_a work_n all_o that_o respect_v the_o prophecy_n &_o their_o explication_n on_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o description_n of_o antichristianism_n than_o to_o refer_v a_o part_n of_o this_o to_o another_o book_n so_o that_o in_o this_o second_o edition_n there_o will_v be_v find_v a_o explication_n of_o all_o that_o be_v prophetical_a in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n we_o believe_v with_o the_o learned_a joseph_n mede_n that_o this_o book_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n the_o first_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 5_o ch._n and_o the_o second_o in_o the_o book_n which_o the_o angel_n give_v to_o st._n john_n in_o the_o 10_o ch._n the_o two_o little_a book_n move_v upon_o the_o same_o time_n the_o one_o &_o the_o other_o reach_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o they_o donot_v say_v the_o same_o thing_n &_o have_v not_o the_o same_o object_n for_o the_o first_o little_a book_n that_o appear_v seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n principal_o respect_v the_o affair_n &_o the_o adventure_n of_o the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n viz._n the_o temporal_a roman_a empire_n and_o the_o second_o book_n contain_v the_o destiny_n of_o the_o church_n corrupt_v during_o the_o same_o age_n &_o the_o same_o duration_n of_o time_n this_o be_v what_o we_o call_v the_o spiritual_a roman_a empire_n i_o say_v that_o the_o first_o book_n contain_v proper_o the_o destiny_n of_o the_o empire_n not_o but_o that_o those_o of_o the_o church_n be_v include_v in_o it_o too_o for_o that_o which_o god_n foretell_v shall_v befall_v the_o roman_a empire_n be_v always_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n to_o its_o persecution_n &_o the_o great_a change_n that_o befall_v it_o so_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o the_o whole_a work_n respect_v the_o church_n but_o the_o second_o little_a book_n which_o reach_v from_o the_o 10_o chapter_n to_o the_o end_n respect_v the_o church_n &_o what_o be_v to_o befall_v it_o much_o more_o particular_o yea_o &_o more_o clear_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v the_o seven_o epistle_n to_o seven_o principal_a church_n of_o asia_n prophetical_a q._n whether_o the_o seven_o epistle_n be_v prophetical_a contain_v in_o the_o three_o first_o chapter_n it_o be_v very_o much_o question_v whether_o these_o epistle_n be_v prophetical_a or_o not_o some_o maintain_v that_o they_o be_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o heat_n &_o other_o deny_v it_o as_o for_o i_o i_o have_v nothing_o certain_a to_o say_v upon_o it_o so_o that_o i_o will_v not_o raise_v a_o prejudice_n against_o any_o person_n or_o any_o opinion_n by_o my_o own_o though_o i_o be_o much_o more_o incline_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o prophecy_n in_o they_o but_o that_o all_o that_o be_v say_v in_o these_o epistle_n refer_v to_o thing_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o those_o seven_o church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o revelation_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o epistle_n this_o be_v clear_a by_o its_o beginning_n &_o end_n now_o it_o be_v not_o usual_a with_o the_o apostle_n to_o direct_v their_o epistle_n to_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o general_a of_o all_o place_n &_o all_o time_n as_o some_o will_v have_v st._n john_n here_o to_o have_v do_v the_o apostle_n be_v wont_v in_o their_o epistle_n to_o rank_n in_o the_o first_o place_n what_o they_o have_v which_o be_v dogmatical_a &_o prophetical_a to_o write_v of_o &_o afterward_o come_v that_o which_o respect_v what_o be_v moral_a this_o be_v the_o method_n of_o st._n paul._n st._n john_n on_o the_o contrary_a in_o this_o epistle_n set_v that_o which_o be_v moral_a therein_o before_o that_o which_o be_v prophetical_a the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o little_o design_v to_o stay_v upon_o that_o which_o be_v moral_a &_o his_o principal_a aim_n be_v to_o relate_v the_o vision_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o therefore_o he_o dispatch_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o which_o be_v to_o make_v the_o least_o part_n of_o his_o epistle_n &_o which_o be_v less_o important_a that_o without_o diversion_n he_o may_v stick_v to_o that_o which_o he_o principal_o intend_v therein_o i_o see_v but_o one_o thing_n that_o seem_v mighty_o to_o favour_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v that_o the_o seven_o epistle_n be_v prophetical_a church_n why_o the_o h._n spirit_n write_v but_o to_o seven_o church_n it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o why_o do_v the_o h._n spirit_n write_v to_o no_o more_o than_o seven_o church_n be_v there_o not_o many_o more_o in_o asia_n be_v these_o the_o only_a one_o in_o which_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v reprove_v or_o to_o who_o the_o h._n spirit_n have_v something_o to_o say_v it_o seem_v therefore_o that_o the_o seven_o church_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o all_o age_n divide_v into_o seven_o period_n but_o this_o reason_n do_v not_o appear_v strong_a enough_o to_o i_o first_o because_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o be_v evident_o consecrate_v in_o the_o revelation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n use_v it_o in_o count_v up_o all_o thing_n the_o seven_o spirit_n seven_o lamp_n seven_o angel_n etc._n etc._n sure_o whatever_n we_o understand_v hereby_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o number_n of_o spirit_n of_o lamp_n &_o of_o angel_n be_v not_o reduce_v to_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o not_o but_o that_o oftentimes_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o in_o the_o revelation_n must_v be_v take_v for_o a_o determinate_a number_n as_o in_o the_o seven_o seal_n in_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n &_o the_o seven_o vial_n but_o that_o be_v when_o the_o division_n of_o time_n into_o period_n be_v treat_v of_o now_o this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v doubtful_a that_o by_o these_o seven_o church_n be_v mean_v seven_o period_n and_o we_o shall_v also_o see_v hereafter_o that_o what_o be_v say_v to_o these_o seven_o church_n do_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v with_o the_o event_n in_o what_o manner_n soever_o the_o time_n be_v divide_v so_o that_o this_o only_a thing_n that_o the_o h._n spirit_n make_v here_o seven_o church_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v so_o many_o period_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o by_o these_o he_o mean_v all_o
the_o other_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o if_o any_o will_v have_v it_o so_o all_o those_o that_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o world_n and_o he_o choose_v among_o these_o seven_o the_o name_n of_o the_o principal_a one_o intend_v that_o the_o other_o lesser_a church_n shall_v reckon_v that_o as_o speak_v concern_v their_o present_a estate_n which_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o seven_o principal_a one_o among_o they_o two_o who_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n more_o than_o seven_o considerable_a church_n in_o asia_n the_o other_o be_v so_o very_a much_o below_o these_o for_o dignity_n grandeur_n &_o excellency_n that_o the_o h._n spirit_n judge_v it_o not_o proper_a to_o make_v any_o account_n of_o they_o the_o advertisement_n that_o he_o give_v to_o these_o seven_o church_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o disorder_n which_o may_v be_v in_o all_o the_o other_o which_o disorder_n be_v apparent_o the_o same_o for_o it_o be_v usual_a enough_o for_o little_a flock_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o great_a one_o last_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o what_o follow_v have_v divide_v the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n since_o j._n christ_n time_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n or_o to_o the_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n kingdom_n into_o seven_o period_n for_o the_o seven_o seal_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n the_o seven_o vial_n do_v not_o each_o of_o they_o take_v up_o all_o time_n they_o succeed_v one_o another_o the_o seven_o seal_n bring_v forth_o seven_o trumpet_n &_o the_o six_o trumpet_n be_v subdivide_v into_o seven_o vial_n it_o have_v be_v very_o methodical_a in_o a_o revelation_n after_o have_v obscure_o mark_v out_o the_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o seven_o epistle_n to_o describe_v the_o same_o time_n by_o seven_o other_o character_n more_o observable_a &_o more_o distinct_a this_o be_v indeed_o what_o some_o modern_a writer_n do_v believe_v that_o god_n have_v do_v pretend_v that_o the_o seven_o seal_n &_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n be_v co-temporary_a &_o divide_v the_o duration_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n into_o seven_o period_n as_o the_o seven_o epistle_n to_o the_o seven_o church_n do_v but_o this_o opinion_n will_v not_o appear_v probable_a to_o those_o that_o study_v the_o prophecy_n &_o the_o event_n with_o any_o application_n of_o mind_n i_o look_v on_o that_o as_o nothing_o that_o be_v say_v to_o support_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n viz._n that_o we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o such_o thing_n happen_v in_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n which_o be_v there_o name_v as_o have_v any_o resemblance_n with_o what_o the_o h._n spirit_n say_v to_o they_o how_o shall_v we_o see_v it_o see_v we_o have_v not_o the_o particular_a history_n of_o those_o church_n in_o that_o time_n beside_o though_o we_o do_v not_o know_v the_o particular_n of_o those_o event_n yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o seven_o epistle_n which_o do_v not_o very_o well_o agree_v with_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n that_o then_o be_v without_o any_o necessity_n to_o seek_v out_o event_n mystical_o mean_v in_o future_a age_n happy_a the_o application_n that_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seven_o epistle_n to_o the_o seven_o period_n be_v not_o happy_a the_o principal_a thing_n that_o hinder_v i_o from_o close_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o prophetical_a sense_n of_o the_o epistle_n be_v that_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o application_n which_o be_v make_v of_o they_o to_o the_o age_n that_o have_v past_a since_o the_o apostle_n do_v answer_n expectation_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v some_o place_n where_o the_o application_n be_v not_o unhappy_a but_o see_v this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o every_o where_o i_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v hit_v lucky_o by_o chance_n otherwise_o the_o prophecy_n shall_v every_v where_o agree_v with_o the_o event_n to_o the_o end_n one_o may_v better_o judge_v of_o the_o force_n of_o this_o last_o reason_n i_o shall_v set_v down_o two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o mystical_a interpretation_n that_o be_v give_v to_o these_o epistle_n this_o will_v please_v those_o who_o can_v or_o will_v not_o go_v to_o seek_v they_o in_o their_o spring_n i_o begin_v with_o that_o of_o patrick_n forbes_n a_o scotch_a divine_a forbes_n the_o explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n by_o forbes_n that_o live_v &_o die_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o age_n according_a to_o he_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n signify_v the_o primitive_a church_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n the_o praise_n which_o the_o h._n spirit_n give_v it_o i_o know_v thy_o work_n &_o thy_o labour_n &_o how_o thou_o can_v not_o bear_v they_o which_o be_v evil_a etc._n etc._n these_o praise_n i_o say_v may_v well_o agree_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n but_o those_o which_o god_n give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n afterward_o be_v great_a yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o four_o period_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o come_v near_o the_o church_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n in_o fervency_n &_o purity_n the_o nicolaitan_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o this_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n may_v signify_v all_o the_o heretic_n all_o the_o kind_n be_v mean_v by_o one_o but_o see_v the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n have_v have_v its_o heretic_n this_o character_n can_v distinguish_v this_o period_n from_o the_o other_o the_o second_o epistle_n be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n &_o forbes_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v the_o period_n in_o which_o the_o arrian_n macedonian_n nestorian_n &_o eutychian_o reign_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o period_n will_v comprehend_v the_o four_o &_o the_o five_o age._n but_o how_o can_v these_o word_n be_v apply_v to_o those_o age_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n &_o thy_o tribulation_n &_o thy_o poverty_n but_o thou_o be_v rich_a &_o i_o know_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o those_o that_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n but_o be_v not_o but_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n see_v here_o be_v praise_n that_o be_v no_o whit_n inferior_a to_o those_o that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o church_n in_o these_o age_n be_v corrupt_v &_o lose_v all_o the_o beauty_n it_o have_v in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n its_o manner_n be_v corrupt_v &_o its_o worship_n be_v mar_v by_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n &_o the_o worship_n of_o relic_n what_o will_v become_v of_o that_o persecution_n of_o ten_o day_n that_o god_n predict_v to_o this_o church_n of_o smyrna_n it_o be_v true_a the_o church_n be_v persecute_v under_o the_o arrian_n emperor_n but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v very_o well_o why_o this_o be_v describe_v by_o number_n of_o ten_o day_n the_o three_o epistle_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n &_o according_a to_o forbes_n this_o be_v the_o period_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n the_o forego_v period_n be_v but_o of_o two_o or_o three_o hundred_o year_n this_o must_v be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n here_o be_v find_v something_o that_o be_v pretty_a like_o this_o period_n i_o know_v where_o thou_o dwell_v even_o where_o satan_n seat_n be_v to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v that_o the_o martyr_n antipas_n speak_v of_o in_o this_o epistle_n signify_v antipapa_n a_o enemy_n oppose_v the_o pope_n &_o that_o this_o signify_v all_o those_o that_o have_v oppose_v the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n but_o the_o rest_n do_v by_o no_o mean_n agree_v to_o this_o period_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n &_o that_o thou_o hold_v fast_v my_o name_n &_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o faith_n these_o praise_n do_v by_o no_o nean_n belong_v to_o a_o church_n so_o corrupt_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o three_o period_n under_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n thou_o have_v they_o that_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o balaam_n who_o teach_v balak_n to_o cast_v a_o stumbling-block_n before_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n to_o eat_v thing_n sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n &_o to_o commit_v fornication_n by_o this_o must_v be_v mean_v those_o evil_a christian_n that_o join_v in_o with_o the_o antichristian_a idolatry_n now_o these_o people_n be_v not_o well_o describe_v by_o thou_o have_v they_o for_o this_o import_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o the_o society_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a under_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n the_o great_a part_n of_o man_n do_v partake_v of_o his_o abomination_n the_o four_o epistle_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n to_o which_o the_o h._n spirit_n give_v these_o great_a praise_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n &_o charity_n &_o service_n &_o patience_n &_o that_o thy_o last_o work_n be_v more_o than_o the_o
the_o earth_n beside_o all_o other_o inconvenience_n this_o system_fw-la have_v this_o further_a viz._n that_o beside_o these_o seven_o period_n a_o eight_o must_v be_v add_v for_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o church_n on_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o &_o the_o time_n be_v never_o in_o any_o prophecy_n divide_v into_o eight_o more_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n according_a to_o dr._n hen._n more_o dr._n henry_n more_n be_v one_o of_o the_o last_o that_o have_v spend_v his_o labour_n on_o the_o revelation_n he_o believe_v also_o that_o these_o seven_o epistle_n be_v mystical_a &_o prophetical_a &_o see_v how_o he_o understand_v they_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v the_o period_n that_o run_v out_o from_o j._n christ_n time_n to_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o nero_n empire_n see_v here_o a_o period_n short_a enough_o there_o be_v not_o usual_o so_o great_a a_o inequality_n between_o the_o period_n that_o divide_v the_o time_n in_o the_o prophecy_n moreover_o one_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n in_o this_o epistle_n that_o may_v not_o as_o happy_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o two_o follow_a age_n as_o to_o the_o first_o so_o that_o this_o application_n be_v pure_o arbitrary_a and_o without_o any_o ground_n the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n be_v the_o period_n from_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o nero_n to_o the_o year_n 324._o i_o e._n to_o the_o reign_n of_o constantine_n and_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a this_o fall_v in_o with_o cocceius_n notion_n wherefore_o i_o can_v approve_v of_o it_o for_o the_o reason_n abovementioned_a pergamus_n according_a to_o dr._n more_o signify_v the_o church_n from_o the_o year_n 324._o to_o the_o year_n 1242._o during_o which_o time_n the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n be_v establish_v take_v in_o the_o time_n in_o which_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v extinguish_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o explication_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o satan_n i_o know_v where_o thou_o dwell_v even_o where_o satan_n seat_n be_v and_o the_o martyr_n antipas_n that_o signify_v according_a to_o this_o author_n antipope_n or_o contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v a_o little_a glitter_a light_n but_o i_o be_o much_o afraid_a it_o be_v a_o deceitful_a one_o for_o first_o why_o shall_v we_o comprehend_v in_o this_o empire_n of_o satan_n the_o reign_v of_o constantine_n and_o theodosius_n which_o be_v so_o happy_a for_o the_o church_n two_o why_o shall_v it_o be_v say_v to_o this_o antichristian_a period_n i_o know_v thy_o good_a work_n and_o that_o thou_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o name_n see_v there_o never_o be_v few_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o truth_n than_o in_o this_o period_n if_o ever_o the_o church_n may_v be_v accuse_v of_o have_v renounce_v the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichristianism_n which_o be_v call_v a_o apostasy_n so_o that_o this_o article_n do_v not_o hit_v well_o but_o that_o which_o follow_v do_v much_o worse_a thyatira_n according_a to_o this_o author_n be_v the_o church_n from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o albigenses_n be_v destroy_v to_o that_o time_n that_o entire_a nation_n abandon_v the_o communion_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v it_o may_v be_v a_o time_n the_o most_o barren_a in_o virtue_n and_o the_o most_o overwhelm_v with_o superstition_n that_o ever_o be_v since_o jesus_n christ_n yet_o must_v this_o great_a praise_n be_v attribute_v to_o it_o i_o know_v thy_o work_n and_o thy_o patience_n and_o thy_o charity_n and_o that_o thy_o last_o work_n be_v more_o than_o the_o first_o what_o be_v say_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n which_o it_o be_v pretend_v be_v the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v not_o so_o honourable_a nor_o so_o great_a thou_o suffer_v the_o woman_n jezabel_n that_o call_v herself_o a_o prophetess_n how_o can_v this_o be_v apply_v to_o those_o age_n that_o have_v run_v out_o since_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o albigenses_n to_o the_o reformation_n jezabel_n that_o roman_a whore_n have_v not_o only_o be_v suffer_v and_o tolerate_v she_o have_v reign_v with_o less_o contradiction_n than_o in_o any_o age._n sardis_n be_v the_o five_o church_n which_o signify_v the_o five_o period_n according_a to_o dr._n more_o and_o this_o period_n be_v that_o of_o the_o reformation_n to_o the_o last_o vial_n i.e._n to_o the_o last_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v to_o this_o church_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n say_v thou_o have_v a_o name_n to_o live_v but_o behold_v thou_o be_v dead_a can_v it_o be_v imagine_v that_o god_n shall_v give_v such_o great_a praise_n to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v since_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o albigenses_n till_o the_o reformation_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o speak_v with_o so_o much_o disdain_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n what_o comparison_n be_v there_o between_o the_o church_n in_o its_o reformation_n &_o that_o corrupt_a church_n wherein_o hardly_o any_o be_v to_o be_v find_v that_o preserve_v himself_o from_o the_o mighty_a corruption_n of_o error_n and_o vice_n philadelphia_n which_o be_v the_o six_o church_n signify_v a_o six_o period_n wherein_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v entire_o ruin_v and_o the_o infidel_n nation_n be_v convert_v this_o be_v to_o divine_a and_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n say_v to_o the_o six_o church_n do_v not_o exact_o import_v any_o such_o thing_n last_o laodicea_n of_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v in_o such_o disadvantageous_a term_n be_v the_o church_n that_o must_v fall_v into_o decay_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o people_n and_o this_o decay_n must_v bring_v the_o church_n to_o the_o come_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o the_o earth_n see_v here_o a_o new_a period_n and_o of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o foot-step_n in_o all_o the_o prophecy_n it_o be_v a_o period_n that_o must_v run_v out_o from_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o people_n all_o the_o prophecy_n foretell_v that_o the_o reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v immediate_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n yet_o here_o behold_v a_o period_n that_o separate_v these_o two_o event_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v join_v together_o last_o this_o system_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o same_o inconvenience_n as_o that_o of_o cocceius_n there_o must_v be_v suppose_v a_o eight_o period_n for_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n which_o dr._n more_o acknowledge_v now_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o this_o eight_o period_n be_v altogether_o unknown_a to_o the_o prophet_n for_o we_o do_v not_o any_o where_n find_v that_o the_o time_n have_v be_v divide_v into_o eight_o part_n those_o that_o will_v attentive_o reflect_v on_o what_o we_o have_v just_a now_o say_v will_v confess_v if_o i_o be_o not_o much_o mistake_v either_o that_o these_o epistle_n to_o the_o seven_o church_n be_v not_o prophetical_a or_o that_o the_o mystery_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v discover_v for_o nothing_o that_o have_v be_v say_v about_o they_o have_v this_o certain_a character_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v obvious_a to_o every_o one_o the_o prophecy_n must_v be_v like_o aenigma_n which_o till_o they_o have_v be_v well_o explain_v seem_v unintelligible_a but_o when_o one_o have_v hit_v right_a upon_o they_o they_o appear_v so_o clear_a that_o they_o can_v otherwise_o be_v understand_v chap._n ii_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o four_o live_a creature_n &_o of_o the_o twenty_o four_o elder_n contain_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n seeing_z there_o be_v nothing_o prophetical_a in_o the_o three_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n we_o may_v go_v on_o to_o the_o four_o chapter_n one_o may_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o open_n of_o this_o great_a &_o divine_a theatre_n on_o which_o these_o admirable_a prophetical_a vision_n will_v immediate_o appear_v the_o entrance_n be_v like_a that_o of_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n god_n appear_v in_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n sit_v on_o a_o magnificent_a throne_n round_o about_o the_o throne_n there_o be_v a_o rainbow_n this_o be_v the_o symbol_n of_o peace_n before_o the_o throne_n there_o be_v a_o sea_n of_o glass_n like_o to_o crystal_n this_o may_v signify_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o we_o be_v wash_v &_o justify_v it_o be_v of_o glass_n &_o of_o crystal_n because_o of_o its_o firmness_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o eternal_a covenant_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v away_o by_o a_o new_a covenant_n but_o that_o which_o be_v most_o considerable_a here_o be_v the_o four_o live_a creature_n &_o the_o twenty_o four_o elder_n that_o be_v round_o about_o
piece_n the_o whole_a earth_n &_o stamp_v the_o residue_n with_o the_o foot_n of_o it_o for_o it_o mortify_v all_o its_o neighbour_n who_o it_o do_v not_o subdue_v the_o 6_o ch._n of_o the_o revel_n belong_v to_o this_o first_o part_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n the_o 8_o ch._n of_o the_o revelation_n add_v to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n for_o it_o show_v the_o degree_n whereby_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v bring_v to_o its_o division_n into_o ten_o kingdom_n 8._o it_o have_v ten_o horn_n &_o i_o consider_v the_o horn_n &_o behold_v there_o come_v up_o among_o they_o another_o little_a horn_n before_o who_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n &_o behold_v in_o this_o horn_n be_v eye_n like_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n &_o a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n 24._o the_o angel_n explain_v this_o place_n say_v the_o ten_o horn_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v ten_o king_n that_o shall_v arise_v &_o another_o shall_v arise_v after_o they_o &_o he_o shall_v be_v diverse_a from_o the_o first_o &_o shall_v subdue_v three_o king_n 25._o and_o he_o shall_v speak_v great_a word_n against_o the_o most_o high_a &_o shall_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a &_o think_v to_o change_v time_n &_o law_n &_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n until_o a_o time_n &_o time_n &_o the_o divide_n of_o time_n see_v the_o division_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n into_o ten_o other_o which_o be_v make_v after_o the_o year_n 450._o we_o shall_v see_v afterward_o which_o be_v these_o ten_o kingdom_n from_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o ten_o come_v up_o a_o little_a horn_n a_o monarch_n that_o appear_v as_o nothing_o a_o priest_n that_o insensible_o increase_v his_o power_n over_o these_o ten_o king_n so_o far_o as_o to_o take_v away_o the_o three_o part_n of_o their_o demain_n jurisdiction_n &_o power_n this_o be_v what_o have_v be_v exact_o accomplish_v in_o the_o papacy_n which_o have_v take_v away_o from_o the_o western_a king_n more_o than_o a_o three_o part_n of_o their_o estate_n which_o be_v become_v church_n land_n &_o dependent_a on_o the_o church_n more_o than_o a_o three_o of_o their_o jurisdiction_n by_o the_o tribunal_n of_o bishop_n &_o official_o who_o draw_v almost_o all_o cause_n to_o they_o under_o the_o pretence_n that_o there_o be_v something_o mingle_v with_o they_o that_o respect_v the_o church_n the_o sacrament_n or_o the_o conscience_n last_o more_o than_o a_o three_o part_n of_o their_o power_n by_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v make_v king_n their_o vassal_n a_o hundred_o way_n beside_o this_o the_o pope_n have_v particular_o overthrow_v these_o three_o kingdom_n that_o of_o the_o greek_n in_o italy_n that_o of_o the_o lombard_n &_o that_o of_o germany_n which_o they_o have_v make_v dependent_a on_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o little_a horn_n speak_v word_n of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n exalt_v itself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n &_o against_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o destroy_v the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o persecute_v they_o even_o to_o blood_n it_o think_v to_o change_v the_o time_n &_o the_o law_n it_o make_v attempt_n against_o the_o divine_a law_n it_o destroy_v god_n command_n &_o dispense_v with_o they_o it_o command_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n &_o creature_n which_o god_n forbid_v it_o permit_v crime_n which_o god_n abominate_v &_o against_o which_o he_o have_v make_v severe_a law_n this_o also_o be_v the_o true_a description_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o papacy_n to_o this_o horn_n be_v give_v a_o time_n &_o time_n &_o the_o divide_v or_o the_o half_a of_o a_o time_n one_o year_n two_o year_n half_o a_o year_n three_o year_n &_o half_a in_o all_o 360._o prophetical_a day_n to_o a_o year_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 1260._o year_n see_v the_o text_n on_o which_o the_o 11_o 13_o &_o 17._o ch._n of_o the_o revel_n be_v a_o comment_n i_o behold_v till_o the_o throne_n be_v cast_v down_o 9_o v._o 9_o &_o the_o ancient_n of_o day_n do_v sit_v who_o garment_n be_v white_a as_o snow_n &_o the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n like_o the_o pure_a wool_n his_o throne_n be_v like_o the_o fiery_a flame_n &_o his_o wheel_n as_o burn_a fire_n a_o fiery_a stream_n issue_v &_o come_v forth_o from_o before_o he_o 10._o v._o 10._o thousand_o thousand_o minister_v to_o he_o &_o ten_o thousand_o time_n ten_o thousand_o stand_v before_o he_o the_o judgement_n be_v set_v &_o the_o book_n be_v open_v i_o behold_v then_o because_o of_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o great_a word_n which_o the_o horn_n speak_v 11_o v._o 11_o i_o behold_v even_o till_o the_o beast_n be_v slay_v &_o his_o body_n destroy_v &_o give_v to_o the_o burn_a flame_n in_o the_o explication_n which_o the_o angel_n give_v daniel_n we_o read_v but_o the_o judgement_n shall_v sit_v 26_o v._o 26_o &_o they_o shall_v take_v away_o his_o dominion_n to_o consume_v &_o to_o destroy_v it_o unto_o the_o end_n and_o the_o kingdom_n &_o do_v minion_n 27._o v._o 27._o &_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a who_o kingdom_n be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n &_o all_o dominion_n shall_v serve_v &_o obey_v he_o the_o judgement_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o the_o last_o judgement_n god_n appear_v sit_v on_o a_o magnificent_a throne_n not_o to_o judge_n the_o whole_a world_n but_o to_o judge_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o four_o monarchy_n in_o its_o antichristian_a period_n &_o to_o deal_v forth_o the_o various_a punishment_n that_o befall_v this_o monarchy_n for_o 7_o or_o 8_o hundred_o year_n to_o bring_v it_o to_o its_o end_n this_o fire_n these_o flame_n these_o wheel_n burn_v like_o fire_n on_o which_o the_o throne_n move_v represent_v the_o greatness_n of_o those_o punishment_n and_o behold_v the_o text_n of_o the_o 9_o ch._n in_o which_o st._n john_n present_v to_o our_o view_n the_o saracen_n &_o the_o turk_n that_o make_v desolate_a the_o roman_n antichristan_n empire_n &_o of_o the_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 18_o &_o 19_o where_o god_n in_o divers_a vision_n represent_v the_o different_a step_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o roman_a antichristian_a empire_n as_o for_o what_o be_v say_v here_o of_o the_o kingdom_n give_v to_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v the_o matter_n &_o text_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 11_o ch._n of_o the_o 20_o 21_o &_o 22._o throughout_o so_o it_o will_v appear_v in_o follow_v the_o path_n which_o we_o be_v enter_v into_o that_o the_o whole_a revelation_n be_v a_o commentary_n on_o ten_o or_o twelve_o verse_n of_o the_o 7_o ch._n of_o daniel_n chap._n iu._n the_o system_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n &_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n that_o denote_v the_o great_a event_n &_o bring_v the_o world_n to_o its_o end_n in_o the_o 4_o ch._n the_o h._n spirit_n open_v the_o scene_n the_o 5_o be_v a_o praeludium_n for_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o 6._o ch._n the_o first_o book_n be_v seal_v with_o seven_o seal_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v very_o obscure_a indeed_o it_o be_v so_o to_o that_o degree_n that_o never_o will_v any_o thing_n be_v say_v on_o this_o first_o part_n of_o the_o revelation_n that_o go_v beyond_o conjecture_n &_o probability_n whereas_o as_o for_o the_o second_o i_o hold_v that_o one_o may_v attain_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o &_o certain_o know_v that_o one_o have_v find_v it_o see_v what_o in_o my_o judgement_n may_v best_o be_v say_v on_o the_o seven_o seal_n teach_v how_o far_o the_o seven_o seal_n teach_v the_o seven_o seal_n certain_o reach_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o not_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o interpreter_n have_v imagine_v in_o divide_v the_o duration_n of_o the_o world_n from_o j._n christ_n to_o its_o end_n into_o seven_o period_n almost_o equal_a the_o six_o first_o seal_n do_v not_o go_v beyond_o 300._o year_n but_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v subdivide_v into_o seven_o trumpet_n &_o do_v produce_v they_o now_o these_o seven_o trumpet_n bring_v the_o event_n even_o to_o the_o last_o judgement_n the_o first_o not_o begin_v till_o after_o the_o 6_o seal_n so_o that_o these_o seven_o seal_n be_v as_o six_o branch_n that_o shoot_v forth_o from_o the_o body_n of_o a_o tree_n with_o a_o seven_o great_a branch_n which_o itself_o become_v a_o great_a arm_n &_o shoot_v forth_o seven_o other_o branch_n as_o for_o this_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v by_o any_o that_o read_v the_o begin_n of_o the_o 7_o ch._n with_o any_o attention_n
to_o find_v out_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n &_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n we_o must_v here_o again_o bring_v in_o that_o observation_n which_o we_o a_o little_a before_o make_v in_o the_o forego_n ch._n viz._n that_o the_o revelation_n contain_v enigmatical_o the_o epitome_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n a_o monarchy_n which_o according_a to_o daniel_n prophecy_n must_v last_v till_o the_o come_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o j._n christ_n on_o the_o earth_n i._n e._n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v to_o insist_v only_o on_o this_o four_o monarchy_n without_o consider_v the_o other_o state_n &_o empire_n of_o the_o world_n because_o it_o be_v that_o only_a that_o daniel_n speak_v of_o after_o the_o three_o first_o beast_n who_o reign_n be_v certain_o pass_v in_o st._n john_n time_n moreover_o it_o be_v under_o this_o four_o monarchy_n &_o in_o the_o extent_n of_o its_o dominion_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v receive_v its_o seat_n &_o its_o rule_n that_o christianity_n that_o be_v find_v beyond_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v almost_o nothing_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o counsel_n which_o be_v assemble_v from_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v call_v ecumenical_a as_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o prophecy_n have_v a_o mediate_v or_o a_o immediate_a relation_n to_o the_o church_n so_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o insist_v only_o on_o those_o state_n in_o which_o the_o church_n have_v be_v nourish_v &_o bring_v up_o there_o be_v a_o three_o reason_n why_o these_o prophecy_n can_v be_v understand_v but_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n viz._n because_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n which_o be_v the_o great_a affair_n that_o happen_v in_o the_o church_n &_o which_o must_v happen_v there_o be_v to_o make_v a_o part_n &_o a_o continuation_n of_o this_o roman_a empire_n for_o antichristianism_n be_v the_o roman_a empire_n continue_v this_o principle_n which_o i_o be_v willing_a to_o repeat_v here_o because_o of_o its_o importance_n will_v serve_v to_o answer_v those_o that_o say_v to_o we_o how_o know_v you_o that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o revelation_n do_v not_o refer_v to_o china_n or_o tartary_n this_o objection_n do_v not_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o understand_v person_n this_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o revelation_n enigmatical_o contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n continue_v revelation_n the_o principal_a catastrophe_n happen_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v istinct_o note_v in_o the_o revelation_n it_o must_v also_o be_v necessary_o suppose_v that_o principal_a &_o great_a change_n that_o happen_v in_o this_o empire_n be_v describe_v in_o large_a character_n &_o with_o some_o note_n of_o distinction_n in_o the_o revelation_n otherwise_o the_o h._n spirit_n will_v not_o act_v according_a to_o his_o profound_a wisdom_n if_o in_o make_v a_o history_n of_o a_o empire_n he_o shall_v omit_v to_o mark_v the_o great_a catastrophe_n that_o be_v to_o happen_v therein_o or_o if_o he_o shall_v hide_v they_o &_o make_v they_o to_o pass_v without_o any_o character_n of_o distinction_n among_o the_o other_o less_o event_n we_o must_v therefore_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o principal_a event_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n see_v here_o they_o be_v 1._o the_o fall_n of_o paganism_n when_o the_o roman_a emperor_n become_v christian_n this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o affair_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o suppose_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n shall_v have_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o 2._o the_o fall_n of_o the_o temporal_a roman_a empire_n when_o it_o be_v divide_v into_o ten_o kingdom_n 3._o the_o erect_v a_o new_a roman_a empire_n or_o rather_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o under_o the_o rule_n of_o antichrist_n 4._o the_o birth_n of_o the_o saracen_n empire_n by_o the_o arabian_n that_o come_v to_o afflict_v the_o roman_a empire_n in_o its_o eastern_a branch_n i.e._n the_o empire_n of_o constantinople_n 5._o the_o power_n of_o the_o turk_n that_o come_v to_o finish_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o greek_a branch_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n &_o to_o lay_v desolate_a the_o latin_a empire_n see_v the_o five_o great_a event_n that_o have_v change_v the_o face_n of_o the_o word_n &_o of_o the_o empire_n wherefore_o i_o be_o persuade_v these_o must_v be_v find_v in_o the_o revelation_n with_o character_n of_o distinction_n let_v we_o suppose_v therefore_o that_o in_o all_o the_o place_n where_o there_o be_v a_o notable_a distinction_n there_o we_o must_v find_v one_o of_o these_o notable_a event_n the_o first_o distinction_n be_v find_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o seal_n after_o the_o open_n this_o seal_n there_o happen_v a_o great_a earthquake_n the_o sun_n be_v eclypse_v &_o the_o moon_n become_v red_a as_o blood_n the_o star_n fall_v afterward_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o seal_n be_v interrupt_v by_o a_o new_a vision_n that_o come_v between_o in_o which_o a_o angel_n mark_v the_o elect_a among_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n twelve_o thousand_o of_o every_o tribe_n after_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n return_v to_o the_o seven_o seal_n under_o which_o nothing_o be_v do_v beside_o the_o distribution_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n to_o seven_o angel_n that_o must_v sound_v the_o successive_o it_o be_v clear_a this_o be_v a_o epocha_n a_o point_n on_o which_o the_o h._n spirit_n will_v have_v our_o thought_n to_o dwell_v this_o first_o character_n of_o distinction_n must_v to_o all_o appearance_n be_v affix_v to_o the_o first_o distinct_a event_n that_o happen_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n that_o be_v the_o fall_n of_o paganism_n so_o that_o in_o the_o open_n of_o the_o six_o seal_n we_o must_v find_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o pagan_a religion_n the_o second_o very_o observable_a distinction_n be_v find_v at_o the_o four_o trumpet_n there_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sun_n be_v in_o like_a mannereclypse_v the_o moon_n &_o the_o star_n suffer_v the_o like_a diminution_n in_o their_o light_n after_o which_o the_o process_n of_o the_o trumpet_n be_v interrupt_v by_o a_o new_a vision_n viz._n that_o of_o a_o angel_n that_o fly_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n &_o cry_v three_o time_n woe_n to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o of_o the_o three_o last_o trumpet_n which_o be_v yet_o to_o sound_v this_o be_v a_o evident_a distinction_n &_o this_o second_o distinction_n must_v signify_v to_o we_o the_o second_o distinct_a event_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n viz._n its_o fall_n &_o division_n among_o ten_o king_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v after_o valentinian_n the_o 3d._n in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o five_o age._n the_o make_v a_o new_a vision_n &_o a_o new_a angel_n cry_v woe_n there_o time_n go_v before_o the_o sound_a the_o 5_o trumpet_z be_v also_o a_o mark_n of_o distinction_n for_o that_o 5_o trumpet_z which_o signify_v to_o we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o event_n great_o distinguish_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o this_o three_o distinction_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o any_o thing_n but_o the_o three_o notable_a event_n that_o befall_v the_o roman_a empire_n viz._n the_o birth_n of_o the_o saracen_n empire_n by_o mahomet_n &_o his_o successor_n that_o do_v so_o cruel_o afflict_v the_o roman_a empire_n in_o the_o empire_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o great_a &_o the_o most_o noble_a part_n of_o these_o ten_o into_o which_o this_o empire_n be_v divide_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o turk_n at_o the_o bottom_n be_v but_o a_o branch_n of_o the_o arabian_a &_o saracen_n empire_n wherefore_o it_o do_v not_o deserve_v so_o great_a a_o distinction_n as_o the_o other_o great_a event_n of_o which_o we_o have_v just_a now_o speak_v and_o yet_o the_o h._n spirit_n be_v content_a to_o distinguish_v it_o by_o a_o very_a long_a description_n the_o five_o &_o six_o trumpet_n contain_v a_o entire_a chapter_n whereas_o the_o four_o first_o trumpet_n be_v finish_v in_o 6._o or_o 7._o verse_n which_o signify_v that_o this_o five_o and_o six_o trumpet_n must_v be_v concern_v great_a affair_n and_o evil_n of_o a_o long_a duration_n as_o for_o that_o great_a event_n which_o be_v to_o happen_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o wereckon_v for_o the_o three_o viz._n the_o erection_n of_o a_o new_a roman_a empire_n or_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o same_o empire_n under_o the_o new_a name_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v so_o great_a a_o affair_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v not_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o revelation_n he_o have_v reserve_v it_o to_o make_v it_o the_o subject_a
say_v we_o must_v find_v the_o fall_n of_o paganism_n indeed_o a_o little_a time_n after_o dioclesian_n constantine_n ascend_v the_o throne_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o make_v the_o christian_a religion_n reign_n he_o &_o his_o successor_n ruin_v paganism_n this_o fall_n of_o the_o pagan_a religion_n be_v thus_o represent_v to_o we_o and_o i_o behold_v when_o he_o have_v open_v the_o six_o seal_n &_o lo_o there_o be_v a_o great_a earthquake_n 12._o v._o 12._o &_o the_o sun_n become_v black_a as_o sackcloth_n of_o hair_n &_o the_o moon_n become_v red_a as_o blood_n and_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n fall_v to_o the_o earth_n even_o as_o a_o figtree_n cast_v her_o untimely_a fig_n 13._o v._o 13._o when_o she_o be_v shake_v of_o a_o mighty_a wind._n and_o the_o heaven_n depart_v as_o a_o scroll_n when_o it_o be_v roll_v together_o 14._o v._o 14._o &_o every_o mountain_n &_o island_n be_v move_v out_o of_o their_o place_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n 15._o v._o 15._o &_o the_o great_a man_n &_o the_o rich_a man_n &_o the_o chief_a captain_n &_o the_o mighty_a man_n &_o every_o bondman_n &_o every_o freeman_n his_o themselves_o in_o the_o den_n &_o in_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o mountain_n and_o say_v to_o the_o mountain_n &_o rock_n 16._o v._o 16._o fall_v on_o we_o &_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o face_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n &_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb._n for_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v 17._o v._o 17._o &_o who_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v faganism_n the_o fixth_a trumpet_n contain_v the_o fall_n of_o faganism_n all_o these_o image_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o last_o judgement_n wherefore_o they_o be_v usual_o apply_v to_o it_o because_o indeed_o this_o fall_n of_o paganism_n be_v the_o most_o terrible_a judgement_n that_o yet_o ever_o fall_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n on_o the_o devil_n empire_n we_o must_v know_v that_o in_o the_o whole_a revelation_n we_o see_v these_o three_o head_n reign_v the_o dragon_n the_o beast_n the_o false_a prophet_n the_o dragon_n be_v the_o devil_n the_o beast_n be_v the_o roman_a empire_n the_o false_a prophet_n be_v the_o pope_n the_o dragon_n have_v two_o empire_n the_o first_o be_v pure_a paganism_n &_o pure_o pagan_a the_o second_o be_v antichristian_a paganism_n mingle_v with_o christianity_n see_v here_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o first_o empire_n that_o be_v the_o pure_o pagan_a empire_n of_o the_o dragon_n 1._o there_o be_v a_o great_a earthquake_n in_o the_o style_n of_o the_o prophet_n &_o particular_o of_o st._n john_n a_o earthquake_n always_o signify_v a_o change_n of_o the_o face_n of_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n because_o earthquake_n overturn_v the_o earth_n &_o make_v it_o change_v its_o face_n now_o what_o change_n of_o the_o face_n of_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n can_v be_v imagine_v great_a than_o that_o which_o happen_v under_o constantine_n &_o his_o successor_n the_o church_n have_v be_v beat_v down_o massacre_v it_o be_v bathe_v in_o its_o own_o blood_n &_o all_o on_o a_o sudden_a behold_v it_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v become_v rich_a &_o powerful_a it_o build_v stately_a temple_n it_o overturn_v the_o temple_n of_o idol_n 2._o the_o sun_n become_v black_a as_o sackcloth_n we_o must_v hold_v it_o for_o certain_a that_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n &_o the_o star_n in_o the_o revelation_n always_o signify_v the_o sovereign_n the_o dignity_n &_o power_n of_o the_o empire_n treat_v of_o we_o shall_v afterward_o see_v this_o every_o where_n here_o the_o empire_n treat_v of_o be_v that_o of_o the_o red_a dragon_n viz._n the_o devil_n so_o that_o the_o sun_n be_v the_o sovereign_n of_o that_o empire_n who_o be_v the_o devil_n himself_o the_o moon_n be_v the_o pagan_a religion_n which_o borrow_v all_o its_o power_n from_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o moon_n take_v all_o its_o light_n from_o the_o sun._n the_o star_n be_v the_o pontifexes_n &_o priest_n of_o paganism_n all_o these_o power_n suffer_v a_o eclipse_n be_v destroy_v by_o the_o christian_a emperor_n &_o tumble_v to_o the_o ground_n like_o fig_n by_o a_o great_a wind_n 3._o every_o mountain_n &_o every_o isle_n be_v remove_v out_o of_o their_o place_n i._n e._n the_o temple_n the_o idol_n the_o city_n the_o place_n peculiar_o consecrate_v to_o the_o devotion_n of_o certain_a pagan_a divinity_n be_v change_v &_o superstition_n therein_o be_v abolish_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n fall_v heavy_o on_o the_o god_n of_o the_o roman_n as_o former_o it_o do_v on_o the_o god_n of_o the_o egyptian_n 4._o last_o the_o king_n &_o all_o man_n of_o every_o age_n &_o condition_n be_v exceed_o terrify_v run_v up_o &_o down_o flee_v hide_v themselves_o &_o endeavour_v to_o escape_v the_o judgement_n &_o the_o wrath_n of_o god._n one_o may_v have_v see_v above_o a_o hundred_o time_n more_o than_o what_o the_o prophet_n here_o say_v if_o one_o can_v have_v see_v the_o commotion_n that_o then_o happen_v the_o terror_n the_o distress_n the_o fright_n that_o the_o invisible_a empire_n of_o demon_n suffer_v at_o the_o fall_n of_o paganism_n all_o that_o the_o devil_n suffer_v at_o the_o come_n of_o j._n christ_n into_o the_o world_n be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o this_o he_o reign_v notwithstanding_o he_o be_v master_n of_o empire_n crown_n temple_n altar_n but_o all_o on_o a_o sudden_a &_o at_o that_o very_a time_n when_o he_o think_v he_o have_v entire_o ruin_v the_o empire_n of_o j._n christ_n by_o the_o persecution_n of_o dioclesian_n behold_v he_o himself_o cast_v down_o on_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o judge_n that_o the_o horror_n &_o commotion_n of_o the_o evil_a spirit_n be_v unconceivable_a and_o moreover_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o this_o great_a body_n of_o pontifexes_n priest_n &_o pagan_a minister_n feel_v a_o prodigious_a commotion_n when_o constantine_n turn_v christian_n &_o his_o successor_n beat_v down_o &_o ruin_v all_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o idol_n history_n tell_v we_o enough_o of_o this_o &_o though_o it_o say_v nothing_o it_o will_v be_v very_o easy_a to_o apprehend_v that_o the_o image_n here_o make_v use_n of_o be_v not_o too_o lively_a to_o represent_v the_o commotion_n of_o the_o heathen_n &_o of_o paganism_n this_o period_n bring_v we_o to_o theodosius_n the_o great_a under_o who_o paganism_n expire_v but_o after_o who_o also_o the_o glory_n &_o quiet_a of_o the_o empire_n be_v quite_o lose_v as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n &_o paganism_n fall_v at_o the_o same_o time_n this_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n of_o triumph_n to_o the_o pagan_n who_o say_v the_o god_n have_v abandon_v the_o empire_n since_o their_o altar_n have_v be_v beat_v down_o but_o god_n be_v provide_v for_o great_a event_n &_o it_o be_v necessary_a the_o temporal_a empire_n shall_v fall_v to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o spiritual_a empire_n of_o antichrist_n chap._n vi_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o four_o first_o trumpet_n which_o be_v the_o five_o degree_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n or_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o rome_n the_o 7_o ch._n be_v a_o vision_n that_o interrupt_v the_o course_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n ch._n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o 144_o thousand_o seal_a person_n in_o the_o seven_o ch._n here_o god_n cause_v his_o elect_n to_o be_v seal_v &_o their_o number_n amount_v to_o 144_o thousand_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o process_n of_o this_o discourse_n that_o 144_o be_v a_o sacred_a number_n appoint_v to_o signify_v the_o church_n a_o number_n that_o arise_v from_o twelve_o multiply_v by_o itself_o for_o the_o present_a it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o observe_v that_o god_n take_v the_o time_n between_o the_o six_o seal_n &_o the_o first_o trumpet_n to_o cause_v his_o elect_a to_o be_v seal_v because_o more_o unhappy_a sad_a &_o much_o more_o fatal_a time_n be_v at_o hand_n than_o the_o forego_n once_o in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n &_o under_o the_o seal_n there_o be_v cruel_a persecution_n man_n have_v suffer_v much_o in_o their_o body_n but_o under_o the_o trumpet_n must_v come_v the_o dark_a kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o christian-church_n must_v be_v attack_v with_o spiritual_a temptation_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o superstition_n &_o idolatry_n &_o that_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v almost_o as_o nothing_o the_o 144_o thousand_o signify_v the_o church_n the_o pure_a church_n under_o antichrist_n reign_v now_o 144_o thousand_o be_v almost_o nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o innumerable_a multitude_n that_o be_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n this_o little_a number_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v seal_v to_o the_o end_n
a_o part_n of_o the_o world._n the_o second_o book_n contain_v the_o destiny_n of_o the_o church_n proper_o take_v as_o a_o church_n &_o distinguish_v from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o world._n this_o be_v a_o much_o better_a notion_n than_o that_o of_o mr._n de_fw-fr launay_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o first_o book_n contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o second_o that_o of_o the_o gospel_n what_o can_v be_v the_o adventure_n of_o the_o gospel_n distinct_a from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n how_o can_v those_o prophecy_n that_o respect_v the_o establishment_n &_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o a_o very_a indirect_a manner_n for_o these_o event_n do_v direct_o respect_v the_o church_n &_o not_o the_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o which_o god_n say_v to_o st._n john_n after_o he_o have_v cause_v he_o to_o swallow_v the_o little_a book_n of_o the_o 10_o 11._o v._o 11._o chapter_n thou_o must_v prophesy_v again_o before_o many_o people_n &_o nation_n &_o tongue_n &_o king_n these_o word_n i_o say_v do_v plain_o show_v that_o this_o be_v a_o prophecy_n whole_o new_a which_o do_v begin_v and_o pass_v over_o again_o all_o the_o period_n of_o time_n this_o be_v so_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o first_o book_n include_v in_o the_o 5._o 6._o 7._o 8._o and_o 9_o chapter_n contain_v the_o destiny_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o the_o various_a change_n that_o be_v to_o befall_v it_o even_o to_o the_o time_n of_o its_o utter_a ruin_n by_o the_o revolt_n of_o the_o tun_n king_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v great_o mistake_v that_o endeavour_n to_o find_v the_o pope_n and_o anti-christ_n in_o the_o star_n of_o the_o 8_o chapter_n call_v wormwood_n it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o the_o 7_o ch._n we_o find_v the_o vision_n of_o the_o 144._o thousand_o person_n that_o be_v seal_v who_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n for_o these_o be_v they_o that_o have_v not_o defile_v their_o garment_n with_o the_o idolatry_n of_o antichrist_n nor_o partake_v of_o his_o fornication_n these_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o two_o witness_n of_o the_o 11_o chapter_n that_o prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n for_o 1260_o day_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n &_o babylon_n the_o h._n ghost_n have_v place_v these_o 144_o thousand_o seal_a person_n in_o the_o destiny_n of_o the_o empire_n immediate_o after_o the_o open_n the_o first_o six_o seal_n &_o before_o the_o open_n of_o the_o seven_o because_o the_o seven_o seal_n be_v to_o be_v subdivide_v into_o seven_o trumpet_n which_o do_v reach_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n empire_n trumpet_n that_o be_v to_o contain_v the_o horrible_a corruption_n of_o the_o church_n the_o birth_n and_o progress_n of_o her_o idolatry_n it_o be_v therefore_o very_o reasonable_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o those_o who_o god_n intend_v to_o exempt_v from_o those_o corruption_n before_o the_o open_n of_o the_o seven_o seal_n which_o be_v to_o bring_v so_o many_o evil_n on_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o the_o world._n this_o in_o my_o opinion_n be_v certain_a that_o the_o destiny_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o begin_v before_o the_o 11_o chapter_n &_o be_v prosecute_v even_o to_o the_o end_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o consider_v the_o chronology_n &_o the_o history_n of_o these_o twelve_o chapter_n from_o the_o 10_o to_o the_o 22_o &_o the_o last_o as_o for_o the_o chronology_n st._n john_n begin_v his_o prophecy_n concern_v the_o church_n either_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a aera_fw-la period_n the_o chrustian_a church_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n must_v be_v divide_v into_o three_o period_n i.e._n from_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n or_o at_o least_o from_o the_o time_n in_o which_o he_o prophesy_v which_o be_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o trajan_n this_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n from_o jesus_n christ_n time_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o general_a period_n the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n which_o be_v those_o of_o her_o purity_n the_o second_o be_v that_o of_o her_o corruption_n idolatry_n &_o antichristianism_n that_o be_v to_o endure_v 1260_o year_n at_o the_o conclusion_n whereof_o a_o end_n must_v be_v put_v to_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n the_o three_o period_n contain_v the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n during_o which_o the_o church_n must_v have_v peace_n &_o after_o which_o must_v follow_v the_o last_o judgement_n the_o first_o of_o these_o period_n be_v the_o short_a not_o last_v above_o 3_o or_o 400_o year_n and_o therefore_o st._n john_n do_v not_o stay_n much_o upon_o it_o this_o be_v the_o period_n which_o he_o describe_v in_o a_o few_o word_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 11_o ch._n and_o there_o be_v give_v to_o i_o a_o reed_n like_o a_o rod_n &_o the_o angel_n stand_v say_v rise_v &_o measure_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n &_o the_o altar_n &_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o but_o the_o court_n which_o be_v without_o the_o temple_n leave_v out_o &_o measure_v it_o not_o for_o it_o be_v give_v to_o the_o gentile_n &_o the_o holy_a city_n shall_v they_o tread_v under_o foot_n forty_o &_o two_o month_n all_o the_o world_n be_v agree_v that_o the_o temple_n build_v by_o solomon_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o god_n be_v a_o emblem_n of_o the_o church_n this_o temple_n have_v two_o court_n a_o inward_a and_o a_o outward_a one_o here_o the_o h._n ghost_n represent_v the_o whole_a duration_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n by_o the_o extent_n of_o this_o temple_n and_o its_o court_n nothing_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o shadow_v forth_o the_o extent_n of_o time_n than_o the_o extent_n of_o place_n this_o inward_a court_n that_o be_v measure_v by_o st._n john_n together_o with_o the_o altar_n &_o they_o that_o worship_n therein_o be_v the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n the_o age_n which_o we_o call_v the_o happy_a time_n of_o the_o church_n which_o reach_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o age_n about_o 360_o or_o 380_o year_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n duration_n till_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o 1000_o year_n be_v shadow_v forth_o by_o the_o outward_a court_n church_n the_o inward_a court_n be_v a_o emblem_n of_o the_o pure_a church_n &_o the_o out_o ward_n court_v a_o emblem_n of_o the_o corrupt_a church_n which_o god_n leave_v to_o the_o gentile_n to_o tread_v under_o food_n 42_o month_n this_o be_v the_o christian_a church_n turn_v pagan_a by_o the_o admission_n of_o secondary_a deity_n mediate_a spirit_n &_o image_n here_o be_v one_o thing_n that_o deserve_v to_o be_v careful_o take_v notice_n of_o between_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o purity_n and_o in_o its_o corruption_n there_o be_v exact_o the_o very_a same_o proportion_n as_o there_o between_o the_o greatness_n &_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o inward_a court_n &_o the_o outward_a one_o those_o that_o have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o compute_v the_o extent_n of_o these_o two_o court_n according_a to_o that_o description_n of_o they_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o in_o the_o jewish_a author_n both_o sacred_a &_o prophanc_fw-la find_v that_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o inward_a court_n to_o that_o without_o ezech._n v._o villalpand_a in_o ezech._n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o one_o to_o three_o &_o a_o half_a now_o there_o be_v the_o very_a same_o proportion_n between_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o corruption_n &_o in_o its_o purity_n the_o corrupt_a church_n last_v 42._o month_n that_o be_v three_o year_n &_o a_o half_n according_a to_o which_o the_o church_n in_o its_o purity_n must_v not_o have_v last_v above_o one_o prophetic_a year_n which_o contain_v 360_o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 360_o year_n indeed_o the_o church_n do_v continue_v in_o its_o purity_n just_a so_o long_o about_o the_o year_n 360_o the_o unhappy_a superstion_n about_o relic_n &_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n begin_v to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n which_o quick_o degenerate_v into_o idolatry_n thus_o the_o reign_n of_o antichristian_a idolatry_n have_v last_v three_o time_n &_o a_o half_a have_v l●sted_v as_o long_o as_o the_o reign_n of_o pure_a christianity_n this_o be_v the_o outward_a court_n that_o be_v leave_v out_o &_o tread_v under_o foot_n by_o the_o gentile_n &_o profane_v by_o idolatry_n &_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a city_n because_o there_o god_n do_v preserve_v his_o elect_a and_o they_o shall_v tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n for_o 42._o month_n it_o be_v chief_o upon_o this_o period_n of_o 42_o month_n that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n do_v turn_v &_o
five_o thing_n be_v co-temporary_a in_o the_o three_o period_n year_n five_o thing_n cotemporary_a in_o the_o period_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n i._o the_o reign_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o a_o 1000_o year_n rev._n 20.4_o ii_o the_o dragon_n that_o be_v bind_v &_o who_o power_n be_v break_v rev._n 20.2_o 3._o iii_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n the_o description_n whereof_o we_o have_v rev._n 21._o &_o 22._o chapter_n iv_o the_o company_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v clothe_v in_o white_a garment_n &_o who_o carry_v palm_n in_o their_o hand_n sing_v this_o song_n salvation_n to_o our_o god_n that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n 7.17_o rev._n 7.10_o rev._n 7.17_o &_o unto_o the_o lamb_n and_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v they_o shall_v hunger_n no_o more_o neither_o thirst_v any_o more_o neither_o shall_v the_o sun_n light_n on_o they_o nor_o any_o heat_n the_o lamb_n shall_v feed_v they_o &_o shall_v lead_v they_o unto_o live_a fountain_n of_o water_n for_o these_o be_v not_o the_o 144_o thousand_o seal_a person_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o begin_n ●f_o the_o 7_o chap._n st._n john_n say_v express_o after_o this_o 9_o v._o 9_o i._n e._n after_o these_o 144_o thousand_o seal_a person_n i_o behold_v &_o lo_o a_o great_a multitude_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v of_o all_o nation_n &_o kindred_n &_o people_n &_o tongue_n stand_v before_o the_o throne_n &_o before_o the_o lamb_n etc._n etc._n this_o plain_o show_v that_o these_o be_v not_o the_o person_n that_o be_v seal_v for_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v number_v because_o they_o be_v not_o above_o 144_o thousand_o whereas_o these_o here_o speak_v of_o be_v innumerable_a in_o truth_n these_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o 20_o of_o the_o revel_n who_o be_v there_o call_v the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v behead_v for_o the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n &_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o here_o they_o be_v call_v they_o which_o come_v out_o of_o great_a tribulation_n 7.14_o c._n 7.14_o &_o have_v wash_v their_o robe_n &_o make_v they_o white_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb._n they_o be_v therefore_o co-temporary_a with_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o 1000_o year_n as_o the_o 144_o thousand_o that_o be_v seal_v be_v co-temporary_a with_o the_o reign_n of_o babylon_n for_o 1260_o day_n v._o the_o five_o and_o last_o thing_n co-temporary_a be_v the_o duration_n of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n and_o the_o seven_o angel_n sound_v with_o a_o trumpet_n &_o there_o be_v great_a voice_n in_o heaven_n 11.15_o rev._n 11.15_o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o at_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o last_o trumpet_n the_o last_o blow_n must_v be_v give_v to_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n &_o at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v begin_v the_o reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o which_o be_v assign_v a_o period_n of_o 1000_o year_n and_o the_o influence_n of_o this_o seven_o and_o last_o trumpet_n must_v reach_v even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n thus_o you_o have_v the_o chronology_n of_o the_o twelve_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n we_o proceed_v to_o consider_v the_o history_n chap._n x._o a_o short_a system_fw-la of_o the_o event_n foretell_v in_o the_o revelation_n concern_v the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o historical_a part_n chap._n a_o short_a explanation_n of_o the_o 11_o chap._n in_o the_o 11_o ch._n where_o the_o destiny_n of_o the_o church_n do_v begin_v the_o h._n ghost_n in_o the_o first_o place_n give_v we_o a_o abridgement_n of_o these_o destiny_n &_o event_n &_o nothing_o be_v more_o methodical_a than_o that_o first_o to_o give_v a_o general_a idea_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v afterward_o more_o particular_o to_o be_v explain_v so_o this_o chapter_n from_o the_o 2d._o v._o to_o the_o end_n contain_v a_o short_a history_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n of_o antichrist_n reign_n &_o of_o the_o 1000_o year_n of_o christ_n reign_n as_o in_o the_o first_o verse_n he_o have_v describe_v the_o first_o period_n of_o 360_o year_n as_o we_o just_a now_o observe_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n this_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n be_v here_o describe_v by_o this_o paganism_n that_o be_v to_o tread_v under_o foot_n the_o holy_a city_n for_o 42_o month_n 2._o v._o 2._o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n &_o its_o perpetual_a subsistence_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o affliction_n during_o this_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o two_o witness_n clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n a_o great_a persecution_n that_o must_v befall_v the_o church_n at_o the_o end_n of_o these_o 1260_o year_n of_o antichrist_n reign_n 3._o v._o 3._o be_v there_o also_o predict_v the_o total_a suppression_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n by_o that_o persecution_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o death_n of_o these_o two_o witness_n 7._o v._o 7._o who_o must_v remain_v dead_a in_o the_o territory_n of_o babylon_n the_o great_a for_o three_o prophetical_a day_n and_o a_o half_a i._n e._n three_o year_n &_o a_o half_a we_o shall_v see_v afterward_o what_o that_o mean_n &_o where_o we_o must_v place_v this_o great_a event_n at_o the_o end_n of_o three_o year_n &_o a_o half_a these_o two_o witness_n i._n e._n the_o public_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v rise_v again_o and_o be_v glorious_o reestablisht_v for_o the_o h._n ghost_n say_v that_o the_o two_o witness_n shall_v ascend_v again_o up_o into_o heaven_n i_o e._n shall_v be_v exalt_v &_o glorify_v upon_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o same_o time_n the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v fall_v 13._o v._o 13._o i._n e._n one_o of_o those_o ten_o king_n that_o give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n shall_v revolt_v from_o he_o and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n shall_v sound_v which_o will_v give_v the_o last_o blow_n to_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n 15._o v._o 15._o after_o which_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v commence_v which_o shall_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n this_o be_v the_o epitome_n of_o the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o 11_o chapter_n after_o this_o general_a idea_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n explication_n ch._n 12._o &_o its_o explication_n the_o prophet_n enter_v upon_o the_o particular_n in_o the_o 12_o ch._n god_n show_v he_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v with_o child_n &_o deliver_v of_o a_o son_n &_o persecute_v by_o the_o red_a dragon_n who_o fain_o will_v devour_v the_o child_n of_o the_o woman_n afterward_o there_o be_v a_o battle_n fight_v by_o michael_n &_o his_o angel_n against_o the_o dragon_n the_o dragon_n be_v overcome_v and_o cast_v to_o the_o earth_n but_o as_o much_o overcome_v as_o he_o be_v he_o cease_v not_o to_o persecute_v the_o woman_n she_o be_v force_v to_o escape_v into_o the_o wilderness_n where_o she_o be_v nourish_v 1260_o day_n the_o dragon_n not_o be_v able_a to_o reach_v she_o vomit_v out_o a_o flood_n after_o she_o but_o the_o earth_n open_v &_o swallow_v up_o the_o flood_n &_o save_v the_o woman_n this_o woman_n be_v the_o apostolical_a church_n this_o child_n of_o which_o she_o be_v deliver_v be_v pure_a &_o holy_a christianity_n the_o dragon_n be_v the_o devil_n who_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n will_v devour_v &_o extinguish_v christianity_n in_o its_o birth_n michael_n &_o his_o angel_n be_v jesus_n christ_n &_o his_o minister_n celestial_a as_o well_o as_o terrestrial_a the_o combat_n of_o the_o red_a dragon_n &_o michael_n be_v the_o combat_n of_o 300_o year_n that_o be_v between_o god_n &_o the_o devil_n during_o the_o ten_o persecution_n of_o the_o roman_a heathen_a emperor_n the_o devil_n endeavour_v on_o one_o hand_n to_o destroy_v the_o christian_a church_n by_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o god_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n defend_v it_o by_o his_o martyr_n &_o teacher_n the_o victory_n get_v over_o the_o red_a dragon_n be_v the_o cast_v down_o of_o heathenism_n which_o fall_v to_o the_o earth_n &_o be_v cast_v from_o heaven_n i._n e._n it_o be_v tumble_v down_o from_o the_o throne_n by_o constantine_n &_o his_o successor_n to_o the_o reign_n of_o theodosius_n the_o great_a flood_n which_o the_o red_a dragon_n cast_v after_o the_o woman_n when_o he_o be_v throw_v down_o on_o the_o earth_n be_v those_o inundation_n of_o heresy_n that_o arrianism_n that_o cover_v the_o christian_a world_n immediate_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o heathenism_n under_o constantine_n the_o earth_n swallow_v up_o this_o flood_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o woman_n these_o heresy_n be_v destroy_v &_o swallow_v up_o as_o in_o a_o moment_n &_o the_o church_n remain_v deliver_v from_o they_o by_o a_o kind_n of_o
miracle_n but_o the_o dragon_n do_v not_o yield_v for_o all_o that_o but_o go_v to_o make_v war_n with_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n 17._o v._o 17._o i._n e._n he_o endeavour_v to_o cause_n to_o be_v bring_v forth_o a_o antichristian_a empire_n for_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n the_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v further_o explain_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n we_o have_v therefore_o in_o this_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o century_n or_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o space_n of_o these_o 400_o year_n that_o the_o apostolic_a church_n do_v bring_v forth_o christianity_n that_o christianity_n be_v persecute_v by_o the_o emperor_n that_o j._n christ_n do_v miraculous_o preserve_v it_o that_o it_o remain_v victorious_a under_o constantine_n that_o the_o church_n be_v almost_o ruin_v by_o arrianism_n &_o that_o she_o see_v herself_o happy_o deliver_v from_o it_o st._n john_n spend_v but_o one_o chapter_n about_o the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n of_o 400_o year_n because_o the_o great_a event_n be_v design_v to_o be_v in_o the_o follow_a period_n the_o 13_o etc._n c._n 13.1_o 2_o 3._o etc._n etc._n chapter_n according_a to_o the_o most_o exact_a rule_n of_o method_n begin_v where_o the_o 12_o end_v we_o have_v in_o the_o 13_o chapter_n the_o birth_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n ch._n a_o epitome_n of_o the_o history_n foretell_v in_o the_o 13_o ch._n which_o be_v graft_v on_o the_o roman_a empire_n this_o be_v the_o first_o beast_n that_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n have_v seven_o head_n &_o ten_o horn_n the_o seven_o of_o these_o head_n be_v lade_v with_o ten_o horn_n each_o of_o which_o be_v adorn_v with_o a_o crown_n to_o signify_v that_o these_o be_v so_o many_o king_n these_o ten_o king_n be_v the_o continuation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n under_o the_o seven_o head_n which_o be_v that_o of_o antichrist_n these_o ten_o king_n be_v subject_a to_o this_o seven_o head_n &_o together_o with_o it_o compose_v one_o empire_n a_o second_o beast_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v the_o same_o empire_n &_o the_o same_o beast_n or_o rather_o it_o be_v the_o seven_o head_n of_o the_o first_o beast_n this_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n that_o be_v represent_v in_o the_o first_o vision_n as_o one_o of_o the_o head_n be_v represent_v in_o the_o second_o vision_n as_o a_o new_a beast_n because_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a empire_n of_o rome_n &_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v a_o new_a one_o it_o be_v the_o continuation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v the_o same_o seat_n viz._n the_o city_n of_o rome_n &_o extend_v itself_o very_o near_o over_o the_o very_a selfsame_a province_n it_o be_v a_o new_a empire_n because_o it_o be_v in_o another_o form_n &_o under_o another_o name_n &_o be_v call_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o church_n &_o a_o ecclesiastical_a empire_n these_o two_o beast_n therefore_o fill_v up_o but_o one_o &_o the_o same_o period_n in_o which_o the_o head_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o be_v mortal_o wound_v be_v heal_v again_o by_o antichrist_n in_o which_o period_n way_n of_o worship_v and_o doctrine_n full_a of_o impiety_n &_o blasphemy_n be_v advance_v in_o the_o church_n in_o which_o period_n the_o saint_n be_v overcome_v &_o the_o truth_n be_v bury_v in_o which_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n worship_v the_o beast_n &_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n in_o which_o antichrist_n who_o name_n contain_v the_o number_n 666._o make_v a_o image_n of_o the_o first_o roman_a empire_n &_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v worship_v last_o in_o which_o all_o liberty_n to_o buy_v &_o sell_v &_o live_v be_v take_v away_o unless_o man_n will_v bear_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n all_o this_o be_v the_o history_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n that_o begin_v about_o the_o time_n that_o the_o 400_o year_n of_o the_o first_o period_n do_v end_n this_o be_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o history_n chap._n a_o short_a explication_n of_o the_o 14_o chap._n the_o 14_o ch._n begin_v also_o where_o the_o 13_o end_n it_o contain_v the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o that_o babylonish_n empire_n represent_v by_o the_o two_o beast_n of_o the_o 13_o chap._n it_o be_v no_o long_o a_o beast_n with_o seven_o head_n &_o ten_o horn_n it_o be_v no_o long_o the_o beast_n with_o two_o horn_n it_o be_v spiritual_a babylon_n but_o this_o babylon_n be_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n as_o the_o first_o &_o the_o second_o beast_n she_o be_v fall_v 8._o v._o 8._o she_o be_v fall_v babylon_n that_o great_a city_n because_o she_o have_v make_v the_o nation_n drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n the_o seven_o forego_v verse_n be_v a_o preparation_n for_o this_o great_a fall_n &_o the_o follow_v once_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n be_v a_o description_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o babel_n the_o man_n that_o sit_v on_o the_o white_a cloud_n 14._o v._o 14._o be_v jesus_n christ_n the_o sickle_n that_o be_v put_v in_o first_o among_o the_o corn_n to_o mow_v it_o down_o and_o afterward_o into_o the_o vintage_n to_o cut_v down_o the_o grape_n be_v the_o two_o degree_n of_o babylon_n fall_n which_o we_o shall_v afterward_o explain_v this_o be_v the_o analysis_n of_o the_o 14_o chap._n the_o h._n ghost_n think_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o have_v foretell_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n in_o general_n 15._o chap._n 15._o he_o will_v also_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o step_n by_o which_o it_o must_v pass_v in_o fall_v and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o great_a affair_n the_o vision_n of_o the_o 15_o chapter_n be_v employ_v to_o prepare_v man_n spirit_n for_o it_o the_o seven_o vial_n of_o the_o wrath_n and_o vengeance_n of_o god_n that_o must_v overwhelm_v the_o babylonish_n empire_n be_v distribute_v to_o seven_o distinct_a angel_n to_o pour_v they_o out_o at_o different_a time_n the_o 16._o chap._n contain_v the_o pour_v forth_o of_o these_o vial_n 16._o chap._n 16._o which_o be_v the_o several_a punishment_n by_o which_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v afflict_v till_o it_o be_v entire_o bring_v to_o nothing_o and_o these_o seven_o vial_n contain_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n of_o this_o we_o will_v treat_v in_o a_o particular_a chapter_n by_o itself_o afterward_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o know_v that_o this_o chapter_n lead_v the_o afflict_a church_n to_o the_o very_a point_n of_o her_o deliverance_n and_o thus_o you_o have_v the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o church_n during_o the_o 1260_o year_n but_o because_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v express_v in_o figurative_a term_n 17._o chap._n 17._o and_o prophetical_a symbol_n of_o beasis_n horn_n harvest_n vintage_n &_o vial_n god_n will_v explain_v these_o thing_n in_o term_n less_o figurative_a &_o more_o intelligible_a therefore_o the_o 17_o ch._n be_v spend_v in_o explain_v the_o vision_n of_o the_o two_o beasis_n to_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o beasis_n signify_v a_o empire_n that_o the_o ten_o horus_n be_v ten_o king_n that_o these_o ten_o king_n out_o of_o weakness_n and_o complaisance_n will_v give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n and_o that_o at_o last_o they_o will_v ruin_v he_o &_o take_v away_o that_o power_n they_o have_v former_o give_v he_o as_o in_o the_o 17_o ch._n the_o h._n ghost_n declare_v the_o establishment_n &_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n in_o a_o more_o clear_a and_o less_o figurative_a manner_n than_o he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o 13_o chap._n in_o the_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o 18_o chap._n he_o give_v we_o the_o particular_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o this_o babylon_n 18._o chap._n 18._o more_o large_o &_o more_o clear_o more_o large_o i_o say_v &_o more_o clear_o than_o he_o have_v do_v in_o the_o 14_o chap._n this_o have_v no_o need_n of_o proof_n in_o the_o process_n of_o this_o discourse_n we_o shall_v explain_v the_o circumstance_n of_o this_o fall_n the_o 19_o chap._n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o recapitulation_n of_o all_o that_o respect_v the_o ruin_n of_o babylon_n 19_o chap._n 19_o therein_o j._n christ_n appear_v ride_v on_o a_o white_a horse_n be_v call_v the_o faithful_a and_o true_a &_o the_o word_n of_o god._n he_o assemble_v all_o his_o force_n &_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n assemble_v all_o its_o force_n the_o fight_n begin_v the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n i.e._n the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o antichrist_n that_o be_v the_o head_n be_v take_v and_o utter_o destroy_v it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n we_o meet_v with_o before_o in_o the_o 14._o chap._n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 16._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 17._o and_o
throughout_o the_o whole_a 18._o chap._n the_o frequent_a repetition_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v to_o note_v the_o certainty_n of_o it_o the_o three_o follow_a chapter_n viz._n the_o 20_o 21_o and_o 22._o contain_v the_o history_n of_o the_o three_o &_o last_o general_a period_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o christianity_n it_o be_v the_o reign_n of_o j._n christ_n upon_o earth_n the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o 20_o chapter_n be_v so_o remarkable_a that_o they_o deserve_v a_o particular_a attention_n but_o see_v that_o hereafter_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n careful_o to_o examine_v they_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o stay_v about_o they_o at_o present_a so_o much_o suffice_v for_o a_o general_a idea_n both_o of_o the_o chronology_n &_o of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o twelve_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n which_o contain_v the_o destiny_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n xi_o several_a thing_n that_o all_o be_v agree_v on_o in_o reference_n to_o antichrist_n which_o will_v serve_v to_o clear_v up_o those_o wherein_o we_o be_v not_o agree_v we_o seek_v first_o the_o character_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n two_o the_o time_n of_o its_o duration_n three_o its_o establishment_n &_o end_n 4thly_a what_o must_v happen_v after_o its_o ruin_n the_o two_o first_o point_n respect_v what_o be_v past_a or_o present_a &_o shall_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o work_n about_o the_o first_o of_o these_o four_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o controversy_n among_o the_o orthodox_n but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a dispute_n about_o it_o between_o the_o papist_n &_o the_o true_a church_n however_o we_o have_v one_o great_a advantage_n for_o the_o determine_v this_o controversy_n viz._n there_o be_v some_o certain_a principle_n in_o which_o both_o side_n do_v agree_v in_o controversy_n where_o man_n be_v agree_v in_o nothing_o but_o where_o every_o thing_n must_v be_v prove_v it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o determine_v any_o thing_n but_o where_o man_n be_v agree_v in_o many_o thing_n ordinary_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v agree_v in_o serve_v for_o the_o clear_n up_o of_o those_o thing_n wherein_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v i_o think_v it_o best_o therefore_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o the_o character_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n to_o consider_v those_o thing_n wherein_o the_o papist_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o true_a catholic_n antichrist_n all_o agree_v that_o the_o little_a horn_n in_o the_o seven_o of_o dan._n be_v antichrist_n 1_o we_o be_v agree_v about_o almost_o will_v the_o place_n whence_o we_o be_v to_o draw_v the_o portraiture_n of_o antichrist_n and_o his_o empire_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o little_a horn_n in_o the_o 7_o chap._n of_o daniel_n be_v antichrist_n that_o it_o be_v of_o he_o that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v i_o consider_v the_o horn_n 7.8_o dan._n 7.8_o and_o behold_v there_o come_v up_o among_o they_o another_o little_a horn_n before_o who_o three_o of_o the_o first_o horn_n be_v pluck_v up_o by_o the_o root_n and_o behold_v in_o this_o horn_n be_v eye_n like_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o man_n and_o a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n 25._o v._o 24_o 25._o the_o ten_o horn_n out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v ten_o king_n that_o shall_v arise_v and_o another_o shall_v rise_v after_o they_o and_o he_o shall_v be_v diverse_a from_o the_o first_o and_o he_o shall_v subdue_v three_o king_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v great_a word_n against_o the_o most_o high_a and_o shall_v wear_v out_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o think_v to_o change_v time_n and_o law_n &_o they_o shall_v be_v give_v into_o his_o hand_n for_o a_o time_n and_o time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n we_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o first_o beast_n in_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o revel_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o four_o beast_n in_o the_o 7_o chapt._n of_o daniel_n antichrist_n the_o two_o beast_n of_o rev._n 13._o be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o signify_v the_o roman_a empire_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o ten_o king_n that_o must_v be_v bear_v of_o this_o beast_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o ten_o horn_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n in_o daniel_n and_o of_o the_o first_o beast_n in_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o revelation_n be_v the_o ten_o king_n which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n be_v to_o divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n among_o they_o and_o give_v their_o power_n to_o antichrist_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o little_a horn_n i.e._n antichrist_n must_v be_v graft_v on_o the_o roman_a empire_n enter_v into_o its_o place_n and_o the_o last_o that_o shall_v possess_v the_o roman_a empire_n antichrist_n say_v bellarmin_n etc._n bellarm._n part_n 1._o c._n 3._o sect_n 15._o respondeo_fw-la priorem_fw-la etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v the_o last_o head_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o last_o king_n that_o shall_v possess_v the_o roman_a empire_n but_o yet_o without_o the_o name_n of_o a_o roman_a emperor_n the_o same_o author_n in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n confess_v that_o the_o head_n of_o the_o first_o beast_n which_o receive_v the_o deadly_a wound_n in_o the_o 13_o ch._n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v antichrist_n this_o miracle_n of_o a_o feign_a resurrection_n say_v he_o must_v be_v attribute_v to_o antichrist_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o primasius_n beda_n and_o haymo_n and_o many_o other_o who_o he_o name_v we_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o two_o beast_n of_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o revelation_n do_v both_o of_o they_o signify_v the_o antichristian_a empire_n supra_fw-la bellarm._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o rupert_n the_o second_o beast_n in_o the_o revelation_n signify_v the_o very_a same_o antichrist_n for_o antichrist_n be_v represent_v by_o two_o beast_n by_o the_o one_o his_o royal_a power_n and_o tyranny_n by_o which_o he_o will_v offer_v violence_n to_o man_n be_v represent_v and_o by_o the_o other_o his_o magical_a power_n and_o crafty_a trick_n by_o which_o he_o will_v seduce_v they_o but_o according_a to_o richard_n and_o anselm_n and_o many_o other_o the_o second_o beast_n signify_v the_o preacher_n of_o antichrist_n thus_o it_o agree_v to_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n to_o be_v the_o seven_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n however_o without_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o a_o roman_a emperor_n to_o be_v a_o head_n wound_v unto_o death_n and_o raise_v up_o again_o to_o have_v ten_o horn_n on_o its_o head_n ten_o king_n for_o its_o subject_n to_o have_v a_o false_a prophet_n with_o two_o horn_n like_o those_o of_o a_o lamb_n which_o cause_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v worship_v who_o name_n contain_v the_o number_n 666_o and_o who_o make_v all_o those_o that_o he_o cause_v to_o submit_v to_o high_a empire_n to_o bear_v his_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n we_o be_v agree_v that_o a_o time_n time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n the_o 42_o month_n the_o 1260._o day_n do_v denote_v the_o time_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o that_o all_o that_o while_o the_o church_n must_v be_v afflict_v beat_v down_o obscure_v as_o it_o be_v hide_v &_o swallow_v up_o by_o persecution_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o great_a whore_n in_o the_o 17_o of_o the_o revel_n and_o the_o city_n with_o seven_o mountain_n be_v rome_n some_o will_v have_v it_o be_v rome_n pagan_a rome_n the_o papist_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o babylon_n in_o the_o revel_n be_v rome_n but_o other_o show_v either_o more_o knowledge_n or_o more_o sincerity_n do_v confess_v that_o rome_n in_o the_o 14_o and_o the_o 17_o ch._n of_o the_o revelation_n be_v not_o rome_n pagan_a but_o of_o christian_a become_v antichristian_a estius_n and_o some_o other_o go_v a_o little_a further_o and_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o rome_n must_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n other_o as_o ribera_n viega_n cornelius_n a_o lapide_fw-la retain_v the_o common_a hypothesis_n among_o the_o papist_n viz._n that_o jerusalem_n must_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n be_v however_o force_v to_o confess_v that_o babylon_n in_o the_o revelation_n be_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n whereat_o the_o end_n of_o the_o time_n a_o idolatrous_a empire_n persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o enemy_n of_o god_n must_v arise_v who_o say_v they_o shall_v join_v himself_o to_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v come_v cornelius_n a_o lapide_fw-la confess_v that_o the_o water_n on_o which_o the_o great_a whore_n sit_v signify_v all_o the_o nation_n and_o people_n which_o rome_n shall_v command_v over_o who_o shall_v agree_v together_o in_o their_o subjection_n and_o in_o the_o vanity_n and_o idolatry_n of_o rome_n as_o their_o lady_n and_o the_o mistress_n of_o the_o universe_n i.e._n rome_n become_v idolatrous_a after_o have_v be_v
christian_a we_o do_v agree_v that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o eight_o &_o the_o eleven_o of_o daniel_n antichrist_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o what_o be_v say_v of_o antiochus_n agree_v also_o to_o antichrist_n that_o literal_o respect_v antiochus_n epiphanes_n &_o the_o cruel_a persecution_n that_o he_o raise_v against_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n belong_v also_o to_o antichrist_n so_o that_o antichrist_n be_v that_o king_n that_o shall_v do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n &_o shall_v exalt_v himself_o &_o magnify_v himself_o above_o every_o god_n 38._o dan._n 11.36_o 37_o 38._o &_o shall_v speak_v marvellous_a thing_n against_o the_o god_n of_o god_n &_o shall_v prosper_v till_o the_o indignation_n be_v accomplish_v neither_o shall_v he_o regard_v the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n nor_o the_o desire_n of_o woman_n nor_o regard_v any_o god_n for_o he_o shall_v magnify_v himself_o above_o all_o but_o in_o his_o estate_n shaell_o he_o honour_v the_o god_n of_o force_n &_o a_o god_n who_o his_o father_n know_v not_o shall_v he_o honour_v with_o gold_n &_o with_o silver_n &_o with_o precious_a stone_n &_o pleasant_a thing_n 41._o v._o 41._o he_o shall_v enter_v also_o into_o the_o glorious_a land_n and_o many_o shall_v be_v overthrow_v etc._n etc._n we_o be_v agree_v that_o it_o be_v he_o of_o who_o st._n paul_n speak_v in_o the_o 2d_o chap._n of_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o tessalonian_o &_o consequent_o that_o he_o be_v that_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v to_o be_v reveal_v when_o he_o that_o then_o do_v let_v i.e._n the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v cease_v to_o hinder_v that_o it_o be_v he_o that_o be_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n who_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n &_o who_o be_v to_o lift_v up_o himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god._n it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v a_o temporal_a kingdom_n at_o the_o bottom_n whatever_o it_o may_v be_v as_o to_o outward_a appearance_n it_o be_v agree_v that_o he_o shall_v establish_v this_o empire_n two_o way_n the_o first_o be_v by_o sword_n &_o violence_n the_o second_o by_o cheat_v &_o seduce_v it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n last_o it_o be_v confess_v all_o this_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o that_o period_n which_o the_o h._n scripture_n call_v the_o late_a time_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o 11_o ch._n of_o the_o revelation_n contain_v a_o epitome_n of_o the_o history_n of_o antichrist_n that_o be_v be_v he_o that_o be_v to_o tread_v under_o foot_n &_o profane_v the_o holy_a city_n for_o 42_o month_n &_o afflict_v the_o two_o witness_n that_o shall_v prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n for_o 1260_o day_n &_o that_o he_o be_v to_o kill_v the_o two_o witness_n which_o be_v to_o remain_v dead_a on_o the_o place_n of_o the_o great_a city_n three_o day_n &_o a_o half_a after_o which_o they_o shall_v rise_v again_o it_o appear_v by_o this_o account_n of_o the_o point_n wherein_o the_o papist_n be_v agree_v to_o that_o we_o be_v all_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n first_o as_o to_o all_o those_o place_n whence_o the_o main_a stroke_n of_o antichrist_n picture_n be_v to_o be_v take_v and_o second_o as_o to_o almost_o all_o the_o main_a stroke_n of_o which_o this_o picture_n be_v to_o be_v compose_v it_o will_v appear_v afterward_o that_o these_o truth_n wherein_o our_o enemy_n be_v agree_v with_o we_o do_v quite_o overthrow_v those_o thing_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o chap._n xii_o the_o character_n of_o antichrist_n which_o we_o be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o false_a antichrist_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o thing_n in_o which_o we_o be_v not_o agree_v be_v the_o false_a character_n of_o antichrist_n which_o the_o papist_n endeavour_v to_o establish_v with_o a_o design_n to_o hinder_v our_o sight_n of_o the_o true_a character_n of_o he_o and_o to_o obscure_v they_o the_o false_a character_n be_v these_o i._o that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v only_o one_o single_a man_n and_o not_o a_o succession_n of_o king_n and_o tyrant_n ii_o that_o the_o duration_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v only_o three_o natural_a year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o not_o three_o prophetical_a year_n and_o half_a which_o make_v up_o 1260_o year_n iii_o that_o he_o must_v style_v himself_o the_o messiah_n and_o that_o the_o jew_n must_v look_v upon_o he_o as_o such_o iv_o that_o his_o seat_n shall_v be_v jerusalem_n that_o he_o shall_v rebuild_v the_o temple_n there_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v re-establish_a the_o moysaicall_a service_n v._o according_a to_o bellarmine_n &_o cotton_n the_o jesuit_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o idolater_n for_o he_o be_v not_o to_o worship_v any_o idol_n but_o shall_v worship_v the_o devil_n in_o secret_a vi_o he_o be_v to_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n of_o a_o obscure_a place_n and_o to_o raise_v himself_o by_o arms._n vii_o he_o be_v to_o deny_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n viii_o he_o shall_v do_v nothing_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n ix_o he_o shall_v abolish_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n x._o he_o shall_v compel_v the_o christian_n to_o renounce_v their_o baptism_n xi_o he_o be_v to_o overcome_v three_o king_n the_o king_n of_o lybia_n of_o egypt_n and_o ethiopia_n xii_o he_o shall_v cause_v sire_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o feign_v himself_o to_o be_v dead_a to_o counterfeit_v a_o resurrection_n xiii_o he_o be_v to_o hate_v idol_n fourteen_o he_o be_v to_o conquer_v the_o whole_a worldy_a by_o arms._n xv._o enoch_n and_o elias_n shall_v be_v the_o two_o witness_n of_o the_o eleven_o of_o the_o revelation_n that_o shall_v be_v send_v against_o he_o xvi_o he_o be_v to_o kill_v the_o two_o witness_n enoch_n and_o elias_n xvii_o these_o two_o witness_n must_v rise_v again_o after_o they_o have_v lie_v dead_a three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a xviii_o he_o be_v to_o possess_v all_o sort_n of_o treasure_n xix_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o call_v himself_o god_n but_o the_o only_a god._n xx._n he_o be_v not_o to_o come_v till_o the_o roman_n german_n empire_n be_v destroy_v xxi_o his_o come_n be_v not_o to_o be_v till_o just_a at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v be_v defeat_v five_o and_o forty_o day_n before_o the_o end_n of_o it_o xxii_o before_o he_o come_v the_o gospel_n must_v have_v be_v general_o preach_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world._n xxiii_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o magician_n importance_n of_o these_o 23._o article_n there_o be_v not_o above_o four_o or_o five_o of_o any_o importance_n it_o will_v be_v very_o tedious_a to_o confute_v all_o these_o false_a character_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o work_n more_o unprofitable_a than_o long_a there_o be_v a_o very_a small_a parcel_n of_o they_o that_o be_v the_o principal_a one_o which_o when_o they_o be_v destroy_v all_o the_o rest_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n of_o course_n natural_o and_o necessary_o for_o instance_n i._o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v only_o one_o single_a person_n ii_o that_o he_o be_v to_o reign_v only_o three_o natural_a year_n and_o a_o half_a iii_o that_o he_o be_v to_o come_v precise_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n iv_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v a_o open_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n style_v himself_o messiah_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n v._o that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o come_v before_o all_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v destroy_v these_o five_o point_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a all_o the_o rest_n consequent_o will_v be_v so_o too_o these_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o be_v worth_a our_o take_a notice_n of_o for_o as_o for_o the_o rest_n that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n bear_v in_o a_o obscure_a place_n that_o he_o shall_v cause_v fire_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o he_o shall_v feign_v himself_o dead_a that_o he_o may_v counterfeit_v a_o resurrection_n that_o enoch_n and_o elias_n must_v come_v out_o of_o that_o earthly_a paradise_n where_o they_o be_v keep_v in_o reserve_n to_o fight_v with_o he_o that_o he_o be_v to_o kill_v they_o that_o they_o must_v rise_v on_o the_o four_o day_n all_o this_o i_o say_v be_v so_o fabulous_a that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o injury_n to_o so_o understand_v a_o age_n as_o we_o formal_o to_o confute_v such_o idle_a vision_n and_o so_o whole_o destitute_a of_o any_o foundation_n duration_n all_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o the_o single_a question-about_a the_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a of_o antichrist_n duration_n this_o controversy_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o one_o only_a point_n and_o it_o be_v that_o of_o the_o duration_n
of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n if_o it_o can_v be_v make_v very_o plain_a and_o certain_a that_o the_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a of_o the_o duration_n of_o this_o empire_n must_v not_o be_v take_v for_o natural_a year_n but_o for_o three_o prophetical_a year_n and_o a_o half_a it_o will_v also_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o all_o which_o the_o papist_n say_v concern_v antichrist_n be_v false_a for_o if_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v last_v 1260_o year_n antichrist_n can_v never_o be_v only_o one_o single_a man_n see_v there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v live_v do_v or_o can_v live_v 1260._o year_n nor_o will_v it_o be_v more_o true_a that_o antichrist_n must_v not_o come_v but_o just_a at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o duration_n of_o 1260._o year_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n neither_o will_v it_o be_v more_o true_a that_o the_o gospel_n must_v have_v be_v preach_v in_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n before_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n for_o there_o be_v no_o prophesy_n that_o say_v or_o do_v so_o much_o as_o insinuate_v that_o the_o gospel_n must_v be_v preach_v every_o where_o 1260._o year_n before_o the_o last_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o will_v be_v as_o false_a that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o to_o come_v till_o after_o the_o total_a ruin_n of_o the_o german_a empire_n for_o although_o we_o do_v not_o exact_o know_v the_o time_n the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n however_o this_o be_v hold_v for_o certain_a that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o to_o endure_v yet_o two_o or_o 3000._o year_n long_o as_o it_o must_v do_v if_o antichrist_n be_v not_o yet_o como_fw-mi and_o must_v reign_v 1260._o year_n for_o beside_o these_o 1260._o year_n we_o must_v find_v out_o a_o 1000_o year_n of_o peace_n for_o the_o church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n neither_o will_v it_o be_v true_a that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v a_o false_a messiah_n receive_v by_o the_o jew_n a_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o religion_n for_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v that_o his_o wisdom_n will_v not_o permit_v it_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o give_v we_o any_o ground_n to_o presume_v that_o a_o infidel_n a_o open_a enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o religion_n must_v remain_v master_n of_o all_o the_o world_n for_o 1260._o year_n it_o be_v plain_a therefore_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a controversy_n on_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n do_v depend_v let_v this_o be_v remember_v we_o will_v handle_v this_o controversy_n in_o its_o proper_a place_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o shall_v say_v something_o in_o this_o chapter_n to_o lay_v open_a the_o falseness_n of_o the_o other_o pretend_a character_n of_o antichrist_n man._n antichrist_n be_v not_o only_o one_o single_a man._n i._o he_o must_v be_v only_o one_o single_a person_n and_o not_o a_o series_n of_o man_n if_o this_o be_v so_o why_o do_v saint_n paul_n say_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v in_o his_o time_n why_o do_v saint_n john_n say_v in_o his_o first_o epistle_n that_o antichrist_n be_v already_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o be_v come_v in_o his_o forerunner_n say_v bellarmin_n i_o acknowledge_v it_o but_o do_v the_o forerunner_n use_v to_o go_v 2000_o year_n before_o he_o who_o forerunner_n they_o be_v type_n indeed_o be_v and_o may_v be_v two_o or_o 3000._o year_n before_o those_o person_n of_o which_o they_o be_v type_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o forerunner_n why_o be_v antichrist_n represent_v as_o a_o beast_n if_o he_o be_v but_o one_o single_a man_n be_v it_o not_o usual_a in_o prophetical_a vision_n to_o represent_v a_o empire_n i._n e._n all_o the_o successive_a king_n of_o that_o empire_n by_o a_o beast_n so_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o babylonian_n and_o assyrian_n with_o all_o their_o king_n be_v represent_v to_o we_o by_o the_o first_o beast_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n which_o be_v like_a to_o a_o lion_n the_o empire_n and_o emperor_n of_o persia_n by_o only_a one_o bear_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n at_o least_o this_o make_v it_o undeniable_o clear_a that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o we_o shall_v understand_v one_o single_a person_n by_o those_o two_o beast_n in_o the_o revelation_n that_o represent_v antichrist_n how_o can_v this_o be_v reconcile_v with_o that_o which_o these_o man_n have_v confess_v that_o the_o four_o beast_n of_o daniel_n and_o the_o first_o beast_n in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o revelation_n all_o be_v the_o same_o beast_n see_v the_o four_o beast_n in_o daniel_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n signify_v a_o empire_n and_o a_o series_n of_o man_n it_o be_v necessary_a also_o that_o the_o first_o beast_n in_o saint_n john_n shall_v signify_v a_o series_n of_o king_n and_o tyrant_n it_o be_v true_a the_o scripture_n often_o speak_v of_o antichrist_n as_o of_o a_o particular_a person_n it_o call_v he_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n a_o king_n a_o horn_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o speak_v of_o empire_n also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n they_o be_v king_n the_o ten_o horn_n be_v ten_o king_n they_o be_v beast_n and_o one_o beast_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n the_o empire_n of_o persia_n be_v one_o beast_n that_o of_o the_o greek_n be_v another_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n make_v the_o four_o beast_n the_o spirit_n say_v concern_v the_o seven_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n the_o seven_o head_n be_v seven_o king_n i._n e._n they_o be_v seven_o sort_n of_o governor_n and_o government_n jew_n that_o antichrist_n must_v not_o be_v a_o jew_n ii_o antichrist_n must_v be_v a_o jew_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan._n of_o a_o mean_a birth_n and_o must_v style_v himself_o the_o messiah_n of_o the_o jew_n where_o be_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o must_v be_v a_o jew_n and_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n because_o it_o be_v write_v 16._o gen._n 49.17_o jer._n 8_o 16._o dan_n shall_v be_v a_o serpent_n by_o the_o way_n and_o a_o adder_n in_o the_o path_n that_o bit_v the_o horse_n heel_n the_o snort_n of_o his_o horse_n be_v hear_v from_o dan._n do_v this_o deserve_v a_o confutation_n and_o because_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_n have_v be_v take_v with_o these_o vision_n must_v we_o therefore_o receive_v they_o as_o oracle_n among_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v certain_a bellarmin_n place_n this_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v a_o jew_n but_o do_v not_o give_v we_o any_o show_n of_o proof_n for_o it_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_n but_o as_o to_o that_o we_o must_v take_v all_o or_o nothing_o either_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_n must_v be_v whole_o receive_v in_o this_o matter_n or_o else_o be_v whole_o weak_a if_o we_o must_v admit_v what_o the_o ancient_n have_v say_v concern_v antichrist_n we_o must_v believe_v that_o it_o will_v be_v the_o devil_n that_o shall_v incarnate_a himself_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o a_o false_a virgin_n as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o a_o chaste_a one_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o nero_n be_v antichrist_n in_o a_o word_n we_o must_v admit_v of_o a_o hundred_o dream_a opinion_n about_o it_o which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v unanimous_o reject_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o good_a in_o many_o place_n it_o be_v good_a in_o none_o it_o be_v doubtful_a every_o where_n we_o must_v have_v proof_n draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o show_v we_o that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v a_o jew._n but_o see_v bellarmine_n great_a proof_n iii_o antichrist_n must_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o jew_n as_o their_o messiah_n messiah_n antichrist_n must_v not_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o jew_n as_o their_o messiah_n and_o the_o jew_n will_v never_o acknowledge_v any_o for_o their_o messiah_n that_o be_v a_o stranger_n uncircumcised_a and_o one_o that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o nation_n but_o where_o do_v they_o find_v this_o that_o the_o jew_n must_v receive_v antichrist_n for_o their_o messiah_n these_o gentleman_n that_o have_v a_o more_o pierce_a sight_n than_o the_o angel_n themselves_o find_v it_o in_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o be_o come_v in_o my_o father_n name_n and_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v i_o if_o another_o come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n him_z you_o will_v receive_v he_o that_o will_v come_v in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o who_o the_o jew_n will_v receive_v shall_v be_v antichrist_n who_o will_v call_v himself_o the_o messiah_n have_v these_o man_n any_o shame_n leave_v in_o they_o praeter_fw-la bellarm._n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n cap._n 12._o sect._n praeter_fw-la to_o put_v this_o at_o the_o head_n of_o such_o a_o proof_n viz._n sunt_fw-la alia_fw-la
it_o be_v there_o that_o be_v the_o most_o famous_a temple_n of_o the_o most_o infamous_a of_o all_o the_o heathen_a divinity_n viz._n venus_n the_o goddess_n of_o prostitution_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o by_o way_n of_o allusion_n to_o this_o infamous_a goddess_n spiritual_a babylon_n be_v represent_v in_o the_o 17_o of_o the_o revelation_n as_o a_o whore_n sit_v on_o a_o beast_n and_o offer_v herself_o from_o on_o high_a to_o every_o comer_n for_o woman_n do_v expose_v and_o prostitute_v themselves_o in_o the_o most_o visible_a place_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o venus_n of_o babylon_n antichrist_n these_o three_o thing_n tyranny_n idolatry_n and_o corruption_n of_o manner_n we_o meet_v with_o in_o all_o the_o description_n of_o antichrist_n so_o then_o these_o be_v the_o three_o character_n by_o which_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v represent_v to_o we_o in_o those_o place_n that_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o the_o head_n of_o this_o empire_n be_v call_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n i._n e._n utter_o lose_v and_o plunge_v into_o a_o mighty_a sink_n of_o corruption_n behold_v sodom_n it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n behave_v himself_o as_o though_o he_o be_v god_n behold_v egypt_n pride_n and_o tyranny_n his_o religion_n be_v call_v a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o he_o be_v to_o establish_v it_o by_o sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n behold_v idolatry_n and_o behold_v babylon_n all_o the_o heathen_n call_v their_o religion_n and_o their_o ceremony_n by_o the_o name_n of_o mystery_n ceres_n have_v her_o mystery_n bacchus_n have_v his_o and_o venus_n of_o babylon_n have_v she_o also_o but_o these_o mystery_n be_v abominable_a and_o idolatrous_a in_o the_o eleven_o of_o the_o revelation_n this_o empire_n be_v call_v a_o gentilism_n a_o paganism_n the_o outward_a court_n be_v leave_v to_o the_o gentile_n for_o they_o to_o tread_v under_o foot_n for_o 42._o month_n behold_v babylon_n behold_v idolatry_n by_o the_o profane_v of_o the_o outward_a court_n be_v also_o mean_v the_o corruption_n of_o manner_n because_o the_o heathen_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v the_o temple_n of_o their_o idol_n the_o place_n of_o their_o most_o filthy_a debauch_n 7._o v._o 7._o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o beast_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n shall_v make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o overcome_v they_o and_o kill_v they_o there_o be_v the_o tyranny_n and_o cruelty_n of_o egypt_n in_o the_o two_o vision_n of_o the_o 13_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n this_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v represent_v as_o a_o beast_n in_o the_o first_o as_o a_o beast_n compound_v of_o a_o leopard_n a_o bear_n and_o a_o lion_n three_o cruel_a beast_n this_o be_v to_o set_v forth_o its_o cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o to_o make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o overcome_v they_o here_o again_o be_v egypt_n that_o oppress_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o make_v a_o cruel_a war_n upon_o they_o man_n worship_v this_o beast_n and_o the_o dragon_n that_o give_v he_o his_o power_n and_o they_o worship_v the_o dragon_n which_o give_v power_n to_o the_o beast_n and_o they_o worship_v the_o beast_n behold_v babylon_n where_o a_o dragon_n be_v worship_v to_o which_o it_o may_v be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n allude_v last_o to_o this_o beast_n be_v give_v a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n his_o name_n his_o tabernacle_n and_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n there_o be_v pride_n and_o idolatry_n the_o second_o beast_n work_v great_a sign_n to_o seduce_v man_n 13.14_o rev._n 13.14_o and_o deceive_v they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n by_o mean_n of_o those_o miracle_n which_o he_o have_v power_n to_o do_v in_o sight_n of_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o false_a prophet_n that_o work_v false_a miracle_n to_o cause_v his_o false_a god_n to_o be_v worship_v it_o be_v a_o prophet_n of_o babylon_n and_o of_o idol_n he_o cause_v all_o they_o to_o be_v kill_v that_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n make_v this_o empire_n a_o true_a egypt_n in_o the_o 14_o chapter_n it_o be_v say_v of_o this_o babylon_n that_o she_o make_v all_o nation_n drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o her_o fornication_n they_o be_v her_o idolatry_n that_o be_v so_o call_v and_o in_o the_o 17_o chap._n she_o be_v more_o large_o describe_v as_o a_o prostitute_a woman_n array_v in_o purple_a and_o scarlet_a colour_n and_o deck_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n have_v a_o golden_a cup_n in_o her_o hand_n full_a of_o abomination_n and_o filthiness_n of_o her_o fornication_n and_o upon_o her_o forehead_n be_v a_o name_n write_v mystery_n i._n e._n religion_n and_o for_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o word_n mystery_n it_o be_v add_v the_o mother_n of_o fornication_n or_o idolatry_n this_o be_v babylon_n she_o be_v also_o the_o mother_n of_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v sodom_n who_o corruption_n spread_v itself_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n she_o make_v herself_o drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n this_o be_v egypt_n it_o be_v cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n pape_n wheresoever_o these_o three_o character_n be_v find_v there_o be_v antichristianism_n it_o be_v not_o confine_v only_o to_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o pape_n one_o can_v question_v whether_o these_o be_v the_o character_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n but_o we_o must_v careful_o observe_v that_o in_o all_o place_n of_o christendom_n where_o these_o character_n be_v find_v the_o pride_n and_o tyranny_n of_o egypt_n the_o filth_n and_o abomination_n of_o sodom_n and_o the_o idolatry_n of_o babylon_n there_o be_v the_o antichristian_a empire_n in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n and_o hereupon_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o this_o empire_n be_v not_o confine_v to_o what_o we_o call_v the_o papism_n the_o place_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n there_o be_v idolatry_n there_o be_v babylon_n babylon_n the_o greek_a church_n make_v a_o part_n of_o babylon_n for_o there_o they_o invocate_v saint_n and_o worship_v image_n and_o relic_n there_o be_v sodom_n for_o the_o corruption_n of_o manner_n there_o be_v great_a and_o this_o corruption_n when_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v not_o under_o the_o turkish_a cross_n appear_v much_o more_o than_o it_o do_v at_o this_o day_n last_o there_o be_v egypt_n for_o there_o be_v tyranny_n and_o pride_n in_o that_o church_n the_o patriarch_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o east_n in_o their_o time_n and_o in_o their_o prosperity_n carry_v themselves_o like_o master_n and_o tyrant_n though_o in_o that_o respect_n they_o do_v not_o go_v so_o high_a as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o greek_a church_n do_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o latin_a before_o the_o ten_o century_n when_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v already_o become_v sodom_n by_o the_o horrible_a corruption_n of_o her_o manner_n egypt_n by_o her_o tyranny_n and_o pride_n babylon_n by_o her_o idolatry_n these_o two_o church_n make_v but_o one_o body_n and_o one_o babel_n and_o we_o must_v not_o imagine_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o her_o separation_n become_v a_o jerusalem_n see_v she_o retain_v the_o corruption_n of_o babel_n but_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o may_v look_v for_o the_o capital_a of_o this_o anti-christian_n empire_n in_o rome_n empire_n yet_o rome_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n and_o find_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o head_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n in_o the_o pope_n the_o greek_a church_n and_o those_o of_o the_o eastern_a communion_n do_v no_o long_o obey_v he_o they_o be_v revolt_v province_n over_o which_o he_o pretend_v a_o right_a and_o who_o indeed_o ought_v to_o obey_v he_o see_v they_o have_v take_v his_o mark_n and_o sign_n which_o be_v idolatry_n the_o pope_n always_o keep_v his_o title_n and_o as_o he_o pretend_v he_o keep_v his_o ancient_a right_n over_o these_o separate_a church_n call_v himself_o the_o universal_a bishop_n beside_o we_o must_v consider_v all_o the_o church_n that_o have_v revolt_v from_o their_o obedience_n to_o god_n as_o unite_v under_o one_o spiritual_a head_n which_o be_v satan_n just_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o church_n of_o different_a communion_n remain_v unite_v under_o one_o spiritual_a head_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o hold_v the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o corrupt_a society_n be_v unite_v under_o one_o spiritual_a head_n which_o
be_v the_o devil_n as_o far_o as_o they_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n which_o be_v idolatry_n though_o they_o be_v of_o different_a communion_n yea_o and_o excommunicate_v each_o other_o i_o therefore_o make_v no_o scruple_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n be_v in_o all_o place_n wherever_o tyranny_n pride_n corruption_n of_o worship_n manner_n and_o government_n mingle_v with_o christianity_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o that_o which_o i_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o place_n must_v be_v extend_v to_o time_n also_o it_o be_v in_o those_o age_n where_o pride_n tyranny_n corruption_n of_o manner_n and_o idolatry_n have_v be_v visible_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n that_o we_o must_v look_v for_o the_o birth_n and_o beginning_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o in_o the_o process_n of_o this_o discourse_n this_o observation_n will_v be_v useful_a to_o we_o to_o find_v out_o that_o which_o we_o principal_o seek_v for_o in_o this_o work_n i._n e._n the_o time_n where_o we_o be_v to_o begin_v the_o 1260._o year_n that_o be_v assign_v for_o the_o duration_n of_o antichristianism_n birth_n man_n minding_n no_o other_o character_n but_o that_o of_o tyranny_n have_v make_v they_o mistake_v the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n birth_n it_o be_v this_o chief_o that_o have_v cause_v our_o interpreter_n to_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n they_o have_v look_v only_o to_o tyranny_n as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o only_a character_n of_o this_o empire_n mounseur_fw-fr du_fw-fr plessis_n have_v make_v a_o great_a book_n about_o it_o with_o this_o title_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n in_o which_o he_o trace_n this_o tyranny_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o pope_n from_o its_o birth_n to_o its_o perfection_n as_o if_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n signify_v nothing_o else_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o principal_o signify_v that_o he_o that_o say_v a_o mystery_n say_v a_o religion_n this_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v mind_v so_o then_o in_o this_o term_n the_o papism_n be_v describe_v with_o respect_n to_o its_o religion_n and_o idolatry_n and_o its_o tyranny_n and_o impiety_n be_v proper_o mean_v in_o these_o word_n that_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god._n some_o man_n head_n have_v run_v so_o much_o upon_o this_o character_n of_o antichrist_n viz._n tyranny_n as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o only_a one_o that_o they_o will_v not_o find_v antichrist_n even_o in_o the_o papism_n before_o the_o time_n that_o the_o pope_n begin_v to_o act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o temporal_a prince_n which_o they_o find_v he_o do_v towards_o the_o year_n 755._o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr du_fw-fr moulin_n in_o his_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n this_o also_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o he_o have_v so_o wide_o mistake_v the_o time_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o antichristianism_n and_o that_o he_o have_v set_v the_o time_n of_o his_o ruin_n so_o far_o off_o for_o he_o think_v that_o antichristianism_n will_v not_o be_v at_o a_o end_n before_o the_o year_n 2015._o so_o we_o shall_v have_v yet_o 330._o year_n long_a to_o suffer_v he_o shall_v have_v remember_v that_o idolatry_n be_v more_o antichristian_a than_a tyranny_n or_o at_o least_o as_o much_o and_o therefore_o that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o antichristian_a period_n the_o six_o seven_o and_o eight_o century_n wherein_o idolatry_n be_v so_o strong_o establish_v corruption_n and_o looseness_n of_o manner_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n and_o be_v the_o way_n for_o antichristianism_n its_o progress_n follow_v by_o the_o introduction_n of_o idolatry_n and_o at_o last_o antichristianism_n be_v consummate_v by_o tyranny_n these_o be_v the_o three_o true_a character_n of_o that_o empire_n the_o union_n whereof_o will_v show_v we_o the_o true_a point_n of_o its_o birth_n chap._n fourteen_o that_o the_o three_o character_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n do_v perfect_o agree_v to_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n proof_n out_o of_o history_n and_o prophecy_n reflection_n upon_o the_o prophecy_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o and_o upon_o the_o end_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o foregoing_a chapter_n that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v egypt_n sodom_n babylon_n and_o that_o its_o character_n signify_v by_o these_o name_n be_v tyranny_n pride_n cruelty_n extreme_a corruption_n of_o manner_n idolatry_n and_o paganism_n we_o have_v fix_v this_o babylonish_n empire_n every_o where_o where_o these_o character_n be_v to_o be_v find_v we_o have_v reckon_v the_o papism_n for_o the_o centre_n and_o the_o body_n rome_n for_o the_o capital_a place_n and_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o head_n we_o must_v now_o prove_v that_o these_o character_n do_v perfect_o agree_v to_o the_o papism_n to_o its_o capital_a place_n and_o its_o head_n but_o we_o do_v pretend_v that_o as_o to_o we_o this_o thing_n have_v be_v already_o do_v we_o have_v do_v it_o in_o our_o just_a prejudices_fw-la against_o popery_n aswell_o as_o we_o be_v able_a and_o indeed_o that_o whole_a work_n be_v but_o a_o proof_n of_o this_o proposition_n that_o all_o the_o character_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n do_v agree_v to_o the_o papism_n papism_n the_o character_n of_o tyranny_n agree_v to_o the_o papism_n if_o any_o desire_v a_o proof_n of_o this_o that_o the_o papism_n be_v a_o egypt_n and_o that_o tyranny_n be_v exercise_v there_o he_o need_v only_o read_v the_o twelve_o and_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n where_o he_o will_v see_v that_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n be_v a_o empire_n pure_o temporal_a under_o the_o show_n of_o a_o spirituality_n and_o the_o fourteen_o chapt._n where_o its_o pure_o humane_a politics_n be_v so_o clear_o bring_v to_o light_n that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o shadow_n remain_v unscatter_v if_o any_o will_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o papism_n be_v a_o most_o horrible_a tyranny_n he_o need_v but_o read_v the_o 21._o and_o 22._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n where_o be_v a_o account_n of_o the_o insolent_a tyrannical_a and_o proud_a action_n and_o speech_n of_o the_o pope_n towards_o all_o man_n without_o except_v even_o sovereign_a prince_n also_o that_o of_o pride_n agree_v to_o it_o also_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n will_v be_v find_v the_o proof_n that_o pride_n another_o character_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n perfect_o agree_v to_o the_o papism_n for_o there_o its_o pride_n will_v be_v see_v in_o its_o opinion_n and_o divinity_n the_o pride_n of_o its_o clergy_n and_o priest_n that_o call_v themselves_o the_o king_n and_o emperor_n of_o the_o world_n the_o pride_n of_o its_o head_n who_o call_v himself_o a_o god_n upon_o earth_n who_o cause_v divine_a honour_n to_o be_v give_v to_o he_o who_o domineer_v with_o authority_n over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o spoil_v they_o of_o their_o crown_n who_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n to_o other_o who_o dispense_v with_o their_o subject_n oath_n of_o allegiance_n who_o tread_v they_o under_o his_o foot_n and_o put_v his_o foot_n upon_o their_o throat_n who_o as_o for_o his_o own_o person_n be_v clothe_v with_o purple_a and_o all_o the_o pomp_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n cruelty_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n be_v a_o egypt_n for_o cruelty_n in_o the_o 26_o and_o 27_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o part_n it_o will_v plain_o be_v see_v that_o cruelty_n perfect_o agree_v to_o this_o empire_n for_o there_o you_o will_v find_v a_o epitome_n of_o all_o the_o cruel_a persecution_n which_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v by_o this_o mystical_a babylon_n the_o blood_n she_o have_v spill_v the_o fire_n she_o have_v kindle_v the_o witty_a punishment_n she_o have_v invent_v and_o the_o incredible_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o she_o have_v murder_v if_o enough_o of_o this_o be_v not_o find_v in_o that_o piece_n you_o may_v have_v recourse_n to_o our_o history_n of_o popery_n the_o second_o recrimination_n be_v whole_o spend_v in_o show_v that_o the_o papism_n since_o more_o than_o 700._o year_n ago_o be_v like_o a_o cruel_a beast_n arm_v with_o tooth_n &_o claw_n that_o tear_n in_o piece_n &_o devour_v all_o that_o oppose_v its_o greatness_n and_o that_o one_o can_v follow_v it_o in_o history_n but_o by_o the_o tract_n of_o innocent_a blood_n that_o it_o have_v shed_v it_o will_v appear_v in_o all_o those_o place_n that_o the_o papism_n be_v always_o the_o same_o and_o that_o at_o this_o very_a day_n as_o well_o as_o former_o it_o be_v cruel_a bloody_a and_o tyrannical_a which_o we_o have_v prove_v by_o the_o persecution_n of_o bohemia_n hungary_n
on_o their_o forehead_n and_o the_o action_n of_o one_o in_o their_o hand_n this_o be_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o not_o some_o particular_a mark_n and_o one_o proper_o so_o call_v here_o be_v wisdom_n 18._o v._o 18._o let_v he_o that_o have_v understanding_n count_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n for_o it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o a_o man_n and_o his_o number_n be_v six_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o six_o if_o so_o much_o have_v not_o be_v write_v about_o this_o here_o will_v be_v a_o subject_a to_o write_v a_o great_a deal_n upon_o but_o in_o a_o few_o word_n i_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o they_o who_o have_v reckon_v the_o numeral_a power_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o its_o pope_n have_v hit_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o prophecy_n it_o be_v the_o number_n of_o his_o name_n that_o be_v to_o say_v express_o contain_v in_o his_o name_n it_o be_v a_o number_n of_o a_o man_n that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o number_n that_o must_v be_v understand_v according_a as_o man_n do_v count_v not_o in_o a_o prophetical_a and_o mysterious_a style_n which_o oftentimes_o under_o one_o number_n hide_v another_o unknown_a number_n but_o in_o what_o language_n must_v we_o count_v the_o numeral_a letter_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o determine_v that_o the_o prophecy_n must_v be_v explain_v according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o prophet_n there_o be_v two_o language_n of_o the_o prophet_n hebrew_n and_o greek_a look_v for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o these_o two_o language_n in_o hebrew_a you_o will_v find_v romiyth_n and_o in_o greek_a lateinos_n the_o first_o signify_v the_o roman_a beast_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o second_o signify_v the_o emperor_n or_o the_o latin_a pope_n and_o in_o the_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o there_o be_v exact_o six_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o six_o here_o i_o may_v stop_v with_o reference_n to_o the_o number_n 666._o and_o it_o be_v with_o some_o difficulty_n that_o i_o enter_v upon_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o author_n who_o will_v have_v this_o number_n 666._o respect_v not_o the_o name_n of_o the_o beast_n but_o of_o his_o empire_n they_o pretend_v that_o as_o the_o number_n 144._o be_v consecrate_v to_o signify_v the_o empire_n of_o j._n christ_n square-root_n the_o number_n 144._o denote_v the_o whole_a church_n because_o of_o twelve_o its_o square-root_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o 144._o thousand_o seal_a one_o pretty_a often_o mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o number_n 666._o mystical_o denote_v the_o entire_a empire_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o its_o principal_a character_n they_o observe_v that_o the_o number_n 144._o have_v for_o its_o square_a root_n the_o number_n twelve_o for_o twelve_o multiply_v by_o itself_o twelve_o time_n twelve_o make_v 144._o the_o number_n of_o twelve_o be_v sacred_a because_o of_o the_o twelve_o patriarch_n of_o the_o ancient_a israel_n and_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n that_o be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o new_a israel_n so_o the_o number_n 144._o that_o mystical_o signify_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o i._o christ_n be_v found_v on_o the_o number_n twelve_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n be_v found_v on_o the_o apostle_n who_o make_v one_o divine_a hierarchy_n wherefore_o the_o number_n twelve_o bear_n sway_v in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o description_n of_o the_o jerusalem_n which_o we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o 21._o chap._n of_o the_o revelation_n she_o have_v twelve_o foundation_n twelve_o gate_n twelve_o angel_n twelve_o tribe_n twelve_o thousand_o furlong_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o place_n bear_v twelve_o sort_n of_o fruit_n every_o year_n and_o last_o the_o wall_n be_v of_o 144._o cubit_n i.e._n twelve_o time_n twelve_o so_o the_o church_n which_o have_v her_o root_n in_o the_o number_n twelve_o by_o the_o multiplication_n of_o this_o number_n twelve_o by_o itself_o make_v 144._o a_o sacred_a number_n but_o the_o number_n 666._o which_o be_v exorbitant_a and_o which_o exceed_v the_o number_n of_o twelve_o and_o have_v not_o this_o number_n twelve_o for_o its_o root_n be_v the_o emblem_n of_o the_o antichristian_a church_n which_o be_v not_o found_v on_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n which_o have_v not_o twelve_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o many_o more_o in_o a_o word_n as_o the_o number_n 666._o have_v no_o relation_n to_o that_o of_o twelve_o so_o the_o antichristian_a church_n have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o christian_a and_o apostolical_a church_n 666._o potter_n opinion_n of_o the_o number_n 666._o a_o english_a divine_a one_o potter_n have_v carry_v this_o notion_n further_o than_o other_o have_v do_v in_o a_o express_a treatise_n which_o he_o have_v make_v about_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o number_n 666._o he_o pretend_v that_o as_o the_o number_n of_o 144._o be_v not_o mystical_o design_v to_o signify_v the_o church_n and_o the_o empire_n of_o i._o christ_n but_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o number_n 12_o which_o be_v its_o square_a root_n and_o on_o which_o it_o be_v build_v in_o like_a manner_n also_o the_o number_n 666._o be_v not_o mystical_a but_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o square_a root_n on_o which_o it_o be_v raise_v so_o he_o will_v have_v it_o that_o we_o shall_v extract_v the_o root_n of_o the_o number_n 666._o and_o believe_v it_o be_v in_o this_o root_n that_o we_o must_v seek_v after_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o beast_n arithmetician_n call_v the_o square_a root_n of_o a_o number_n give_v that_o number_n be_v what_o the_o square_a root_n be_v by_o which_o in_o multiply_v it_o by_o itself_o the_o number_n give_v be_v produce_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o remainder_n or_o no._n for_o instance_n 10_o be_v the_o square_a root_n of_o a_o 100_o because_o ten_o multiply_v by_o itself_o 10_o time_n 10_o make_v a_o 100_o without_o any_o remain_v the_o square_a root_n of_o 55._o be_v seven_o because_o multiply_v 7_o by_o itself_o 7_o time_n 7_o make_v 49_o and_o a_o remainder_n of_o 6_o make_v 55._o according_a to_o this_o the_o square_a root_n of_o the_o number_n 666_o be_v 25_o 666._o 25._o be_v the_o square_a root_n of_o 666._o for_o 25_o multiply_v by_o itself_o make_v 625._o with_o a_o remainder_n of_o 41._o which_o make_v 666._o this_o be_v suppose_v that_o 25_o be_v the_o square_a root_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o number_n 666_o he_o pretend_v that_o as_o 144_o found_v upon_o 12_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n found_v upon_o the_o holy_a hierarchy_n of_o the_o 12_o apostle_n in_o like_a manner_n 666_o represent_v the_o whole_a antichristian_a empire_n of_o the_o papism_n found_v upon_o the_o antichristian_a hierarchy_n and_o to_o make_v appear_v how_o exact_a the_o opposition_n to_o the_o christian_a hierarchy_n be_v he_o show_v that_o as_o the_o number_n 12._o bear_n sway_n in_o the_o whole_a composition_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a city_n 12_o foundation_n 12_o gate_n 12_o angel_n 12_o thousand_o furlong_n 12_o fort_n of_o fruit_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o number_n 25_o bear_n sway_n in_o all_o the_o popish_a hierarchy_n hieraachy_n the_o number_n 25._o bear_n sway_n in_o the_o papal_a hieraachy_n i._o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o cardinal_n who_o according_a to_o their_o first_o institution_n be_v 25_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n be_v but_o 12._o ii_o in_o regard_n to_o the_o number_n of_o church_n into_o which_o rome_n christian_n be_v at_o first_o divide_v which_o be_v 25._o whereas_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n have_v but_o 12_o gate_n the_o church_n in_o which_o they_o do_v baptize_v answer_v to_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o city_n because_o baptism_n be_v the_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n iii_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o parish_n or_o tribe_n which_o in_o rome_n be_v 25_o whereas_o the_o jerusalem_n that_o come_v down_o from_o above_o have_v but_o 12_o tribe_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o 21_o of_o the_o revelation_n iv_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o foundation_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v 25_o cardinal_n original_o and_o ancient_o compose_v the_o sacred_a college_n that_o be_v call_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o the_o holy_a city_n have_v but_o 12_o foundation_n which_o be_v the_o 12_o apostle_n v._o in_o the_o number_n of_o angel_n i.e._n pastor_n who_o be_v in_o number_n 25_o pastor_n cardinal_n pastor_n of_o pastor_n whereas_o the_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o revelation_n know_v but_o 12_o angel_n 12_o principal_a pastor_n which_o be_v the_o 12_o apostle_n vi_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o gate_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v 25._o whereas_o jerusalem_n have_v but_o 12._o vii_o in_o the_o extent_n
of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v 25_o thousand_o furlong_n whereas_o the_o jerusalem_n of_o st._n john_n have_v but_o 12_o thousand_o furlong_n viii_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o be_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n because_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n the_o fruit_n in_o the_o jerusalem_n of_o st._n john_n be_v but_o 12._o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v but_o 12_o also_o but_o the_o article_n of_o the_o popish_a faith_n be_v 25_o in_o number_n he_o find_v moreover_o papism_n the_o number_n of_o 25_o be_v find_v in_o the_o dependency_n of_o the_o papism_n that_o the_o number_n 25_o bear_n sway_n in_o all_o the_o dependence_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n that_o in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o papism_n they_o reckon_v 25_o province_n or_o principal_a dignity_n that_o upon_o the_o great_a altar_n of_o st._n peter_n at_o rome_n there_o be_v a_o golden_a cross_n of_o 25_o hand_n breadth_n before_o the_o church_n there_o be_v five_o gate_n and_o one_o of_o they_o be_v not_o open_v but_o every_o 25_o year_n in_o st._n marry_o major_a there_o be_v 25_o altar_n the_o great_a altar_n of_o the_o church_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v 25_o foot_n square_a one_o every_o side_n beside_o all_o this_o the_o popish_a altar_n be_v mark_v with_o 25_o mark_n in_o honour_n of_o the_o 5_o wound_n of_o i._o christ_n 5_o time_n redouble_v the_o same_o number_n be_v consecrate_v in_o the_o mass_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n because_o of_o the_o 5._o wound_n of_o our_o saviour_n he_o make_v divers_a observation_n of_o this_o nature_n on_o the_o number_n 25_o bear_a sway_n in_o all_o the_o papism_n even_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o begin_v by_o 25_o bishop_n have_v 25_o session_n be_v subscribe_v by_o 25_o arch-bishop_n and_o make_v 25_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o above_o all_o he_o observe_v that_o the_o number_n 25_o with_o its_o square_a root_n 5_o omen_n 25_o a_o curse_a number_n &_o of_o a_o ill_a omen_n be_v consider_v by_o the_o heathen_a as_o number_n of_o a_o ill_a omen_n see_v say_v he_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o number_n 666_o represent_v the_o whole_a antichristian_a empire_n it_o be_v because_o it_o have_v for_o its_o square_a root_n the_o number_n 25_o which_o be_v the_o prevail_a number_n in_o the_o papal_a hierarchy_n wherer_n the_o number_n 144._o that_o signify_v the_o church_n have_v for_o its_o square_a root_n the_o number_n 12_o which_o be_v the_o sacred_a number_n of_o the_o patriarch_n and_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o remainder_n of_o 41_o which_o be_v add_v to_o the_o number_n 625_o arise_v from_o 25._o multiply_v by_o itself_o he_o give_v many_o ingenious_a reason_n for_o it_o and_o which_o do_v deserve_v to_o be_v consult_v on_o the_o place_n 666._o why_o god_n add_v a_o remainder_n of_o 41_o to_o 625._o to_o make_v up_o 666._o joseph_n mede_n who_o be_v a_o great_a master_n in_o these_o sort_n of_o thing_n give_v a_o very_a authentic_a approbation_n of_o this_o discovery_n and_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v very_o ingenious_a but_o i_o confess_v i_o find_v it_o a_o little_a profound_a however_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o it_o may_v be_v this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophecy_n here_o be_v wisdom_n let_v he_o that_o have_v understanding_n count_v the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n for_o understanding_n may_v signify_v the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n i._n e._n arithmetic_n which_o make_v a_o part_n of_o humane_a science_n to_o signify_v that_o to_o penetrate_v into_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o number_n 666._o we_o must_v use_v the_o rule_n of_o arithmetic_n and_o seek_v for_o the_o square_a root_n of_o this_o number_n 666._o beside_o though_o one_o shall_v admit_v all_o the_o observation_n of_o potter_n as_o solid_a this_o will_v not_o destroy_v the_o common_a hypothesis_n which_o be_v that_o the_o number_n 666._o allude_v to_o the_o name_n of_o lateinos_n and_o romiyth_n in_o which_o this_o number_n be_v so_o precise_o find_v for_o the_o product_n of_o 25._o multiply_v by_o itself_o make_v but_o 625._o why_o do_v the_o holy_a spirit_n add_v a_o remainder_n of_o 41_o why_o do_v he_o not_o leave_v the_o round_a account_n of_o 625_o the_o product_n of_o the_o square_a root_n 25_o or_o why_o resolve_v to_o add_v a_o remainder_n do_v he_o not_o add_v 20_o to_o make_v it_o 645_o or_o 30_o to_o make_v it_o 655_o but_o add_v precise_o a_o remainder_n of_o 41_o to_o make_v it_o 666_o i_o be_o persuade_v it_o be_v to_o make_v up_o the_o sum_n contain_v in_o the_o name_n lateinos_n and_o romiyth_n so_o that_o it_o be_v still_o true_a that_o the_o number_n 666_o refer_v immediate_o to_o the_o name_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n but_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o beside_o this_o there_o be_v other_o mystery_n in_o it_o and_o those_o of_o potter_n be_v very_o well_o contrive_v and_o very_o probable_a to_o strengthen_v they_o potter_n two_o consideration_n to_o strengthen_v the_o opinion_n of_o potter_n these_o two_o consideration_n may_v be_v add_v first_o that_o the_o number_n 12._o signify_v very_o natural_o the_o whole_a gospel_n ministry_n because_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o be_v the_o first_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o number_n 144._o must_v also_o natural_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o as_o the_o number_n 144._o be_v produce_v by_o the_o multiplication_n of_o 12_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v form_v by_o the_o multiplication_n which_o be_v produce_v by_o the_o gospel_n ministry_n of_o which_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v the_o founder_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n as_o the_o number_n 666_o be_v produce_v by_o the_o multiplication_n of_o 25_o so_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n and_o of_o the_o beast_n be_v produce_v by_o the_o multiplication_n cause_v by_o his_o false_a ministry_n and_o by_o his_o false_a pastor_n who_o original_o be_v 25._o seoond_fw-mi the_o other_o consideration_n be_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n signify_v the_o gospel_n ministry_n by_o 12_o and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o gospel_n church_n by_o 144._o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o body_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n by_o 666._o to_o teach_v we_o the_o proportion_n that_o be_v between_o the_o false_a church_n and_o the_o true_a 144_o be_v but_o the_o five_o part_n of_o 666._o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o oppression_n and_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n be_v almost_o nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o false_a church_n chap._n xvi_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o seventeen_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n where_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n be_v plain_o describe_v in_o pursue_v the_o picture_n of_o antichrist_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n to_o show_v that_o that_o empire_n be_v find_v in_o the_o papism_n we_o enter_v on_o the_o 17_o chap._n of_o the_o revelation_n which_o contain_v a_o explication_n of_o the_o 13_o chapter_n it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n under_o less_o obscure_a aenigma_n in_o the_o 13_o chapter_n we_o have_v see_v two_o beast_n here_o only_o one_o of_o they_o be_v see_v but_o by_o way_n of_o amends_o for_o that_o here_o be_v a_o woman_n see_v sit_v on_o the_o beast_n so_o that_o here_o be_v two_o person_n so_o he_o carry_v i_o away_o in_o the_o spirit_n into_o the_o wilderness_n 3._o v._o 3._o and_o i_o see_v a_o woman_n sit_v upon_o a_o scarlet-coloured_n beast_n full_a of_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n see_v here_o the_o first_o beast_n of_o the_o 13_o chapter_n i._n e._n the_o roman_a empire_n the_o beast_n be_v of_o a_o scarlet_a colour_n it_o be_v the_o colour_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n its_o emperor_n its_o senator_n and_o its_o grandee_n be_v clothe_v with_o purple_a all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o these_o two_o beast_n this_o here_o and_o that_o of_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o beast_n on_o this_o beast_n sit_v a_o woman_n see_v here_o a_o thing_n that_o speak_v and_o that_o loud_o a_o woman_n who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o this_o signify_v a_o church_n do_v any_o ever_o see_v in_o the_o prophet_n a_o empire_n as_o a_o empire_n represent_v under_o the_o image_n of_o a_o woman_n be_v not_o this_o the_o emblem_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n use_v every_o where_o to_o represent_v either_o the_o true_a church_n the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o the_o false_a church_n that_o be_v become_v unfaithful_a to_o her_o spouse_n a_o woman_n sit_v on_o a_o beast_n this_o be_v
visible_o a_o church_n engraft_v and_o sit_v upon_o a_o empire_n it_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n engraft_v on_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o we_o shall_v touch_v again_o on_o this_o reflection_n in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n and_o the_o woman_n be_v array_v in_o purple_a 4._o v._o 4._o and_o scarlet_a colour_n and_o deck_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n it_o be_v not_o the_o beast_n only_o that_o be_v of_o a_o scarlet_a colour_n the_o woman_n also_o be_v clothe_v with_o purple_a the_o church_n which_o be_v engraft_v on_o the_o empire_n have_v take_v the_o colour_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o pope_n the_o cardinal_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o imperial_a purple_a and_o scarlet_a the_o gold_n the_o pearl_n and_o the_o stone_n increase_v the_o magnificence_n nothing_o be_v more_o proud_a than_o the_o pomp_n of_o the_o roman_a court._n she_o hold_v a_o golden_a cup_n in_o her_o hand_n full_a of_o abomination_n poculum_fw-la aureum_fw-la plenum_fw-la abominationum_fw-la it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a accident_n that_o the_o four_o initial_a letter_n of_o these_o four_o word_n p.a._n p.a._n make_v the_o name_n of_o papa_n in_o the_o bible_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n let_v he_o believe_v it_o that_o will_v that_o this_o be_v pure_o by_o chance_n but_o i_o can_v believe_v it_o this_o woman_n be_v a_o prostitute_n a_o adulterous_a woman_n a_o church_n unfaithful_a to_o jesus_n christ_n her_o spouse_n she_o be_v represent_v to_o we_o make_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o her_o fornication_n these_o be_v her_o abomination_n her_o superstition_n her_o false_a worship_n her_o idol_n and_o her_o false_a religion_n wherewith_o she_o make_v people_n and_o king_n drink_v by_o her_o unhappy_a persuasion_n the_o figure_n be_v borrow_v from_o those_o debauch_a woman_n that_o give_v delicious_a liquor_n to_o their_o gallant_n to_o inflame_v they_o the_o cup_n of_o gold_n into_o which_o all_o these_o abomination_n be_v pour_v out_o be_v the_o pretend_a infallibility_n this_o doctrine_n contain_v all_o the_o superstition_n and_o the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o a_o cup._n it_o retain_v and_o unite_v they_o together_o without_o this_o all_o will_v run_v out_o as_o wine_z out_o of_o a_o vessel_n it_o be_v a_o cup_n of_o gold_n for_o this_o pretend_a privilege_n of_o infallibility_n will_v be_v the_o most_o precious_a thing_n in_o all_o the_o world_n to_o he_o that_o shall_v have_v it_o this_o cup_n of_o gold_n signify_v also_o that_o pompous_a outside_n of_o ceremony_n and_o those_o so_o glitter_a external_o which_o contain_v disguise_v abomination_n and_o idolatry_n the_o people_n drink_v the_o poison_n by_o favour_n of_o the_o cup._n they_o receive_v the_o idolatry_n by_o favour_n of_o the_o pomp_n and_o the_o fair_a outside_n upon_o she_o before_o head_n be_v a_o name_n write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a 5._o v._o 5._o the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v the_o description_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n she_o bear_v write_v on_o her_o forehead_n mystery_n for_o it_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o all_o there_o be_v mystery_n all_o there_o appear_v like_o religion_n it_o be_v the_o proper_a name_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n a_o religion_n full_a of_o abomination_n it_o be_v a_o very_a remarkable_a thing_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v sometime_o bear_v this_o name_n mystery_n write_v in_o the_o forepart_n of_o their_o mitre_n a_o venetian_a author_n assure_v we_o of_o it_o and_o joseph_n scaliger_n say_v that_o he_o have_v see_v they_o so_o mark_v it_o be_v the_o great_a babylon_n we_o have_v see_v why_o she_o be_v so_o call_v babylon_n be_v once_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o idolatry_n and_o i_o see_v the_o woman_n drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n 6._o v._o 6._o it_o be_v no_o long_o the_o beast_n that_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n it_o be_v the_o woman_n it_o be_v no_o long_o the_o ancient_a roman_a empire_n it_o be_v the_o false_a church_n it_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n that_o use_v the_o paw_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o arm_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o of_o king_n to_o persecute_v the_o church_n as_o in_o the_o second_o beast_n of_o the_o 13_o chapter_n the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o roman_a church_n though_o she_o be_v but_o a_o image_n of_o a_o empire_n give_v order_n for_o the_o kill_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o beast_n that_o thou_o see_v be_v and_o be_v not_o 8._o v._o 8._o it_o be_v the_o angel_n that_o speak_v explain_v the_o vision_n to_o saint_n john._n the_o empire_n which_o thou_o have_v see_v represent_v by_o the_o beast_n be_v the_o roman_a pagan_a empire_n that_o tend_v towards_o its_o end_n and_o of_o which_o two_o three_o be_v already_o past_a he_o must_v ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o go_v into_o perdition_n that_o empire_n must_v very_o speedy_o be_v bring_v to_o nothing_o but_o after_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v destroy_v it_o shall_v arise_v again_o out_o of_o hell_n under_o another_o form_n under_o the_o name_n and_o the_o form_n of_o a_o church_n it_o be_v the_o head_n that_o be_v wound_v to_o death_n and_o which_o be_v to_o revive_v but_o this_o second_o empire_n that_o must_v raise_v up_o the_o first_o again_o and_o spring_n from_o its_o ash_n shall_v final_o perish_v whereas_o the_o empire_n that_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o saint_n shall_v never_o perish_v and_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n shall_v wonder_v when_o they_o behold_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v and_o be_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v comprehend_v nothing_o of_o this_o mystery_n they_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o roman_a empire_n shall_v be_v abolish_v rome_n shall_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o mistress_n of_o the_o world_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o on_o a_o sudden_a they_o shall_v again_o see_v rome_n mount_v up_o again_o to_o the_o same_o dignity_n the_o beast_n be_v the_o roman_a empire_n have_v be_v he_o be_v not_o the_o empire_n have_v cease_v and_o yet_o be_v and_o yet_o they_o shall_v see_v this_o empire_n return_v without_o know_v how_o this_o prodigy_n will_v make_v they_o dizzy_a and_o enchant_v they_o here_o be_v the_o mind_n which_o have_v wisdom_n the_o seven_o head_n be_v seven_o mountain_n 9_o v._o 9_o on_o which_o the_o woman_n sit_v we_o have_v see_v seven_o head_n on_o the_o beast_n on_o which_o the_o woman_n sit_v these_o seven_o head_n signify_v two_o thing_n one_a those_o seven_o mountain_n on_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v raise_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o seven_o mountain_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v its_o metropolis_n it_o be_v a_o character_n that_o make_v her_o remarkable_a for_o she_o have_v always_o be_v call_v septicollis_fw-la these_o seven_o head_n be_v also_o seven_o king_n 10._o v._o 10._o five_o be_v fall_v and_o one_o be_v and_o the_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v these_o seven_o head_n signify_v also_o the_o seven_o king_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o seven_o sort_n of_o sovereign_a government_n under_o which_o this_o empire_n have_v pass_v and_o must_v pass_v along_o first_o king_n 2d_o consul_n 3d._a decemvire_n four_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n 5_o perpetual_a dictator_n these_o five_o be_v fall_v these_o five_o government_n be_v pass_v in_o st._n john_n time_n the_o one_o be_v viz._n the_o six_o that_o be_v the_o government_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o seven_o head_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v and_o when_o he_o come_v he_o must_v continue_v a_o short_a space_n i_o former_o believe_v that_o these_o word_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o the_o papism_n but_o i_o believe_v it_o no_o long_o and_o to_o understand_v they_o we_o must_v read_v the_o follow_a verse_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v 11._o v._o 11._o and_o be_v not_o even_o he_o be_v the_o eight_o and_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o and_o go_v into_o perdition_n it_o be_v it_o may_v be_v design_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o render_v the_o prophecy_n more_o obscure_a that_o the_o h._n spirit_n have_v invert_v the_o word_n we_o must_v therefore_o resume_v the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o forego_n verse_n join_v they_o with_o these_o here_o and_o place_v they_o all_o thus_o and_o the_o eight_o king_n be_v also_o of_o the_o beast_n which_o be_v and_o be_v not_o he_o be_v of_o the_o seven_o and_o when_o he_o shall_v come_v he_o must_v continue_v for_o a_o short_a space_n and_o then_o go_v
to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n many_o shall_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v increase_v 5._o then_o i_o daniel_n look_v and_o behold_v there_o stand_v other_o two_o the_o one_o on_o this_o side_n of_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o river_n and_o the_o other_o on_o that_o side_n of_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o river_n 6._o and_o one_o say_v to_o the_o man_n clothe_v in_o linen_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o water_n of_o the_o river_n how_o long_o shall_v it_o be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o these_o wonder_n 7._o and_o i_o hear_v the_o man_n clothe_v in_o linen_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o water_n of_o the_o river_n when_o he_o hold_v up_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o his_o left_a hand_n to_o heaven_n and_o swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o a_o time_n time_n and_o a_o half_a and_o when_o he_o shall_v have_v accomplish_v to_o scatter_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a people_n all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v finish_v 8._o and_o i_o hear_v but_o i_o understand_v not_o then_o say_v i_o o_o my_o lord_n what_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o these_o thing_n 9_o and_o he_o say_v go_v thy_o way_n daniel_n for_o the_o word_n be_v close_v up_o and_o seal_v till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n 10._o many_o shall_v be_v purify_v and_o make_v white_a and_o try_v but_o the_o wicked_a shall_v do_v wicked_o and_o none_o of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v understand_v but_o the_o wise_a shall_v understand_v 11._o and_o from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n that_o make_v desolate_a set_v up_o there_o shall_v be_v 1290._o day_n 12._o bless_a be_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o five_o and_o thirty_o day_n 13._o but_o go_v thou_o thy_o way_n till_o the_o end_n be_v for_o thou_o shall_v rest_v and_o stand_v in_o thy_o lot_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n as_o interpreter_n agree_v that_o these_o prophecy_n in_o the_o literal_a meaning_n of_o they_o be_v concern_v antiochus_n epiphanes_n the_o great_a persecutor_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n so_o almost_o all_o agree_v also_o that_o this_o mystical_o refer_v to_o antichrist_n and_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o doubt_n of_o antiochus_n be_v a_o type_n of_o antichrist_n we_o shall_v see_v such_o clear_a proof_n of_o it_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v possible_a to_o doubt_v of_o it_o as_o the_o principle_n be_v common_o perceive_v i_o will_v suppose_v it_o and_o will_v not_o give_v myself_o the_o trouble_n to_o prove_v it_o any_o otherwise_o than_o in_o apply_v all_o that_o to_o antichrist_n that_o be_v say_v of_o antiochus_n i_o will_v only_o make_v some_o remark_n to_o confirm_v this_o truth_n i._o old._n both_o good_a and_o bad_a under_o the_o n._n testament_n have_v have_v their_o type_n under_o the_o old._n we_o must_v observe_v that_o all_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o happen_v under_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v their_o type_n under_o the_o old._n it_o be_v not_o only_a jesus_n christ_n that_o have_v type_n for_o his_o person_n for_o his_o office_n for_o his_o good_a work_n his_o enemy_n also_o have_v have_v their_o type_n the_o action_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v be_v typical_a the_o victory_n of_o samson_n over_o the_o philistine_n those_o of_o david_n over_o goliath_n be_v type_n of_o the_o victory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n all_o the_o world_n believe_v it_o and_o no_o one_o doubt_n it_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v also_o that_o the_o criminal_a action_n of_o eminent_a person_n have_v be_v typical_a likewise_o if_o on_o one_o hand_n there_o have_v be_v person_n and_o action_n typical_a of_o the_o good_a there_o have_v be_v also_o person_n and_o action_n typical_a of_o the_o evil_n cain_n be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n come_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n he_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o his_o action_n against_o his_o brother_n be_v a_o typical_a sin_n that_o represent_v the_o persecution_n which_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o bring_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o church_n the_o sin_n of_o esau_n that_o despise_v the_o right_n of_o primogeniture_n and_o sell_v it_o for_o a_o mess_n of_o broth_n be_v a_o type_n of_o those_o profane_a one_o that_o renounce_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v for_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o present_a world._n lot_n wife_n that_o look_v towards_o sodom_n and_o the_o israelite_n that_o turn_v their_o eye_n towards_o egypt_n after_o they_o be_v go_v forth_o from_o it_o be_v type_n of_o those_o miserable_a person_n who_o after_o they_o have_v be_v draw_v from_o sin_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v eager_a after_o the_o world_n from_o which_o they_o be_v depart_v and_o return_v to_o it_o again_o as_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n have_v have_v his_o type_n christ_n antichrist_n ha●●_n have_v his_o type_n as_o well_o as_o j._n christ_n without_o doubt_n antichrist_n have_v his_o too_o and_o that_o in_o great_a number_n cain_n goliath_n pharaoh_n nabuchadnezzar_n and_o the_o other_o oppressor_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o faithful_a have_v be_v type_n of_o antichrist_n among_o these_o type_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o more_o note_v and_o more_o plain_a than_o antiochus_n who_o make_v the_o continual_a sacrifice_n cease_v for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a who_o make_v the_o church_n desolate_a who_o make_v almost_o the_o whole_a nation_n fall_n into_o apostasy_n who_o profane_v the_o temple_n and_o cruel_o persecute_v those_o that_o persevere_v in_o the_o true_a religion_n so_o that_o as_o in_o the_o type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o seek_v for_o and_o find_v his_o character_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o antiochus_n and_o that_o which_o the_o prophecy_n say_v of_o he_o we_o may_v find_v the_o character_n of_o antichrist_n but_o we_o must_v observe_v there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o prophecy_n one_o that_o direct_o respect_v the_o principal_a subject_n the_o other_o that_o respect_v it_o only_o mediate_o and_o indirect_o and_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o some_o type_n to_o which_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o prophesy_n do_v belong_v for_o example_n the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o 53._o chap._n of_o esai_n respect_n j._n christ_n immediate_o and_o without_o the_o intervention_n of_o any_o type_n type_n there_o be_v prophecy_n wherein_o the_o thing_n agree_v partly_o to_o the_o type_n partly_o to_o the_o person_n signify_v by_o the_o type_n but_o the_o 45_o psal_n and_o the_o second_o respect_n jesus_n christ_n but_o mediate_o and_o by_o the_o intervention_n of_o the_o type_n in_o the_o second_o psal_n the_o type_n be_v david_n to_o who_o belong_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o psalm_n in_o the_o 45_o psal_n the_o type_n be_v solomon_n and_o it_o be_v he_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o text_n respect_v these_o two_o sort_n of_o prophecy_n ought_v to_o be_v handle_v different_o those_o of_o the_o first_o rank_n i._n e._n those_o that_o refer_v only_o and_o immediate_o to_o jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v apply_v only_o and_o uniform_o to_o jesus_n christ_n in_o all_o their_o part_n but_o those_o of_o the_o second_o rank_n be_v much_o hard_a to_o be_v disintricate_v for_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o person_n that_o be_v the_o type_n other_o that_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o person_n that_o be_v represent_v by_o the_o type_n and_o last_o other_o that_o belong_v both_o to_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o for_o example_n in_o the_o 45_o psal_n these_o word_n thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o the_o sceptre_n of_o thy_o kingdom_n be_v a_o sceptre_n of_o righteousness_n etc._n etc._n o_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o all_o thy_o fellow_n these_o word_n i_o say_v can_v without_o great_a violence_n be_v apply_v to_o solomon_n for_o solomon_n be_v not_o a_o god_n and_o it_o can_v be_v to_o he_o that_o the_o h._n spirit_n say_v thy_o throne_n o_o god_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v other_o word_n in_o the_o same_o psalm_n which_o certain_o respect_v solomon_n as_o a_o type_n and_o j._n christ_n as_o the_o person_n represent_v by_o the_o type_n for_o example_n thou_o be_v fair_a than_o any_o of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n 3._o v._o 3._o grace_n be_v pour_v into_o thy_o lip_n because_o god_n have_v bless_v thou_o for_o ever_o last_o i_o be_o certain_a there_o be_v other_o word_n that_o agree_v only_o to_o solomen_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o necessary_a to_o refer_v they_o to_o jesus_n christ_n for_o example_n these_o word_n 10._o v._o 10._o daughter_n of_o king_n be_v among_o thy_o
pay_v tribute_n and_o his_o be_v hostage_n at_o rome_n many_o year_n go_v to_o render_v homage_n to_o this_o god_n even_o in_o his_o own_o seat_n make_v the_o servitude_n and_o the_o homage_n principal_o fall_v on_o he_o and_o they_o may_v be_v just_o attribute_v to_o he_o three_o though_o the_o servitude_n begin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o father_n nevertheless_o the_o prophecy_n particular_o fix_v it_o on_o the_o son_n because_o of_o that_o pride_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o he_o as_o if_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v have_v say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o asia_n shall_v feel_v the_o force_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o the_o mortification_n of_o this_o proud_a antiochus_n who_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v a_o accident_n that_o to_o i_o seem_v marvellous_a that_o this_o prophecy_n find_v its_o accomplishment_n in_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o roman_n as_o well_o in_o the_o temporal_a as_o in_o the_o spiritual_a sense_n i_o say_v above_o that_o antiochus_n be_v not_o a_o type_n of_o antichrist_n but_o in_o the_o thing_n he_o do_v against_o the_o jewish_a nation_n because_o the_o strange_a nation_n have_v no_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n nothing_o that_o tyrant_n do_v against_o the_o nation_n be_v mystical_a therefore_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v after_o a_o mystery_n in_o that_o which_o the_o prophecy_n foretells_a that_o antiochus_n shall_v do_v against_o the_o egyptian_n against_o ptolomee_n and_o in_o reference_n to_o other_o people_n but_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o except_v the_o roman_n from_o this_o rule_n though_o they_o then_o be_v a_o nation_n estrange_v from_o the_o church_n yet_o however_o they_o have_v a_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n for_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o antichristian_a church_n and_o already_o in_o the_o prophecy_n rome_n pagan_a that_o then_o be_v make_v but_o one_o beast_n i._n e._n one_o empire_n with_o rome_n christian_n and_o antichristian_a so_o that_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o genius_n of_o the_o prophecy_n that_o the_o type_n of_o the_o roman_a antichrist_n shall_v be_v a_o type_n in_o what_o he_o do_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o roman_n beside_o it_o can_v be_v think_v strange_a that_o the_o same_o prophecy_n shall_v have_v two_o prospect_n and_o consequent_o two_o accomplishment_n for_o so_o it_o be_v always_o in_o those_o prophecy_n that_o turn_v on_o a_o typical_a subject_n that_o which_o may_v make_v some_o difficulty_n be_v that_o the_o temporal_a adventure_n of_o the_o type_n have_v usual_o their_o figurative_a respect_n to_o the_o spiritual_a adventure_n of_o the_o thing_n represent_v by_o the_o type_n which_o do_v not_o appear_v here_o for_o the_o homage_v which_o antiochus_n render_v to_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o have_v any_o typical_a reference_n to_o the_o homage_v which_o the_o new_a roman_n give_v to_o their_o demigod_n they_o have_v however_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o homage_n which_o the_o new_a subject_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n do_v render_v at_o rome_n to_o its_o head_n to_o its_o saint_n and_o idol_n have_v respect_n of_o a_o figure_n and_o the_o thing_n figure_v to_o the_o homage_n which_o the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n do_v render_v to_o ancient_a rome_n who_o citizenship_n they_o do_v underhand_o labour_v for_o and_o who_o eagle_n and_o other_o military_a ensign_n they_o worship_v religio_fw-la romanorum_fw-la tota_fw-la castrensis_fw-la 1●_n tertul_n apolog._n c._n 1●_n signa_fw-la veneratur_fw-la signa_fw-la jurat_fw-la signa_fw-la omnibus_fw-la diis_fw-la praeponit_fw-la st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o h._n virgin_n at_o this_o day_n be_v in_o the_o banner_n of_o rome_n just_a as_o the_o eagle_n be_v heretofore_o and_o all_o the_o world_n give_v homage_n to_o these_o banner_n and_o to_o that_o which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o just_a as_o during_o the_o empire_n of_o ancient_a rome_n man_n do_v prostrate_v themselves_o before_o the_o eagle_n i_o hold_v that_o the_o twelve_o and_o last_o chapter_n of_o daniel_n epiphanes_n the_o 12_o chapt._n of_o daniel_n respect_v also_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n do_v also_o refer_v to_o antiochus_n and_o antichrist_n and_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v michael_n stand_v up_o the_o great_a prince_n that_o stand_v for_o the_o child_n of_o thy_o people_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n of_o trouble_n such_o as_o nevey_v be_v since_o there_o be_v a_o nation_n even_o unto_o that_o same_o time_n and_o at_o that_o time_n thy_o people_n shall_v be_v deliver_v every_o one_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n this_o prophecy_n literal_o respect_v antiochus_n last_o persecution_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v terrible_a and_o cruel_a but_o end_v by_o the_o victory_n of_o the_o macchabee_n this_o michael_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o who_o always_o watch_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o church_n spiritual_o and_o mystical_o this_o agree_v to_o antichrist_n and_o respect_v the_o last_o persecution_n that_o he_o must_v cause_v the_o church_n to_o suffer_v after_o which_o he_o himself_o be_v to_o be_v ruin_v and_o the_o people_n of_o the_o saint_n deliver_v it_o be_v the_o same_o victory_n as_o be_v describe_v to_o we_o in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o the_o revel_n the_o word_n that_o follow_v make_v it_o very_o plain_a that_o this_o prophecy_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o that_o victory_n that_o j._n christ_n must_v obtain_v over_o antichrist_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n antichrist_n daniel_n bring_v in_o the_o resurrection_n here_o to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o victory_n of_o j._n christ_n over_o antichrist_n and_o many_o of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v awake_v some_o to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o some_o to_o everlasting_a shame_n and_o contempt_n and_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o firmament_n and_o they_o that_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n as_o the_o star_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o what_o i_o pray_v shall_v the_o resurrection_n do_v here_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o chap._n in_o which_o the_o adventure_n only_o of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n be_v speak_v of_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o be_v perfect_o the_o same_o prophecy_n as_o that_o of_o st._n john_n in_o the_o 20_o chapt._n of_o the_o revel_n where_o the_o apostle_n predict_v the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o come_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o resurrection_n they_o that_o be_v behead_v for_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n must_v be_v raise_v up_o and_o reign_v with_o he_o a_o 1000_o year_n this_o be_v what_o daniel_n say_v here_o that_o they_o that_o have_v turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o by_o their_o martyrdom_n shall_v be_v as_o shine_v and_o rule_v star_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o j._n christ_n year_n the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n join_v together_o the_o two_o resurrection_n the_o first_o &_o the_o second_o though_o they_o be_v distant_a each_o from_o the_o other_o a_o 1000_o year_n it_o be_v not_o the_o last_o resurrection_n nor_o the_o last_o come_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o st._n john_n speak_v of_o no_o more_o than_o daniel_n it_o be_v of_o that_o come_v that_o st._n paul_n speak_v of_o when_o he_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v destroy_v antichrist_n by_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o establish_v his_o kingdom_n of_o a_o 1000_o year_n on_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v that_o resurrection_n which_o the_o revelation_n call_v the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o daniel_n do_v not_o say_v and_o all_o those_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n shall_v awake_v but_o he_o only_o say_v many_o of_o those_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n even_o as_o st._n john_n say_v so_o express_o that_o then_o all_o the_o dead_a shall_v not_o arise_v it_o be_v true_a that_o daniel_n also_o join_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o some_o shall_v awake_v to_o shame_n and_o everlasting_a contempt_n but_o we_o must_v not_o conclude_v that_o this_o resurrection_n of_o the_o wicked_a must_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n one_o prophecy_n must_v be_v explain_v by_o the_o other_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o daniel_n join_v here_o with_o the_o first_o resurrection_n be_v distant_a from_o it_o at_o least_o a_o 1000_o year_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o of_o two_o thing_n join_v together_o because_o he_o who_o speak_v be_v god_n before_o who_o a_o 1000_o year_n be_v but_o as_o one_o day_n beside_o this_o when_o our_o eye_n look_v on_o thing_n very_o far_o off_o always_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v far_o from_o one_o another_o seem_v to_o be_v near_o the_o star_n seem_v to_o we_o to_o be_v near_o the_o moon_n and_o yet_o
they_o be_v at_o a_o prodigious_a distance_n from_o it_o so_o the_o prophet_n look_v on_o these_o two_o resurrection_n the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o it_o be_v not_o strange_a that_o behold_v they_o at_o so_o great_a distance_n he_o look_v on_o they_o as_o join_v together_o though_o they_o be_v a_o 1000_o year_n distant_a from_o each_o other_o moreover_o the_o h._n spirit_n from_o this_o first_o resurrection_n in_o which_o the_o church_n must_v be_v deliver_v and_o which_o it_o may_v be_v be_v but_o a_o figurative_a resurrection_n will_v raise_v we_o up_o to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o last_o and_o general_a resurrection_n because_o this_o first_o resurrection_n that_o must_v be_v before_o the_o 1000_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v but_o a_o emblem_n of_o the_o great_a deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o one_o body_n translate_v from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n by_o the_o last_o resurrection_n it_o be_v usual_a with_o the_o prophet_n to_o have_v holy_a sally_n that_o from_o temporal_a thing_n do_v transport_v they_o to_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a one_o isaiah_n speak_v of_o a_o sign_n that_o god_n will_v give_v to_o ahaz_n and_o which_o he_o refuse_v pass_v over_o many_o age_n leave_v there_o ahaz_n and_o his_o sign_n 7._o esai_n 7._o and_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n shall_v give_v you_o a_o sign_n behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v bear_v a_o son_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n be_v not_o less_o profound_a but_o as_o it_o respect_v the_o duration_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o antiochus_n literal_o and_o mystical_o the_o time_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n we_o shall_v reserve_v it_o for_o that_o chap._n where_o we_o must_v speak_v of_o the_o duration_n of_o his_o kingdom_n chap._n xxiv_o in_o which_o be_v gather_v together_o 35._o character_n of_o antichrist_n that_o perfect_o agree_v to_o the_o papism_n and_o can_v agree_v to_o any_o but_o it_o fearure_n a_o short_a portraiture_n of_o antichrifi_n and_o his_o fearure_n after_o sound_v all_o the_o fountain_n whence_o the_o pourtaiture_n of_o antichrist_n be_v draw_v i_o believe_v it_o will_v not_o be_v unuseful_a to_o gather_v together_o here_o all_o the_o stroke_n that_o we_o may_v see_v they_o all_o with_o one_o view_n and_o that_o we_o may_v discern_v the_o perfect_a conformity_n that_o be_v between_o that_o antichrist_n and_o the_o papism_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v a_o empire_n 13.1_o rev._n 13.1_o for_o it_o be_v call_v a_o beast_n now_o in_o the_o prophetic_a style_n a_o beast_n always_o signify_v a_o empire_n when_o king_n be_v treat_v of_o the_o papism_n be_v a_o empire_n in_o all_o the_o form_n of_o worldly_a empire_n ancient_a and_o modern_a we_o have_v prove_v it_o with_o the_o great_a evidence_n in_o our_o prejudices_fw-la 2._o it_o must_v also_o be_v a_o religion_n 2._o 2_o thes_n 2._o for_o it_o be_v call_v a_o mystery_n and_o it_o must_v be_v a_o false_a religion_n for_o it_o be_v call_v a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o a_o apostasy_n there_o be_v only_o the_o papism_n in_o which_o a_o empire_n and_o a_o religion_n be_v find_v both_o together_o 8._o 1_o tim._n 4.1_o 8._o it_o be_v true_a mahomet_n make_v a_o empire_n and_o a_o religion_n at_o the_o same_o time_n but_o in_o mahometanism_n the_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o empire_n nor_o the_o empire_n the_o religion_n and_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o sovereign_a lord_n under_o the_o pretext_n of_o religion_n mahometanism_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o aempire_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v but_o one_o religion_n a_o proof_n that_o the_o religion_n and_o the_o empire_n be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n 19.20_o the_o papism_n be_v the_o only_a religion_n that_o boast_v of_o a_o prophet_n always_o live_v rev._n 19.20_o 3._o antichrist_n must_v have_v a_o prophet_n i._n e._n a_o man_n that_o say_v he_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o pretend_v to_o pronounce_v oracle_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ancient_a prophet_n for_o with_o the_o beast_n be_v join_v the_o false_a prophet_n the_o beast_n be_v take_v and_o together_o with_o he_o the_o false_a prophet_n that_o wrought_v sign_n before_o he_o there_o be_v no_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n but_o the_o papism_n that_o pretend_v to_o have_v a_o infallible_a head_n always_o pronounce_v oracle_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a always_o speak_v and_o always_o live_v this_o be_v a_o very_a peculiar_a character_n and_o which_o shall_v make_v we_o well_o discern_v he_o 4._o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o antichrist_n must_v principal_o consist_v in_o idolatry_n 17._o 1_o tim._n 4._o 2_o thes_n 2._o rev._n 17._o for_o it_o be_v call_v apostasy_n a_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n spiritual_a whoredom_n the_o papism_n be_v a_o religion_n in_o which_o idol_n be_v re-establisht_a under_o new_a name_n we_o have_v also_o clear_o prove_v it_o 17._o the_o idolatry_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v a_o idolatry_n of_o christian_n rev._n 17._o 5._o this_o antichristian_a idolatry_n must_v be_v a_o idolatry_n of_o christian_n which_o must_v be_v exercise_v in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o without_o by_o the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o not_o by_o a_o stranger_n for_o this_o idolatry_n be_v call_v adultery_n and_o conjugal_a unfaithfulness_n the_o papism_n with_o its_o idolatry_n retain_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o preserve_v christianity_n 6._o the_o chief_a city_n of_o this_o empire_n and_o of_o this_o religion_n must_v be_v a_o city_n seat_v on_o seven_o mountaïn_n 17.9.18_o rev._n 17.9.18_o and_o the_o great_a city_n which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n john_n rule_v over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v rome_n the_o papism_n have_v for_o the_o capital_a of_o its_o empire_n and_o religion_n new_a rome_n build_v where_o the_o ancient_a one_o be_v 7._o this_o empire_n be_v to_o form_v itself_o not_o by_o force_n but_o by_o craft_n by_o seduction_n and_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o west_n 13.13_o rev._n 13.13_o that_o be_v to_o give_v their_o power_n to_o the_o beast_n the_o power_n of_o the_o papism_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n come_v by_o illusion_n rather_o than_o by_o the_o violence_n that_o both_o king_n and_o people_n have_v suffer_v 8._o this_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v be_v a_o continuation_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o roman_n 13._o dan._n 2.7_o rev._n 13._o as_o have_v be_v show_v by_o the_o vision_n of_o daniel_n statue_n by_o that_o of_o the_o four_o beast_n and_o by_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o 13_o of_o the_o revel_n the_o papism_n be_v a_o true_a continuation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v the_o very_a same_o seat_n and_o very_o hear_v the_o same_o province_n 9_o this_o empire_n must_v be_v only_o a_o image_n of_o a_o empire_n a_o image_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n 15._o rev._n 13.14_o 15._o yet_o this_o image_n must_v speak_v and_o must_v be_v worship_v in_o all_o the_o earth_n the_o papism_n have_v no_o arm_n nor_o citadel_n that_o real_o make_v a_o empire_n it_o have_v nothing_o but_o superstition_n and_o foolish_a fondness_n for_o all_o its_o arm_n however_o it_o speak_v it_o threaten_v it_o promise_v it_o teach_v it_o seduce_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o reign_v 10._o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v have_v ten_o horn_n 17._o rev._n 13._o end_n 17._o that_o be_v to_o say_v ten_o king_n vassal_n and_o subject_n prop_n and_o upholder_n of_o its_o throne_n the_o papism_n have_v always_o have_v under_o it_o ten_o principal_a king_n that_o have_v worship_v and_o maintain_v its_o power_n 11._o antichrist_n must_v speak_v great_a thing_n in_o his_o own_o behalf_n 13.5_o rev._n 13.5_o but_o against_o god_n for_o they_o must_v be_v blasphemy_n the_o papism_n say_v of_o itself_o and_o its_o capital_a great_a and_o mighty_a thing_n say_v that_o rome_n be_v eternal_a that_o she_o be_v infallible_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v superior_a to_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n the_o vicar_n of_o j._n christ_n god_n upon_o earth_n his_o holiness_n and_o most_o holy_a lord_n and_o these_o arrogant_a pretension_n be_v true_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n against_o j._n christ_n and_o against_o the_o true_a church_n the_o spouse_n of_o j._n christ_n 12._o antichrist_n must_v raise_v war_n and_o cruel_a persecution_n on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n 13.7_o rev._n 13.7_o for_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o saint_n and_o to_o overcome_v they_o the_o papism_n have_v bathe_v itself_o in_o humane_a and_o christian_a blood_n for_o six_o or_o seven_o hundred_o year_n 13._o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v a_o empire_n raise_v up_o again_o 13.3_o rev._n 13.3_o a_o head_n mortal_o wound_v but_o heal_v again_o the_o empire_n of_o
show_v it_o to_o we_o 33._o this_o babylon_n must_v make_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n drink_v 18._o rev._n 18._o to_o make_v they_o her_o slave_n the_o papism_n have_v pour_v out_o on_o the_o people_n a_o spirit_n of_o dulness_n a_o drunkenness_n a_o charm_n which_o have_v bewitch_v they_o to_o run_v after_o she_o 34._o the_o colour_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v purple_a and_o scarlet_a 18._o rev._n 18._o his_o magnificence_n must_v be_v extraordinary_a he_o must_v be_v adorn_v with_o gold_n precious_a stone_n and_o pearl_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v purple_a for_o its_o colour_n its_o chief_a priest_n in_o the_o day_n of_o ceremony_n be_v cover_v with_o gold_n and_o pearl_n its_o cardinal_n be_v as_o king_n 35._o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n must_v endure_v 1260._o year_n which_o shall_v be_v prove_v afterward_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n have_v endure_v very_o near_o so_o long_o already_o chap._n xxv_o how_o antichrist_n come_v to_o be_v mistake_v be_v so_o well_o characterise_v in_o the_o prophecy_n a_o comparirison_n of_o j._n christ_n and_o antichrist_n in_o the_o accidental_a circumstance_n of_o their_o come_n see_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n so_o express_o mark_v with_o the_o character_n of_o antichristianism_n one_o can_v sufficient_o wonder_v than_o man_n have_v so_o general_o mistake_v he_o it_o be_v a_o scandal_n on_o the_o faithful_a and_o a_o prejudicable_a opinion_n that_o seem_v favourable_a to_o the_o papist_n therefore_o we_o must_v say_v something_o of_o the_o reason_n that_o have_v make_v antichrist_n be_v mistake_v when_o he_o do_v come_v accomplish_v god_n will_v not_o have_v the_o prophecy_n understand_v that_o they_o may_v be_v accomplish_v the_o first_o and_o the_o fundamental_a reason_n be_v the_o profound_a will_n of_o god_n who_o will_v not_o have_v prophecy_n be_v understand_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v their_o accomplishment_n with_o the_o more_o ease_n if_o the_o jew_n have_v understand_v the_o prophecy_n touch_v the_o messiah_n if_o they_o have_v apprehend_v that_o he_o must_v have_v be_v a_o man_n of_o grief_n accustom_v to_o weakness_n that_o he_o must_v have_v be_v lead_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o offer_v up_o his_o soul_n as_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n at_o least_o in_o his_o first_o come_n they_o will_v have_v be_v on_o their_o guard_n moreover_o see_v j._n christ_n work_v of_o miracle_n teach_v so_o holy_a a_o doctrine_n lead_v so_o holy_a a_o life_n they_o will_v not_o have_v mistake_v he_o though_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o king._n they_o will_v not_o have_v crucify_v he_o and_o the_o prophecy_n will_v not_o have_v be_v fulfil_v this_o example_n of_o j._n christ_n mistake_v by_o that_o whole_a nation_n for_o which_o he_o come_v will_v be_v very_o useful_a to_o we_o first_o it_o will_v teach_v we_o christian_n j._n christ_n mistake_v by_o the_o jew_n instruct_v we_o how_o antichrist_n may_v be_v may_v be_v mistake_v by_o the_o christian_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v scandalize_v in_o any_o manner_n at_o this_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n during_o so_o many_o age_n do_v mistake_v antichrist_n nor_o grant_v that_o as_o a_o favourable_a opinion_n for_o the_o papism_n for_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o more_o strange_a than_o what_o happen_v to_o the_o jew_n all_o the_o whole_a nation_n except_o a_o small_a number_n know_v not_o j._n christ_n all_o the_o whole_a church_n except_o a_o few_o person_n do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o papism_n be_v antichristianism_n second_o this_o example_n teach_v we_o that_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n touch_v j._n christ_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v know_v in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o prophecy_n touch_v antichrist_n shall_v not_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v accomplish_v if_o the_o church_n have_v understand_v that_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n understand_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o prophecy_n touch_v antichrist_n may_v be_v accomplish_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n that_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a apostasy_n that_o the_o worship_n of_o relic_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n be_v to_o be_v a_o abomination_n by_o which_o the_o sanctuary_n shall_v be_v defile_v the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n will_v never_o have_v suffer_v the_o establishment_n of_o tyranny_n at_o rome_n and_o idolatry_n in_o the_o temple_n antichrist_n a_o comparison_n of_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n three_o this_o event_n common_a to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o antichrist_n not_o to_o be_v know_v by_o those_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o of_o who_o they_o come_v gives_z occasion_n to_o make_v a_o reflection_n on_o the_o profound_a and_o mysterious_a dispensation_n of_o providence_n that_o will_v make_v this_o conformity_n between_o two_o subject_n in_o other_o respect_n so_o different_a and_o opposite_a but_o as_o opposite_a as_o they_o be_v they_o agree_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o come_n and_o in_o the_o accident_n of_o that_o come_n which_o we_o will_v present_o see_v by_o the_o comparison_n that_o we_o will_v forth_o with_o make_v antichrist_n be_v a_o false_a christ_n he_o be_v a_o false_a image_n of_o he_o now_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o false_a image_n to_o have_v something_o that_o imitate_v the_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o will_v pass_v be_v a_o parallel_n between_o what_o jesus_n christ_n be_v and_o what_o the_o pope_n pretend_v to_o be_v or_o be_v first_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o holy_a of_o holies_n antichrist_n call_v himself_o his_o holiness_n and_o most_o holy_a lord_n second_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a bridegroom_n of_o the_o church_n antichrist_n assume_v the_o name_n of_o the_o second_o bridegroom_n three_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o vicar_n and_o lieutenant_n of_o the_o father_n send_v on_o the_o earth_n to_o act_v in_o his_o name_n our_o antichrist_n also_o call_v himself_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n four_o jesus_n christ_n be_v he_o who_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v it_o be_v he_o that_o distribute_v the_o indulgence_n of_o his_o father_n and_z gives_z remission_n of_o sin_n antichrist_n arrogate_v the_o same_o right_n to_o himself_o five_o i._o christ_n be_v promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n so_o antichrist_n have_v be_v foretold_v 6_o jesus_n christ_n be_v describe_v by_o such_o lively_a stroke_n that_o it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a not_o to_o know_v he_o for_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n more_o express_a than_o the_o 53_o ch._n of_o esai_n &_o the_o 9_o of_o daniel_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o know_v antichrist_n though_o so_o exact_o describe_v as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v not_o acknowledge_v by_o they_o that_o nourish_v he_o in_o their_o bosom_n 7_o the_o come_n of_o i._o christ_n be_v mark_v by_o a_o circumstance_n so_o notable_a that_o one_o can_v not_o but_o know_v it_o it_o be_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n shiloh_n be_v to_o come_v when_o the_o lawgiver_n and_o the_o sceptre_n be_v depart_v from_o judah_n 49._o gen._n 49._o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n be_v mark_v by_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o temporal_a roman_a empire_n a_o circumstance_n so_o remarkable_a that_o all_o the_o world_n see_v it_o 8_o i._o christ_n be_v expect_v at_o the_o time_n when_o he_o come_v the_o jew_n perceive_v that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o fulfil_n the_o oracle_n do_v draw_v nigh_o they_o reckon_v up_o the_o 70_o week_n and_o apprehend_v that_o the_o end_n of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v far_o off_o the_o christian_n expect_v antichrist_n at_o the_o time_n when_o he_o be_v reveal_v we_o learn_v it_o from_o st._n jerom_n who_o see_v the_o empire_n run_v to_o ruin_v by_o the_o invasion_n of_o the_o quade_v goth_n burgundian_n etc._n etc._n confess_v the_o time_n of_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n can_v not_o be_v far_o off_o 9_o i._o christ_n not_o know_v by_o so_o many_o people_n be_v however_o acknowledge_v by_o some_o of_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o jew_n antichrist_n not_o know_v almost_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n however_o have_v be_v so_o by_o divers_a particular_a person_n who_o testimony_n we_o have_v produce_v in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o our_o prejudices_fw-la against_o popery_n that_o which_o be_v more_o admirable_a in_o this_o parallel_n be_v that_o i._o christ_n and_o antichrist_n be_v not_o know_v almost_o for_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n know_v the_o figurative_a high_a expression_n be_v the_o cause_n why_o christ_n and_o antichrist_n be_v not_o know_v the_o prophecy_n
that_o be_v design_v to_o make_v know_v i._o christ_n be_v in_o part_n the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v for_o if_o in_o some_o place_n he_o be_v represent_v to_o we_o in_o his_o natural_a and_o true_a estate_n in_o other_o he_o be_v represent_v in_o lively_a &_o bright_a colour_n with_o magnificent_a and_o pompous_a figure_n so_o that_o by_o these_o description_n one_o will_v have_v take_v he_o for_o a_o king_n of_o this_o world_n and_o his_o empire_n for_o a_o earthly_a one_o the_o jew_n stretch_v these_o description_n of_o the_o h._n spirit_n not_o comprehend_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o not_o enter_v into_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o figure_n have_v a_o idea_n of_o the_o messiah_n quite_o different_a from_o what_o in_o truth_n he_o be_v to_o be_v in_o his_o first_o come_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o prophecy_n concern_v antichrist_n be_v express_v sometime_o in_o term_n plain_a and_o natural_a enough_o but_o at_o other_o time_n in_o high_a term_n borrow_v from_o the_o most_o hideous_a object_n that_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o sodom_n egypt_n babylon_n the_o apostasy_n a_o revolt_n from_o the_o faith_n the_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n the_o cup_n of_o abomination_n adultery_n whoredom_n every_o thing_n be_v bring_v in_o here_o and_o upon_o these_o high_a expression_n man_n have_v stretch_v the_o idea_n of_o antichrist_n the_o two_o come_n of_o i_o christ_n that_o give_v occasion_n to_o these_o two_o sort_n of_o prophecy_n growth_n the_o chief_a reason_n why_o antichrist_n be_v not_o know_v be_v the_o mean_n of_o his_o original_n and_o the_o insensibleness_n of_o his_o growth_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o mistake_n i._o christ_n be_v to_o come_v in_o a_o state_n of_o humiliation_n and_o abasement_n and_o he_o must_v come_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grandeur_n and_o glory_n the_o prophet_n often_o speak_v of_o this_o last_o state_n the_o jew_n give_v heed_n only_o to_o this_o sort_n of_o prophecy_n and_o neglect_v the_o other_o affix_v they_o to_o another_o subject_n the_o two_o degree_n of_o antichrist_n coming_z have_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o antichristian_a empire_n in_o its_o beginning_n be_v low_a creep_a its_o first_o year_n do_v savour_n of_o weakness_n and_o infancy_n the_o malice_n the_o corruption_n the_o pride_n the_o tyranny_n the_o idolatry_n of_o this_o empire_n be_v but_o in_o their_o beginning_n they_o be_v bud_n and_o the_o first_o draught_n which_o man_n do_v not_o perceive_v and_o this_o be_v the_o great_a reason_n why_o antichrist_n have_v not_o be_v know_v if_o the_o papism_n in_o the_o four_o age_n have_v endeavour_v to_o introduce_v into_o the_o church_n both_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o the_o creature_n such_o as_o it_o be_v afterward_o all_o the_o world_n will_v have_v revolt_v from_o he_o and_o the_o antichristianism_n will_v easy_o have_v be_v observe_v but_o in_o that_o way_n that_o the_o devil_n take_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o it_o shall_v not_o succeed_v the_o first_o degree_n of_o tyranny_n and_o superstition_n be_v so_o small_a that_o though_o it_o be_v new_a yet_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o perceive_v what_o evil_a can_v one_o imagine_v for_o instance_n in_o have_v a_o respect_n for_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o make_v a_o honourable_a mention_n of_o they_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mystery_n how_o can_v one_o have_v be_v on_o one_o guard_n when_o nothing_o be_v treat_v of_o a_o yet_o but_o some_o honour_n of_o precedency_n between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n and_o between_o a_o bishop_n of_o one_o see_v and_o of_o another_o i_o be_o also_o sure_a that_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n be_v advance_v by_o way_n where_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o suspicion_n of_o evil_n for_o instance_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n sometime_o to_o hold_v their_o assembly_n in_o the_o dormitory_n and_o on_o the_o tomb_n of_o the_o martyr_n i_o believe_v it_o be_v to_o this_o that_o saint_n paul_n refer_v in_o that_o famous_a passage_n in_o the_o 15_o of_o the_o first_o epist_n to_o the_o corint_n if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o why_o be_v they_o then_o haptize_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o what_o purpose_n do_v you_o honour_v the_o martyr_n so_o as_o to_o celebrare_fw-la the_o mystery_n on_o their_o tomb_n if_o they_o be_v no_o long_o any_o thing_n world_n this_o do_v appear_v the_o most_o innocent_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o must_v never_o return_v a_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n in_o a_o dormitory_n and_o upon_o the_o tomb_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n to_o testify_v that_o one_o will_v die_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n wherein_o the_o martyr_n die_v yet_o this_o be_v the_o first_o fountain_n of_o the_o popish_a idolatry_n about_o saint_n from_o the_o first_o degree_n to_o the_o second_o there_o be_v but_o one_o step_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o passage_n be_v insensible_a from_o the_o second_o to_o the_o three_o and_o man_n find_v themselves_o sink_v down_o into_o superstition_n and_o swallow_v up_o in_o tyranny_n without_o perceive_v it_o and_o without_o its_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o perceive_v it_o when_o corruption_n be_v insensible_a in_o their_o progress_n those_o that_o be_v engage_v in_o they_o can_v know_v they_o they_o must_v be_v without_o when_o one_o be_v carry_v in_o a_o vessel_n one_o do_v not_o perceive_v its_o motion_n one_o must_v be_v out_o of_o the_o vessel_n and_o in_o a_o fix_a point_n to_o discern_v it_o in_o this_o manner_n it_o be_v that_o the_o devil_n labour_v about_o this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n paul_n he_o begin_v to_o work_v as_o he_o speak_v he_o begin_v with_o vend_v a_o little_a wicked_a philosophy_n about_o the_o mediation_n and_o intercession_n of_o angel_n 2._o coloss_n 2._o platonic_a philosophy_n which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n by_o which_o some_o will_v introduce_v the_o serve_n of_o angle_n from_o which_o saint_n paul_n will_v remove_v the_o colossian_n 8._o ch._n 2._o v._n 8._o in_o say_v to_o they_o beware_v lest_o any_o man_n spoil_v you_o through_o philosophy_n and_o vain_a deceit_n 18._o v._o 18._o after_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n let_v no_o man_n beguile_v you_o of_o your_o reward_n in_o a_o voluntary_a humility_n and_o worship_v of_o angel_n intrude_a into_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v not_o see_v satan_n also_o beat_v out_o a_o path_n for_o tyranny_n by_o those_o dispute_v for_o precedency_n and_o honour_n of_o which_o we_o may_v see_v a_o pattern_n in_o the_o difference_n that_o reign_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n where_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o apollo_n i_o be_o of_o paul_n and_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n but_o who_o will_v have_v suspect_v that_o thing_n can_v have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o they_o have_v since_o proceed_v come_v the_o false_a idea_n which_o the_o ancient_n have_v of_o antichrist_n before_o he_o be_v reveal_v have_v be_v one_o cause_n of_o antichrist_n not_o be_v know_v when_o he_o do_v come_v last_o the_o ancient_a writer_n and_o the_o prejudices_fw-la which_o man_n take_v from_o their_o error_n and_o oversight_n do_v mighty_o serve_v to_o the_o cause_v antichrist_n not_o to_o be_v know_v the_o further_a one_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n the_o less_o one_o understand_v they_o so_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o father_n of_o the_o second_o and_o three_o age_n understand_v almost_o nothing_o of_o the_o revelation_n yet_o they_o do_v busy_v themselves_o to_o interpret_v it_o and_o have_v vent_v nothing_o but_o vain_a imagination_n about_o it_o they_o have_v in_o their_o mind_n a_o chimaera_n of_o a_o earthly_a paradise_n yet_o in_o be_v this_o terrestrial_a paradise_n must_v not_o be_v useless_a one_o dream_n draw_v another_o after_o i●_n as_o one_o deep_a call_v on_o another_o this_o earthly_a para●●se_n than_o must_v be_v design_v to_o receive_v soul_n and_o contain_v they_o before_o they_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v till_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n into_o this_o terrestrial_a paradise_n be_v translate_v in_o body_n and_o in_o soul_n according_a to_o they_o enoch_n and_o elias_n for_o there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o the_o put_v they_o in_o the_o superior_a paradise_n while_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o patriarch_n be_v only_o in_o the_o inferior_a one_o now_o why_o be_v enoch_n and_o elias_n translate_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n into_o that_o place_n it_o have_v be_v find_v very_o convenient_a to_o place_v they_o there_o expect_v the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v send_v back_o into_o the_o world_n to_o encounter_v antichrist_n and_o so_o enoch_n and_o
elias_n be_v transform_v into_o those_o two_o witness_n that_o be_v to_o prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a which_o be_v the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o make_v enoch_n and_o elias_n sojourn_v on_o the_o earth_n 1260._o year_n so_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o take_v the_o 1260_o year_n of_o which_o the_o revelation_n speak_v for_o so_o many_o natural_a day_n which_o make_v three_o natural_a year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n make_v they_o believe_v he_o will_v call_v himself_o christ_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n where_o st._n paul_n say_v that_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n must_v sit_v have_v make_v they_o think_v of_o the_o temple_n of_o solomon_n and_o they_o have_v conclude_v that_o jerusalem_n be_v to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o this_o empire_n consequent_o that_o antichrist_n must_v be_v a_o jew_n and_o for_o the_o reason_n we_o have_v observe_v above_o he_o must_v moreover_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n and_o by_o consequence_n a_o single_a person_n behold_v the_o vision_n which_o st._n irenaeus_n vend_v in_o his_o five_o book_n against_o heresy_n consideration_n why_o antichrist_n be_v not_o know_v fooner_o the_o father_n do_v copy_v one_o another_o without_o consideration_n vision_n for_o which_o we_o be_v apparent_o indebt_v to_o he_o that_o forge_v the_o false_a oracle_n of_o the_o sibyl_n in_o the_o second_o age_n they_o that_o come_v after_o he_o adopt_v these_o vain_a imagination_n and_o add_v other_o to_o they_o the_o ancient_n do_v copy_v one_o another_o almost_o without_o any_o judgement_n and_o always_o without_o consideration_n those_o that_o be_v very_o fond_a of_o this_o vain_a phantom_n of_o a_o chimerical_a antichrist_n can_v not_o discern_v the_o character_n of_o the_o true_a antichrist_n the_o late_a age_n have_v be_v much_o more_o enlighten_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o king_n of_o europe_n &_o particular_o with_o the_o emperor_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o many_o and_o make_v they_o see_v the_o antichristian_a empire_n in_o rome_n christian_n but_o be_v in_o part_n very_o fond_a of_o the_o old_a idea_n of_o antichrist_n in_o part_n be_v keep_v in_o by_o that_o respect_n they_o have_v for_o a_o see_v which_o they_o believe_v be_v once_o the_o chair_n of_o saint_n peter_n in_o part_n through_o cowardice_n and_o want_n of_o zeal_n and_o above_o all_o because_o the_o time_n design_v by_o providence_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v they_o stop_v in_o the_o way_n and_o never_o reach_v to_o a_o perfect_a idea_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o prejudices_fw-la the_o ignorance_n the_o passion_n the_o interest_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n have_v detain_v the_o truth_n in_o profound_a darkness_n till_o in_o these_o late_a time_n god_n have_v set_v they_o in_o a_o perfect_a light_n but_o one_o can_o sufficient_o wonder_v that_o in_o so_o great_a a_o light_n yet_o there_o have_v be_v two_o person_n sufficient_o prepossess_v or_o ill_a enough_o dispose_v for_o the_o mistake_v this_o antichrist_n the_o learned_a grotius_n and_o dr._n hammond_n have_v unhappy_o and_o to_o the_o scandal_n of_o all_o protestant_n use_v great_a endeavour_n to_o turn_v these_o prophecy_n of_o the_o revelation_n another_o way_n the_o one_o through_o his_o be_v wed_v to_o the_o papism_n which_o he_o defend_v with_o all_o his_o might_n against_o the_o late_a andrew_n rivet_n and_o the_o other_o apparent_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n as_o grotius_n and_o it_o may_v be_v so_o through_o his_o jealousy_n for_o the_o episcopal_a order_n imagine_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n who_o ca●●●_n himself_o the_o head_n of_o the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v make_v antichrist_n some_o disgrace_n will_v redound_v thence_o to_o the_o whole_a episcopal_a order_n but_o joseph_n mede_n the_o learned_a usher_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n the_o learned_a andrew_n willet_n and_o so_o many_o other_o learned_a english_a man_n that_o appear_v so_o zealous_o for_o the_o government_n and_o order_n of_o bishop_n have_v continue_v to_o find_v antichrist_n and_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o description_n which_o the_o prophecy_n have_v leave_v we_o of_o he_o and_o to_o speak_v free_o i_o be_o so_o strong_o persuade_v of_o this_o as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o true_a christian_n that_o i_o can_v hold_v they_o for_o good_a one_o who_o deny_v this_o truth_n after_o the_o event_n and_o the_o labour_n of_o so_o many_o great_a man_n have_v make_v it_o so_o very_o evident_a i_o reckon_v the_o blindness_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o of_o their_o favourer_n in_o this_o point_n among_o those_o prodigy_n wherein_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v something_o supernatural_a the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o part._n the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n or_o the_o approach_v deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n a_o work_n wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o papism_n be_v the_o antichristian_a empire_n that_o that_o empire_n be_v not_o far_o from_o its_o ruin_n that_o the_o present_a persecution_n may_v end_v in_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a after_o which_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v begin_v which_o shall_v be_v finish_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o age_n and_o last_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v on_o the_o earth_n the_o second_o edition_n correct_v and_o enlarge_v by_o almost_o a_o three_o part_n and_o the_o explication_n of_o all_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o revelation_n and_o of_o many_o chapter_n concern_v mystical_a theology_n tom_n the_o second_o write_a in_o french_a by_o mr._n peter_n jurieu_o the_o present_a minister_n of_o the_o french_a church_n at_o rotterdam_n and_o from_o this_o second_o edition_n faithful_o english_v london_n print_v in_o the_o year_n 1687._o the_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o prophecy_n or_o the_o approach_v deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n when_o it_o must_v be_v destroy_v the_o circumstance_n of_o its_o ruin_n and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o ruin_n of_o that_o empire_n chap._n i._n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n a_o refutation_n of_o that_o dream_n that_o it_o must_v last_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a ten_o argument_n which_o demonstrate_v that_o that_o supposition_n be_v false_a and_o impossible_a in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o work_n we_o have_v find_v antichrist_n and_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n in_o this_o we_o proceed_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o time_n and_o the_o circumstance_n of_o its_o end_n that_o we_o may_v succeed_v well_o in_o this_o enquiry_n we_o must_v do_v four_o thing_n i._o we_o must_v know_v how_o long_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v last_v ii_o we_o must_v see_v where_o we_o ought_v to_o begin_v the_o 1260_o day_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n assign_v it_o iii_o afterward_n we_o shall_v see_v where_o they_o must_v end_v iu._n and_o last_o we_o shall_v seek_v for_o that_o which_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v find_v in_o the_o revelation_n that_o be_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o that_o antichristian_a empire_n we_o shall_v begin_v with_o that_o question_n which_o we_o have_v above_o lay_v down_o as_o the_o chief_a one_o that_o be_v the_o time_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o that_o antichristian_a empire_n year_n the_o importance_n of_o this_o question_n whether_o antichrist_n must_v reign_v 1260_o day_n or_o 1260_o year_n the_o roman_a church_n suppose_v that_o this_o duration_n can_v be_v above_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a i._n e._n 1260._o natural_a day_n and_o we_o pretend_v this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o 1260._o prophetical_a day_n which_o be_v 1260._o year_n it_o be_v so_o important_a a_o matter_n that_o on_o this_o all_o the_o rest_n depend_v if_o this_o supposition_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o antichrist_n mere_o and_o simple_o for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a be_v false_a all_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v of_o antichrist_n be_v false_a and_o if_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v that_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v endure_v 1260._o year_n this_o empire_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v begin_v a_o long_a time_n since_o and_o have_v begin_v a_o long_a time_n ago_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n also_o be_v the_o papism_n this_o be_v therefore_o a_o particular_a which_o we_o must_v careful_o mind_n and_o in_o the_o beginning_n we_o must_v lay_v down_o these_o three_o indisputable_a principle_n i._o that_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o 1260._o day_n wherein_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o 12_o chapt._n of_o the_o revelation_n must_v be_v feed_v in_o the_o desert_n which_o be_v also_o call_v in_o the_o same_o place_n a_o time_n poriod_n the_o 1260_o day_n the_o 42_o month_n the_o three_o year_n and_o half_a a_o time_n
commerce_n the_o 8_o argument_n spiritual_a babel_n be_v represent_v as_o a_o city_n en_fw-fr rich_v by_o a_o long_a commerce_n eight_o moreover_n do_v a_o city_n become_v rich_a in_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a what_o kind_n of_o commerce_n than_o must_v that_o of_o this_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v that_o shall_v make_v the_o fortune_n of_o her_o merchant_n in_o so_o little_a a_o time_n the_o h._n spirit_n borrow_v these_o figure_n from_o what_o be_v do_v and_o see_v inhuman_a life_n it_o be_v see_v therein_o that_o city_n become_v rich_a and_o powerful_a by_o long_a commerce_n but_o never_o be_v any_o of_o they_o see_v to_o attain_v to_o a_o surprise_v greatness_n by_o two_o or_o three_o year_n commerce_n last_o a_o city_n and_o a_o empire_n that_o be_v raise_v and_o destroy_v in_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a have_v not_o time_n to_o gather_v together_o voluptuous_a thing_n peace_n the_o 9th_o argument_n spiritual_a babylon_n be_v represent_v as_o have_v enjoy_v a_o long_a peace_n and_o to_o enjoy_v they_o it_o must_v always_o fight_v to_o conquer_v to_o grow_v great_a or_o to_o defend_v itself_o if_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n last_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a this_o be_v not_o too_o much_o to_o establish_v its_o greatness_n by_o sword_n and_o by_o fire_n and_o to_o repel_v that_o force_n that_o must_v destroy_v it_o of_o necessity_n antichrist_n and_o his_o adherent_n must_v always_o be_v in_o violent_a motion_n in_o trouble_n and_o in_o war._n whereas_o the_o description_n of_o spiritual_a babylon_n import_v the_o possession_n of_o a_o long_a peace_n during_o which_o she_o must_v heap_v together_o both_o all_o the_o riches_n and_o all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world._n half_a the_o 10_o argument_n the_o ruin_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n according_a to_o its_o description_n in_o the_o 19_o ch._n can_v be_v wrought_v in_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o 19_o chapt._n be_v the_o last_o where_o in_o the_o ruin_n of_o this_o empire_n be_v describe_v to_o we_o we_o there_o see_v he_o who_o be_v call_v the_o faithful_a and_o the_o true_a and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i._n e._n j._n christ_n that_o prepare_v himself_o for_o the_o combat_n that_o cause_v the_o army_n of_o heaven_n to_o follow_v he_o that_o call_v all_o the_o bird_n of_o heaven_n and_o all_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o slaughter_n that_o give_v battle_n that_o obtain_v the_o victory_n that_o cast_v the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n for_o this_o alone_a more_o be_v necessary_a than_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a for_o a_o empire_n so_o vast_a so_o large_a and_o so_o strong_a as_o that_o of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v be_v not_o destroy_v in_o a_o few_o day_n chap._n ii_o the_o last_o argument_n against_o the_o chimaera_n of_o three_o year_n and_o half_a take_v from_o the_o time_n during_o which_o the_o temple_n be_v profane_v by_o antiochus_n four_o quite_o different_a time_n set_v down_o for_o that_o in_o daniel_n prophecy_n a_o explication_n and_o a_o reconcile_n of_o those_o four_o time_n a_o application_n of_o these_o four_o time_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o that_o kingdom_n i_o draw_v my_o last_o argument_n against_o this_o chimerical_a duration_n of_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a from_o the_o most_o famous_a of_o all_o the_o type_n of_o antichrist_n viz._n antiochus_n epiphanes_n it_o be_v he_o that_o persecute_v the_o church_n that_o oppress_v it_o that_o defile_v the_o temple_n that_o cause_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n to_o cease_v for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o natural_a year_n and_o a_o half_a wherein_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n have_v set_v he_o as_o a_o type_n of_o antichrist_n who_o during_o the_o space_n of_o three_o prophetical_a year_n and_o a_o half_a be_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o seize_v on_o the_o church_n to_o fill_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o idol_n and_o make_v the_o pure_a service_n of_o god_n the_o continual_a sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o prayer_n which_o god_n have_v reserve_v for_o himself_o alone_o to_o cease_v now_o we_o must_v remember_v this_o maxim_n which_o we_o have_v already_o advance_v in_o the_o foregoing_a chapter_n viz._n that_o type_n be_v oenigmatical_a and_o short_a picture_n of_o great_a event_n great_a in_o their_o extent_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o quality_n little_a type_n be_v short_a picture_n in_o a_o little_a this_o maxim_n be_v evident_a it_o have_v no_o need_n of_o proof_n and_o according_a to_o this_o principle_n see_v the_o time_n must_v be_v short_a as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o stroke_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o contract_v year_n can_v be_v better_a represent_v than_o by_o day_n not_o by_o month_n for_o a_o month_n be_v the_o revolution_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o consequent_o it_o can_v be_v proper_a to_o represent_v the_o revolution_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o be_v a_o quite_o different_a star._n but_o the_o day_n and_o the_o year_n be_v the_o revolution_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o year_n be_v the_o great_a revolution_n the_o day_n the_o little_a one_o if_o one_o will_v represent_v in_o short_a the_o great_a revolution_n of_o the_o sun_n one_o can_v do_v it_o better_o than_o by_o the_o small_a revolution_n of_o the_o same_o star._n and_o thence_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o church_n by_o antiochus_n who_o be_v the_o type_n have_v last_v 1260_o little_a revolution_n of_o the_o sun_n they_o must_v represent_v so_o many_o of_o the_o great_a revolution_n of_o the_o same_o star._n i_o spend_v a_o chapter_n on_o this_o last_o proof_n because_o in_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n by_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n there_o be_v considerable_a difficulty_n which_o spring_n from_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n and_o the_o event_n such_o as_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n represent_v they_o to_o we_o i_o hope_v that_o the_o clear_v these_o difficulty_n about_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o persecution_n of_o antiochus_n will_v give_v we_o such_o light_n into_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n as_o will_v please_v the_o curious_a persecution_n four_o time_n note_v by_o daniel_n for_o the_o duration_n of_o antiochus_n persecution_n we_o must_v therefore_o observe_v that_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n describe_v the_o time_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o persecution_n that_o be_v to_o befall_v his_o nation_n in_o four_o different_a manner_n first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v in_o the_o eight_o chap._n after_o have_v speak_v of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n under_o the_o emblem_n of_o the_o little_a horn_n 13._o c._n 8._o v._n 13._o then_o i_o hear_v one_o saint_n speak_v and_o another_o saint_n say_v unto_o that_o certain_a saint_n that_o speak_v how_o long_o shall_v be_v the_o vision_n concern_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o transgression_n of_o desolation_n to_o give_v both_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o the_o host_n to_o be_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o unto_o 2300_o day_n then_o shall_v the_o sanctuary_n be_v cleanse_v 14._o v._o 14._o daniel_n reassume_v the_o affair_n of_o antiochus_n in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n and_o continue_v it_o in_o the_o twelve_o observe_v three_o time_n 7._o cap._n 12._o v._n 6_o 7._o and_o one_o say_v to_o the_o man_n clothe_v in_o linen_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o water_n of_o the_o river_n how_o long_o shall_v it_o be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o these_o wonder_n and_o i_o hear_v the_o man_n clothe_v in_o linen_n which_o be_v on_o the_o water_n of_o the_o river_n when_o he_o hold_v up_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o his_o left_a hand_n unto_o heaven_n and_o swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o a_o time_n time_n and_o a_o half_a it_o be_v plain_a this_o signify_v one_o year_n two_o year_n and_o half_a a_o year_n three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a so_o than_o you_o see_v the_o second_o time_n the_o three_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o same_o chapt._n 11._o c._n 12._o v._n 11._o and_o from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o abomination_n that_o make_v desolate_a set_v up_o there_o shall_v be_v 1290_o day_n last_o the_o four_o time_n be_v find_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o wait_v 12_o v._o 12_o and_o come_v to_o the_o 1335_o day_n see_v then_o four_o different_a number_n two_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o evening_n and_o morning_n 2300._o 2300._o a_o time_n time_n and_o half_a a_o time_n 1260._o 1260._o that_o make_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a and_o day_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o fourscore_o and_o ten_o day_n 1290._o 1290._o and_o last_o 1335._o 1335._o one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o
have_v be_v either_o take_v away_o or_o profane_v to_o do_v this_o no_o less_o than_o 45_o day_n be_v necessary_a and_o these_o be_v the_o 45_o day_n add_v to_o 1290_o that_o make_v the_o number_n 1335_o day_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n say_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o 1335_o day_n and_o it_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o these_o 1335_o day_n reckon_v from_o the_o profanation_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 148_o that_o the_o dedication_n be_v make_v in_o the_o year_n 148._o on_o the_o 25_o day_n of_o the_o nine_o month_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o prophet_n cry_v out_o bless_a be_v he_o etc._n etc._n because_o it_o be_v a_o great_a feast_n and_o great_a rejoice_v in_o israel_n see_v i_o say_v both_o the_o history_n and_o the_o chronology_n and_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o profanation_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o interruption_n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n make_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o prophecy_n at_o present_a from_o the_o type_n we_o must_v in_o a_o few_o word_n make_v our_o conjecture_n touch_v that_o which_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n the_o profanation_n of_o the_o moysaicall_a sanctuary_n by_o antiochus_n last_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a to_o the_o time_n that_o judas_n macchabaeus_n drive_v the_o heathen_a out_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o paganism_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n the_o cleanse_n of_o which_o he_o begin_v to_o the_o end_n the_o truth_n may_v answer_v to_o the_o figure_n the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v endure_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a consist_v of_o 1260_o day_n which_o be_v 1260_o year_n during_o which_o the_o sanctuary_n shall_v be_v profane_v by_o the_o heathen_n i._n e._n the_o service_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v pollute_v by_o revive_a paganism_n and_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n possess_v by_o a_o tyrant_n at_o the_o end_n of_o 1260_o day_n judas_n macchabaeus_n begin_v the_o purification_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o spend_v 30_o day_n about_o it_o the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v begin_v the_o idol_n must_v be_v cast_v out_o the_o tyrant_n expel_v after_o the_o 1260_o year_n but_o as_o judas_n macchabaeus_n spend_v 30_o day_n about_o purify_n the_o temple_n after_o he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o idol_n thence_o and_o have_v rescue_v it_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o tyrant_n it_o be_v propable_a that_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o papism_n of_o its_o tyranny_n and_o idolatry_n 30_o year_n more_o will_v be_v spend_v in_o purify_n the_o church_n from_o all_o schism_n heresy_n division_n and_o etrour_n last_o as_o judas_n macchabaeus_n spend_v 45_o other_o day_n to_o prepare_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o temple_n in_o like_a manner_n after_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v be_v cleanse_v from_o idolatry_n haeresy_n superstition_n schism_n and_o error_n god_n will_v employ_v yet_o 45_o year_n more_o to_o prepare_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o end_n of_o which_o time_n will_v be_v the_o dedication_n the_o solemn_a feast_n and_o it_o be_v in_o my_o opinion_n in_o this_o last_o space_n of_o 45_o year_n that_o god_n be_v to_o call_v the_o gentile_n and_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n call_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n for_o see_v as_o i_o believe_v the_o degree_n by_o which_o the_o church_n must_v arrive_v at_o it_o perfection_n 1._o babylon_n shall_v fall_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v cease_v 2._o the_o church_n shall_v be_v reunite_v in_o the_o same_o opinion_n schism_n and_o division_n shall_v be_v at_o a_o end_n 3._o the_o idolatrous_a and_o infidel_n nation_n especial_o the_o turk_n who_o be_v at_o this_o day_n scandalize_v at_o the_o division_n manner_n and_o the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o at_o least_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v prevail_v upon_o by_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n of_o manner_n 4._o last_o the_o jew_n overcome_v by_o so_o unanimous_a a_o consent_n and_o it_o may_v be_v by_o some_o glorious_a apparition_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v convert_v and_o strong_o labour_v to_o convert_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o nation_n far_o distant_a and_o separate_v from_o we_o then_o shall_v be_v the_o dedication_n the_o consummation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bless_v be_v he_o that_o shall_v wait_v and_o come_v to_o the_o 1335_o day_n i._n e._n to_o seventy_o five_o year_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o popish_a empire_n for_o he_o shall_v see_v the_o reign_n of_o j._n christ_n in_o all_o its_o glory_n chap._n iii_o what_o the_o last_o time_n be_v it_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n there_o be_v many_o time_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n and_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o world._n if_o antichrist_n must_v reign_v 1260_o year_n he_o be_v come_v mahometanism_n be_v not_o antichristianism_n thus_o much_o be_v enough_o to_o destroy_v that_o chimaera_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n for_o three_o natural_a year_n and_o a_o half_a it_o be_v necessary_a only_a to_o answer_v a_o difficulty_n that_o may_v be_v raise_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n be_v call_v the_o last_o time_n which_o seem_v to_o mean_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n and_o without_o doubt_n this_o be_v that_o which_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o ancient_a writer_n to_o suppose_v that_o the_o end_n of_o this_o empire_n be_v not_o to_o be_v above_o forty_o five_o day_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o to_o fall_v into_o this_o error_n a_o man_n must_v be_v little_o use_v to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o scripture_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n it_o be_v say_v can_v be_v call_v the_o last_o time_n the_o period_n be_v too_o long_o it_o be_v necessary_a the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v near_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n than_o so_o but_o what_o will_v those_o gentleman_n say_v that_o make_v this_o objection_n 2.18_o st._n john_n call_v his_o time_n the_o last_o time_n 1_o ep._n 2.18_o what_o will_v they_o say_v of_o saint_n john_n who_o speak_v of_o antichrist_n and_o precise_o of_o that_o tradition_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o last_o time_n say_v little_a child_n it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n and_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v come_v even_o now_o be_v there_o many_o antichrist_n whereby_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n it_o be_v above_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o that_o saint_n john_n say_v so_o and_o then_o from_o that_o time_n he_o count_v the_o last_o time_n with_o much_o more_o reason_n may_v we_o reckon_v those_o age_n that_o come_v not_o till_o four_o or_o five_o hundred_o year_n after_o for_o the_o last_o time_n ●_o the_o last_o day_n &_o the_o last_o time_n be_v not_o the_o same_o thing_n john._n 6.54_o ●_o neither_o must_v we_o imagine_v that_o the_o last_o time_n signify_v a_o short_a space_n we_o must_v well_o distinguish_v the_o last_o day_n from_o the_o last_o time_n when_o the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v of_o the_o last_o day_n he_o always_o mean_v a_o short_a time_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n say_v our_o lord_n i_o will_v raise_v up_o again_o at_o the_o last_o day_n but_o the_o last_o time_n and_o especial_o the_o last_o time_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n always_o signify_v a_o long_a period_n see_v the_o proof_n of_o both_o these_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o last_o time_n signify_v not_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n day_n the_o last_o time_n do_v not_o always_o signify_v the_o last_o day_n the_o last_o time_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n sometime_o do_v st._n peter_n say_v that_o we_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n ready_a to_o be_v reveal_v in_o the_o last_o time_n 1.5_o 1._o pet._n 1.5_o but_o it_o do_v not_o always_o so_o signify_v as_o appear_v by_o that_o passage_n of_o st._n john_n which_o we_o quote_v a_o little_a before_o it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n as_o for_o that_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n the_o last_o time_n and_o the_o last_o day_n we_o find_v they_o always_o signify_v a_o time_n far_o enough_o off_o from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n saint_n paul_n in_o the_o second_o verse_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v 1.20_o 1_o ephes_n 1.20_o that_o god_n have_v speak_v to_o we_o in_o these_o last_o day_n by_o he_o son._n the_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v fore-ordained_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o
the_o world_n but_o be_v manifest_a in_o these_o last_o time_n for_o we_o 4._o 2_o pet._n 3.3_o 4._o the_o same_o apostle_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o last_o day_n shall_v come_v scoffer_n walk_v after_o their_o own_o lust_n and_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n it_o be_v the_o very_a time_n in_o which_o saint_n peter_n speak_v and_o write_v for_o it_o be_v speak_v as_o of_o person_n that_o be_v in_o be_v already_o and_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o that_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n spread_v abroad_o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v at_o hand_n which_o make_v profane_a one_o say_v where_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o his_o come_n which_o they_o tell_v we_o be_v nigh_o the_o prophet_n joel_n say_v 2._o act_n 2._o in_o the_o last_o day_n i_o will_v pour_v out_o my_o spirit_n on_o all_o flesh_n st._n peter_n apply_v this_o oracle_n to_o that_o which_o happen_v on_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n and_o in_o the_o age_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 3.1_o 2._o tim._n 3.1_o st._n paul_n say_v to_o timothy_n know_v this_o that_o in_o the_o last_o day_n perilous_a time_n shall_v come_v for_o man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o their_o own_o self_n etc._n etc._n these_o last_o day_n begin_v a_o little_a after_o st._n paul_n for_o the_o church_n be_v not_o long_o before_o she_o corrupt_v her_o manner_n these_o very_a same_o text_n prove_v also_o the_o other_o thing_n we_o have_v lay_v down_o which_o be_v that_o the_o last_o time_n do_v not_o signify_v a_o short_a duration_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n make_v in_o the_o last_o time_n and_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o the_o last_o day_n by_o his_o son_n and_o the_o last_o day_n wherein_o the_o profane_a shall_v bear_v sway_n all_o this_o i_o say_v signify_v the_o time_n that_o pass_v from_o i._o christ_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o word_n church_n the_o time_n divide_v into_o three_o part_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n to_o understand_v why_o the_o period_n that_o pass_v from_o jesus_n christ_n to_o this_o present_a time_n be_v call_v the_o last_o time_n we_o must_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o time_n be_v divide_v either_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n or_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o world._n with_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n there_o be_v three_o time_n a_o time_n when_o the_o church_n be_v without_o the_o law_n and_o without_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v the_o first_o time_n that_o pass_v from_o adam_n to_o moses_n a_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n have_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o be_v the_o time_n from_o the_o departure_n out_o of_o egypt_n to_o i._n christ_n that_o be_v the_o second_o time_n last_o a_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n enjoy_v the_o light_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v we_o and_o that_o be_v the_o three_o time_n four_o the_o time_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o world_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o world_n the_o time_n be_v divide_v into_o four_o great_a monarchy_n that_o must_v precede_v the_o last_o reign_n of_o i._o christ_n the_o first_o be_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o assyrian_n which_o have_v its_o seat_n first_o at_o niniveh_n and_o afterward_o at_o babylon_n the_o second_o be_v that_o of_o the_o persian_n the_o three_o that_o of_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o four_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n who_o reign_n must_v be_v prolong_v till_o the_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o j._n christ_n and_o his_o saint_n time_n since_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v in_o the_o last_o time_n now_o whether_o we_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o first_o division_n or_o the_o second_o it_o be_v still_o true_a that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o last_o time_n that_o i._o christ_n come_v in_o the_o last_o time_n and_o that_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v in_o the_o last_o time_n j._n christ_n come_v in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o time_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n see_v he_o come_v since_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n cease_v to_o be_v in_o its_o vigour_n and_o antichrist_n also_o have_v his_o reign_n in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o period_n of_o the_o church_n jesus_n christ_n also_o come_v in_o the_o last_o time_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o world_n for_o he_o come_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n antichrist_n with_o much_o more_o reason_n may_v be_v assign_v to_o the_o last_o time_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n because_o he_o himself_o be_v but_o a_o continuation_n of_o that_o four_o monarchy_n but_o to_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o full_o persuade_v that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a proper_a expression_n it_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o the_o four_o monarchy_n figure_v by_o the_o four_o beast_n be_v to_o have_v two_o great_a period_n one_o of_o six_o head_n the_o other_o of_o a_o seven_o head_n have_v ten_o horn_n the_o period_n of_o the_o six_o first_o head_n be_v the_o roman_a empire_n under_o king_n consul_n decemvir_n tribune_n of_o the_o people_n perpetual_a dictator_n and_z emperor_n and_o this_o first_o period_n contain_v about_o 12_o or_o 1300_o year_n the_o period_n of_o the_o little_a horn_n or_o the_o seven_o beast_n with_o ten_o horn_n be_v that_o of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o ten_o king_n which_o must_v also_o be_v between_o 12_o and_o 1300_o year_n antichrist_n therefore_o be_v come_v in_o the_o last_o time_n of_o the_o last_o time_n i._n e._n in_o the_o last_o period_n of_o the_o four_o and_o last_o worldly_a monarchy_n and_o consequent_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v with_o very_o great_a reason_n call_v his_o reign_n the_o last_o time_n and_o thence_o it_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v conclude_v that_o this_o kingdom_n must_v last_v but_o a_o few_o year_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n have_v say_v all_o that_o i_o have_v to_o say_v to_o destroy_v this_o false_a imagination_n that_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v last_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a i_o may_v just_o reassume_v and_o urge_v all_o those_o argument_n i_o former_o mention_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o idea_n of_o antichrist_n which_o the_o papist_n frame_v to_o themselves_o be_v false_a and_o that_o the_o popish_a roman_a see_v be_v the_o true_a antichrist_n but_o before_o that_o i_o must_v use_v they_o yet_o once_o more_o to_o confound_v the_o dishonesty_n of_o the_o translator_n of_o the_o port-royal_a reign_v rev._n 17.10_o the_o dishonesty_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o port-royal_a about_o the_o duration_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v who_o say_v of_o the_o ten_o king_n that_o they_o shall_v take_v power_n for_o one_o hour_n or_o for_o a_o little_a time_n with_o the_o beast_n instead_o of_o translate_n in_o in_o the_o same_o hour_n or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o the_o beast_n they_o find_v this_o translation_n or_o rather_o this_o notorious_a falsification_n very_o proper_a to_o take_v away_o from_o the_o reform_a this_o text_n that_o prove_v so_o clear_o that_o the_o birth_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v reckon_v from_o the_o division_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n among_o ten_o king_n and_o into_o ten_o kingdom_n but_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o though_o we_o shall_v let_v their_o translation_n pass_v our_o proof_n will_v not_o in_o the_o least_o be_v weaken_v by_o it_o but_o as_o they_o will_v not_o agree_v that_o 1260_o year_n may_v be_v call_v a_o little_a time_n see_v here_o they_o be_v engage_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o that_o we_o have_v say_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o 1260_o day_n of_o antichrist_n reign_n be_v so_o many_o year_n be_v illusion_n a_o chimaera_n a_o dream_n and_o a_o sophism_n for_o if_o our_o proof_n do_v subsist_v how_o will_v they_o maintain_v their_o version_n that_o the_o king_n shall_v take_v power_n for_o a_o little_a time_n with_o the_o beast_n see_v all_o interpreter_n do_v agree_v and_o it_o be_v clear_a of_o itself_o without_o their_o consent_n that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n must_v last_v as_o long_o as_o that_o of_o the_o beast_n and_o also_o these_o ten_o king_n must_v reach_v beyond_o the_o beast_n for_o after_o they_o have_v clothe_v he_o with_o their_o power_n they_o must_v strip_v he_o of_o it_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o burn_v it_o with_o fire_n if_o therefore_o they_o duration_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v 1260_o year_n as_o we_o have_v demonstrate_v it_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n be_v 1260_o year_n and_o consequent_o this_o reign_n will_v not_o be_v for_o one_o hour_n and_o for_o a_o little_a time_n it_o be_v here_o that_o these_o gentleman_n the_o interpreter_n will_v have_v great_a need_n of_o the_o arabic_a rabbinical_a learning_n and_o hebrew_n of_o father_n
simon_n the_o grammarian_n that_o not_o long_o since_o have_v set_v up_o for_o a_o interpreter_n of_o the_o revelation_n his_o new_a light_n do_v well_o deserve_v a_o particular_a chapter_n by_o themselves_o but_o for_o the_o present_a we_o must_v follow_v on_o our_o way_n and_o show_v that_o if_o the_o 1260_o day_n be_v 1260_o year_n than_o all_o that_o the_o papist_n say_v of_o antichrist_n be_v false_a and_o all_o that_o we_o say_v of_o he_o be_v true_a chimaera_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o 1260_o day_n be_v 1260_o year_n the_o papist_n antichrist_n be_v a_o chimaera_n if_o it_o be_v false_a that_o this_o empire_n must_v last_v but_o 1260_o natural_a day_n it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o must_v last_v 1260_o year_n for_o i_o have_v prove_v there_o be_v no_o middle_a way_n to_o be_v take_v and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o antichrist_n must_v reign_v 1260_o year_n he_o can_v no_o long_o be_v only_o one_o single_a man_n nor_o a_o revolt_a jew_n nor_o a_o false_a messiah_n nor_o a_o man_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n nor_o a_o tyrant_n that_o must_v re-establish_a the_o moysaicall_a worship_n and_o rebuild_v jerusalem_n to_o cause_v the_o jew_n to_o reign_v there_o for_o it_o will_v be_v absurd_a to_o suppose_v that_o one_o man_n shall_v live_v 1260_o year_n that_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n shall_v return_v for_o 12_o age_n and_o that_o judaism_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n shall_v oppress_v the_o christian_a religion_n if_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v last_v 1260_o year_n it_o must_v necessary_o be_v already_o come_v come_v if_o his_o duration_n be_v 1260_o year_n antichrist_n be_v come_v for_o it_o be_v to_o go_v against_o the_o general_a opinion_n of_o all_o man_n to_o suppose_v that_o before_o the_o reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n come_v we_o must_v yet_o expect_v a_o tyrannical_a monarchy_n of_o 1200_o year_n if_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v come_v it_o must_v be_v either_o mahometanism_n or_o the_o papism_n antichristianism_n can_v be_v find_v among_o the_o arrians_a for_o they_o have_v be_v extinct_a a_o long_a time_n and_o their_o reign_n do_v not_o come_v to_o near_o 1260_o year_n we_o can_v find_v he_o among_o the_o athigenses_n who_o never_o reign_v who_o appear_v but_o for_o a_o little_a time_n and_o who_o be_v always_o oppress_v he_o cant_z cant_z be_v find_a neither_o among_o the_o lutheran_n nor_o calvinist_n for_o none_o of_o the_o character_n of_o antichristianism_n do_v agree_v to_o they_o and_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o our_o reign_n shall_v be_v for_o 1200_o year_n there_o be_v nothing_o remain_v but_o mahometanism_n on_o which_o one_o can_v cast_v one_o yes_n antichristianism_n mahometanism_n have_v not_o the_o character_n of_o antichristianism_n to_o seek_v out_o antichristianism_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o antichristian_a sect_n because_o it_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o have_v already_o subsist_v above_o a_o 1000_o year_n but_o we_o can_v find_v therein_o the_o character_n of_o antichristianism_n so_o as_o it_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o prophet_n first_o antichristianism_n must_v be_v a_o apostasy_n and_o a_o revolt_n of_o man_n that_o former_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o faith_n the_o saracen_n arabian_n and_o turk_n the_o founder_n and_o preserver_n of_o this_o sect_n never_o be_v christian_n and_o be_v not_o apostate_n mahomet_n and_o the_o arabian_n be_v heathen_n second_o antichristianism_n must_v be_v a_o idolatry_n for_o it_o be_v call_v a_o whoredom_n and_o must_v teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o daemon_n and_o mediatory_a spirit_n now_o the_o mahometan_n be_v not_o idolater_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o abhor_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o great_o scandalize_v they_o against_o the_o christian_a religion_n three_o in_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n we_o must_v find_v the_o number_n 666._o in_o the_o name_n of_o mahomet_n and_o mahometan_a arabian_n and_o saracen_n in_o any_o language_n this_o number_n be_v not_o find_v four_o anchristianism_n be_v to_o have_v its_o seat_n in_o the_o great_a city_n which_o in_o st._n johns_n time_n rule_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v rome_n as_o all_o interpreter_n unanimous_o acknowledge_v mahomet_n and_o his_o partisan_n never_o do_v possess_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o do_v not_o possess_v it_o five_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v the_o roman_a empire_n continue_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o arabian_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o continuation_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n that_o it_o have_v be_v the_o destruction_n of_o it_o in_o the_o east_n six_o antichrist_n must_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n i._n e._n in_o the_o church_n mahomet_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o christendom_n seven_o ten_o king_n must_v voluntary_o give_v their_o power_n to_o antichrist_n but_o the_o arabian_n and_o saracen_n have_v conquer_v all_o kingdom_n by_o mere_a violence_n none_o do_v voluntary_o submit_v to_o they_o eight_o antichrist_n must_v be_v the_o seven_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n in_o the_o revelation_n i._n e._n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n mahomet_n have_v nothing_o in_o common_a with_o the_o roman_a empire_n nineth_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v proper_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o image_n of_o a_o empire_n which_o yet_o however_o must_v be_v worship_n and_o obedience_n be_v give_v to_o it_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o mahometan_n be_v not_o a_o image_n but_o rather_o the_o most_o despotical_a and_o arbitrary_a empire_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world._n ten_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v have_v under_o it_o ten_o horn_n i._n e._n ten_o king_n ten_o horn_n every_o one_o have_v his_o crown_n and_o his_o royal_a power_n so_o far_o be_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o mahometan_n from_o suffer_v any_o vassal_n king_n to_o subsist_v that_o it_o have_v destroy_v all_o the_o great_a lord_n in_o india_n in_o persia_n in_o turkey_n every_o one_o of_o these_o mahometan_a empire_n have_v but_o one_o only_a lord_n eleven_o the_o empire_n of_o antichrist_n must_v be_v but_o one_o it_o must_v not_o be_v divide_v for_o the_o king_n that_o be_v to_o submit_v to_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o only_a head_n but_o the_o empire_n of_o mahomet_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o empire_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o tartar_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o turk_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o persian_n the_o empire_n of_o the_o mogul_n and_o these_o four_o empire_n be_v not_o only_o different_a but_o always_o opposite_a and_o almost_o always_o enemy_n twelve_o antichrist_n must_v have_v two_o horn_n i._n e._n two_o power_n like_v to_o the_o lamb._n it_o be_v notorious_a the_o mahometan_n have_v nothing_o in_o common_a with_o jesus_n christ_n with_o his_o religion_n and_o with_o his_o power_n thirteen_o antichrist_n must_v excommunicate_v persecute_v take_v away_o liberty_n of_o commerce_n from_o all_o those_o that_o will_v not_o take_v on_o they_o his_o name_n and_o his_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n i._n e._n that_o will_v not_o follow_v his_o religion_n the_o mahometan_n suffer_v all_o sort_n of_o religion_n heathen_n and_o christian_n fourteen_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v be_v a_o head_n i._n e._n a_o kingdom_n hurt_v with_o a_o deadly_a wound_n and_o revive_v again_o this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n agree_v to_o mahometanism_n which_o be_v a_o religion_n whole_o new_a and_o which_o have_v form_v empire_n whole_o new_a it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v these_o observation_n against_o those_o that_o great_o desire_v to_o take_v antichrist_n from_o rome_n will_v fain_o place_v he_o among_o the_o mahometan_n chap._n iu._n some_o principle_n to_o discover_v when_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n begin_v and_o when_o it_o must_v end_v three_o character_n of_o that_o empire_n idolatry_n pride_n and_o corruption_n that_o these_o three_o character_n begin_v to_o appear_v in_o the_o four_o age_n and_o do_v infinite_o increase_v in_o the_o five_o hitherto_o we_o have_v discourse_v on_o what_o be_v past_a now_o we_o proceed_v to_o treat_v of_o what_o be_v future_a or_o at_o least_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v believe_v so_o to_o be_v for_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o many_o thing_n that_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o future_a be_v already_o past_a it_o be_v the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n and_o his_o empire_n that_o we_o be_v now_o about_o to_o speak_v of_o and_o the_o first_o question_n that_o be_v ask_v thereupon_o be_v this_o when_o shall_v that_o empire_n be_v destroy_v a_o great_a question_n and_o which_o have_v hitherto_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o none_o can_v penetrate_v into_o it_o be_v certain_o very_o difficult_a to_o be_v penetrate_v into_o but_o yet_o however_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o find_v
a_o consequent_a from_o what_o we_o have_v say_v of_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o persecution_n to_o which_o the_o prophet_n assign_v four_o time_n 2300_o morning_n and_o evening_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 1150_o day_n three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a that_o be_v to_o say_v 1260_o day_n 1290_o day_n and_o 1335_o day_n we_o have_v say_v that_o the_o number_n of_o 1260_o day_n be_v that_o of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o profanation_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n till_o the_o time_n that_o judas_n macchabaeus_n have_v take_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n the_o idol_n of_o jupiter_n olympius_n begin_v the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n that_o he_o be_v a_o month_n in_o take_v away_o all_o the_o impurity_n wherefore_o daniel_n after_o the_o number_n of_o 1260_o day_n add_v 30_o thereunto_o and_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o 1290_o day_n last_o we_o have_v suppose_v that_o judas_n macchabaeus_n spend_v 45_o other_o day_n in_o prepare_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n effect_v the_o order_n in_o which_o the_o enrite_n restoration_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v effect_v that_o the_o type_n may_v answer_v the_o truth_n if_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o papism_n must_v fall_v and_o be_v abolish_v about_o the_o year_n 1710_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v perfect_o reform_v and_o cleanse_v for_o all_o that_o it_o may_v be_v that_o all_o christian_n although_o they_o agree_v to_o chase_v away_o idolatry_n and_o beat_v down_o tyranny_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o agree_v in_o every_o thing_n so_o that_o i_o suppose_v 30_o year_n shall_v pass_v for_o the_o reunite_a all_o christian_n in_o the_o same_o communion_n and_o that_o this_o union_n shall_v be_v effect_v about_o the_o year_n 1740._o this_o reunion_n shall_v be_v a_o pathway_n for_o the_o call_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o pagan_a and_o infidel_n nation_n who_o be_v yet_o almost_o innumerable_a for_o we_o must_v not_o hope_v that_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n while_o they_o see_v it_o divide_v into_o what_o part_n of_o it_o shall_v they_o put_v themselves_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_n in_o one_o only_a religion_n that_o shall_v overcome_v the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o effect_v this_o reunion_n of_o all_o christian_n no_o less_o than_o 30_o year_n as_o i_o suppose_v will_v be_v necessary_a and_o that_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o 30_o day_n which_o macchabaeus_n employ_v in_o purify_n the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o the_o purgation_n of_o the_o temple_n he_o spend_v 45_o day_n to_o prepare_v the_o vessel_n for_o the_o dedication_n i_o suppose_v that_o in_o like_a manner_n when_o the_o reunion_n shall_v be_v effect_v no_o less_o than_o 45_o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 45_o year_n will_v be_v requisite_a to_o run_v overall_a the_o earth_n and_o convert_v the_o nation_n that_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o covenant_n to_o prepare_v they_o for_o the_o last_o dedication_n add_v 45_o to_o 1740_o that_o will_v fall_v on_o the_o year_n 1785_o in_o which_o shall_v come_v the_o glorious_a reign_n of_o i._o christ_n on_o the_o earth_n of_o which_o we_o shall_v speak_v afterward_o and_o it_o be_v in_o these_o 45_o year_n that_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v convert_v and_o shall_v finish_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n nation_n their_o obstinacy_n shall_v hold_v out_o to_o the_o end_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v overcome_v but_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a event_n and_o more_o extraordinary_a than_o the_o fall_n of_o babel_n shall_v be_v come_v the_o empire_n of_o anchrist_n must_v be_v destroy_v before_o j._n christ_n come_v there_o be_v no_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o time_n that_o god_n shall_v employ_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n for_o that_o empire_n shall_v fall_v with_o noise_n war_n trouble_n effusion_n of_o blood_n now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o the_o wind_n that_o break_v the_o rock_n it_o be_v in_o the_o thin_a and_o gentle_a one_o when_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v there_o must_v be_v a_o profound_a peace_n on_o the_o earth_n neither_o shall_v he_o come_v in_o the_o time_n wherein_o man_n shall_v endeavour_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n nation_n for_o that_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n of_o contest_v and_o dispute_n those_o thing_n must_v cease_v when_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v introduce_v a_o type_n of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o image_n be_v introduce_v the_o number_n of_o 2300_o evening_n and_o morning_n which_o make_v 1150_o day_n to_o i_o seem_v to_o signify_v precise_o the_o day_n in_o which_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n be_v interrupt_v a_o interruption_n that_o begin_v not_o till_o some_o month_n after_o the_o sanctuary_n have_v begin_v to_o be_v profane_v by_o impure_a sacrifice_n add_v to_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n that_o yet_o be_v continue_v and_o even_o the_o idol_n of_o jupiter_n olympius_n seem_v not_o to_o have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o temple_n till_o two_o month_n after_o the_o cessation_n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n so_o that_o the_o introduction_n of_o the_o idol_n be_v not_o till_o six_o or_o seven_o month_n after_o the_o profanation_n of_o the_o temple_n this_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v a_o typical_a relation_n to_o that_o which_o happen_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n by_o the_o introduction_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n they_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n in_o the_o five_o age_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o image_n be_v adore_v and_o serve_v before_o the_o six_o age_n from_o the_o year_n 560_o to_o the_o year_n 600._o now_o one_o may_v say_v that_o then_o the_o abomination_n the_o idol_n of_o jupiter_n olympius_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o place_v on_o the_o altar_n one_o may_v say_v that_o then_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n entire_o cease_v whereas_o the_o divine_a service_n have_v be_v only_o pollute_v by_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n it_o be_v entire_o spoil_v by_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n compute_v this_o cessation_n of_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n from_o the_o year_n 560_o or_o thereabouts_o add_v thereunto_o 1150_o year_n of_o interruption_n by_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n this_o will_v fall_v on_o the_o year_n 1710_o or_o thereabouts_o the_o time_n wherein_o image_n shall_v be_v entire_o abolish_v with_o popery_n damn_v although_o antichristianism_n begin_v in_o the_o five_o age_n all_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o time_n be_v not_o damn_v see_v what_o i_o have_v to_o say_v to_o confirm_v my_o notion_n about_o the_o time_n in_o which_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o 1260_o year_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v begin_v and_o end_v without_o doubt_n some_o protestant_n together_o with_o all_o the_o papist_n will_v judge_v that_o i_o ascend_v very_o high_a and_o that_o in_o place_v the_o birth_n of_o this_o empire_n in_o the_o popedom_n of_o leo_n the_o first_o i_o hay_n make_v antichrist_n of_o many_o good_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o gregory_n the_o great_a inclusive_o and_o all_o the_o christian_n since_o that_o time_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n but_o they_o that_o make_v this_o objection_n do_v not_o consider_v that_o antichristianism_n be_v proper_o nothing_o but_o the_o corruption_n of_o christianity_n that_o all_o corruption_n go_v gradual_o and_o that_o the_o first_o degree_n of_o a_o corruption_n be_v not_o mortal_a there_o be_v antichristianism_n mingle_v with_o the_o christianity_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o four_o five_o and_o six_o age_n but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o this_o antichristianism_n do_v from_o the_o beginning_n ruin_v the_o salvation_n of_o those_o that_o do_v partake_v of_o it_o when_o the_o antichristian_a corruption_n be_v come_v to_o its_o full_a and_o become_v mortal_a than_o god_n by_o his_o mercy_n and_o the_o mean_n that_o be_v know_v to_o he_o show_v grace_n to_o the_o elect_n that_o be_v in_o babylon_n so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o participate_v of_o her_o mortal_a idolatry_n the_o good_a bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o age_n be_v no_o more_o antichrist_n than_o the_o christian_n than_o be_v antichristian_a and_o if_o god_n do_v tolerate_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o antichristianism_n in_o the_o faithful_a people_n he_o may_v also_o as_o well_o have_v bear_v it_o in_o the_o bishop_n before_o boniface_n the_o three_o successor_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a no_o pope_n call_v himself_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n or_o universal_a bishop_n and_o so_o till_o that_o time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o antichrist_n perfect_v they_o be_v only_a antichrist_n begin_v tyranny_n degree_n of_o the_o
with_o blood_n even_o to_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n the_o mountain_n shall_v be_v melt_v with_o their_o blood_n say_v isaiah_n 34.3_o there_o must_v be_v river_n of_o blood_n to_o do_v this_o v._o 5._o and_o i_o hear_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o water_n say_v thou_o be_v righteous_a o_o lord_n which_o art_n and_o waste_v and_o shall_v be_v because_o thou_o have_v judge_v thus_o v._n 6._o for_o they_o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o prophet_n and_o thou_o have_v give_v they_o blood_n to_o drink_v for_o they_o be_v worthy_a there_o will_v not_o want_v some_o who_o from_o these_o word_n will_v object_v and_o say_v that_o until_o this_o time_n there_o have_v be_v no_o persecution_n on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o the_o popedom_n have_v in_o no_o wise_n shed_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n of_o prophet_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o croisades_n shed_v why_o god_n charge_v antichristian_a rome_n with_o the_o blood_n which_o she_o have_v not_o yet_o shed_v no_o blood_n have_v be_v shed_v on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n for_o it_o be_v exact_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o croisades_n that_o that_o horrible_a barbarity_n be_v use_v against_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albingenses_n innocent_a iii_o publish_v the_o five_o crusade_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twelve_o century_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n give_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o the_o poor_a albigenses_n but_o that_o which_o be_v especial_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o matter_n be_v this_o that_o those_o who_o make_v this_o objection_n must_v make_v a_o strong_a against_o those_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 51._o luc._n 11.50_o 51._o that_o the_o blood_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v shed_v from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v require_v of_o this_o generation_n from_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n etc._n etc._n very_o i_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v require_v of_o this_o generation_n what_o reason_n to_o require_v of_o the_o jew_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n the_o blood_n of_o abel_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n who_o be_v slay_v before_o the_o flood_n what_o reason_n to_o require_v of_o they_o the_o righteous_a blood_n shed_v before_o abraham_n nay_o what_o reason_n to_o require_v of_o they_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n slay_v by_o their_o father_n since_o they_o disapprove_v the_o deed_n of_o their_o father_n why_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n god_n when_o he_o execute_v judgement_n aught_o to_o hear_v the_o cry_n of_o all_o the_o righteous_a blood_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o these_o cry_n make_v up_o but_o one_o voice_n and_o the_o race_n of_o murderer_n make_v up_o but_o one_o people_n on_o which_o god_n will_v charge_v that_o blood_n it_o matter_n not_o that_o it_o be_v shed_v by_o the_o parent_n or_o the_o child_n before_o the_o one_o be_v bear_v or_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o other_o this_o make_v no_o difference_n god_n look_v upon_o this_o murder_a race_n all_o in_o one_o body_n will_v charge_v the_o whole_a upon_o the_o whole_a in_o the_o lump_n which_o evident_o appear_v from_o that_o which_o god_n here_o speak_v of_o this_o generation_n of_o antichrist_n they_o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o prophet_n he_o say_v not_o of_o apostle_n he_o go_v back_o as_o far_o as_o the_o prophet_n and_o inflict_v the_o punishment_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n slay_v so_o many_o age_n before_o upon_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n rome_n have_v always_o be_v a_o murder_a city_n the_o holy_a apostle_n martyr_n doctor_n confessor_n of_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n be_v slay_v by_o its_o order_n and_o in_o its_o dominion_n modern_a rome_n within_o the_o circuit_n of_o its_o jurisdiction_n have_v shed_v a_o infinite_a quantity_n of_o holy_a and_o faithful_a blood_n the_o old_a and_o new_a rome_n in_o the_o account_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o execute_n of_o his_o judgement_n make_v up_o but_o one_o body_n because_o god_n behold_v the_o whole_a in_o one_o instant_a or_o point_n he_o look_v upon_o she_o as_o one_o murder_a tyrant_n as_o one_o race_n of_o manslayer_n it_o matter_n not_o that_o as_o to_o some_o particular_a person_n and_o some_o particular_a age_n she_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n she_o be_v guilty_a as_o to_o her_o whole_a in_o her_o beginning_n and_o her_o end_n now_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n do_v involve_v the_o middle_n but_o it_o will_v be_v object_v have_v not_o rome_n pagan_a be_v sufficient_o punish_v for_o the_o blood_n of_o apostle_n and_o maryr_n which_o she_o have_v shed_v so_o many_o sacking_n and_o desolation_n as_o she_o have_v feel_v do_v not_o they_o suffice_v mu_o antichristian_a rome_n pay_v once_o more_o for_o that_o blood_n i_o will_v object_v on_o the_o same_o ground_n have_v not_o jerusalem_n the_o mutherer_n of_o the_o prophet_n suffer_v enough_o for_o her_o murder_n by_o that_o dismal_a desolation_n make_v by_o the_o chaldean_n by_o the_o captivity_n of_o all_o her_o inhabitant_n by_o the_o fire_n which_o consume_v her_o palace_n must_v god_n chastise_v she_o by_o the_o roman_n for_o those_o crime_n which_o have_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o babylonian_n thus_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v punish_v rome_n antichristian_a for_o the_o crime_n commit_v by_o rome_n pagan_a or_o for_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o commit_v till_o the_o follow_a age_n of_o this_o antichristian_a rome_n it_o be_v to_o this_o objection_n that_o the_o other_o angel_n answer_v who_o speak_v at_o v._o 7._o and_o i_o hear_v another_o out_o of_o the_o altar_n say_v even_o so_o lord_n god_n almighty_a true_a and_o righteous_a be_v thy_o judgement_n that_o be_v though_o it_o seem_v unjust_a to_o give_v blood_n to_o drink_v unto_o new_a rome_n on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v by_o old_a rome_n or_o of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v afterward_o shed_v by_o the_o new_a notwithstanding_o thy_o judgement_n be_v righteous_a and_o true_a behold_v the_o three_o plague_n which_o bring_v we_o down_o unto_o the_o thirteen_o age._n the_o last_o crusade_n be_v the_o second_o expedition_n of_o st._n lewis_n who_o carry_v out_o and_o lose_v 60000_o man_n at_o thunis_n in_o the_o year_n 1269._o chap._n viii_o the_o four_o plague_n the_o increase_n of_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n denote_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n which_o have_v almost_o utter_o ruin_v the_o world_n and_o the_o church_n the_o five_o plague_n be_v the_o desolation_n of_o rome_n when_o the_o pope_n retreat_v to_o avignon_n and_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n by_o the_o grand_a schism_n of_o the_o west_n v._o 8._o and_o the_o four_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o viol_n upon_o the_o sun_n and_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o to_o scorchman_n with_o fire_n v._o 9_o and_o man_n be_v scorch_v with_o great_a heat_n and_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o god_n who_o have_v power_n over_o those_o plague_n and_o they_o repent_v not_o to_o give_v he_o glory_n this_o be_v the_o four_o plague_n in_o which_o we_o see_v the_o sun._n it_o be_v know_v and_o confess_v by_o all_o who_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o prophecy_n dream_n and_o vision_n that_o the_o heaven_n empire_n what_o be_v the_o sun_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n the_o sun_n the_o constellation_n and_o the_o star_n be_v emblem_n of_o dignity_n and_o grandeur_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o image_n do_v bear_v a_o lively_a resemblance_n for_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o superior_a region_n of_o the_o world_n from_o whence_o good_a and_o bad_a influence_n do_v come_v and_o supreme_a authority_n be_v the_o heaven_n of_o the_o low_a world_n from_o whence_o both_o good_a and_o evil_n proceed_v great_a dignity_n be_v like_o constellation_n in_o society_n the_o sun_n always_o signify_v the_o sovereign_n and_o the_o star_n inferior_a magistrate_n before_o in_o the_o six_o chapter_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n pagan_n and_o of_o the_o imperial_a dignity_n be_v represent_v to_o we_o by_o the_o same_o image_n 13._o chap._n 6_o 12_o 13._o and_o the_o sun_n become_v black_a as_o sackcloth_n of_o hair_n and_o the_o moon_n become_v as_o blood_n and_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n fall_v unto_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o admit_v not_o any_o dispute_n pope_n the_o sun_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n be_v the_o pope_n that_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n be_v treat_v of_o here_o be_v general_o agree_v to_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v the_o sovereign_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o heat_n and_o beam_n be_v the_o instrument_n by_o which_o the_o sun_n operate_v it_o be_v by_o his_o beam_n that_o he_o quicken_v warm_v
the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o inflict_v the_o plague_n thus_o in_o the_o second_o and_o three_o plague_n which_o be_v the_o croisades_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o sufferer_n it_o be_v he_o who_o make_v other_o suffer_v it_o be_v he_o who_o send_v many_o million_o of_o his_o subject_n to_o be_v murder_v and_o slay_v yea_o this_o very_a thing_n prove_v a_o great_a augmentation_n of_o his_o power_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n this_o four_o plague_n fall_v upon_o the_o antichristian_a people_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o follow_a plague_n the_o spirit_n say_v that_o the_o viol_n be_v pour_v on_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o signify_v that_o the_o people_n or_o subject_n of_o the_o beast_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o chief_a sufferer_n by_o it_o ruin_n the_o abuse_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n do_v tend_v to_o its_o ruin_n i_o answer_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o the_o prodigious_a advancement_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n which_o in_o truth_n bring_v antichristianism_n unto_o its_o perfection_n yet_o not_o withstand_v be_v one_o step_v to_o its_o ruin_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v keep_v within_o the_o bound_n which_o they_o do_v in_o the_o precede_a age_n if_o they_o have_v not_o meddle_v with_o secular_a affair_n to_o dispose_v absolute_o concern_v they_o perhaps_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v not_o be_v think_v to_o be_v antichrist_n but_o than_o it_o be_v that_o this_o truth_n become_v so_o sensible_a that_o every_o one_o perceive_v it_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o the_o nine_o age_n make_v some_o perceive_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o mystical_a babylon_n thus_o gontier_n bishop_n of_o colen_n and_o thetgaut_n archbishop_n of_o trier_n name_v it_o in_o the_o nine_o age._n but_o after_o the_o eleven_o age_n this_o truth_n be_v so_o demonstrate_v that_o we_o of_o this_o age_n do_v not_o speak_v it_o more_o plain_o and_o confident_o we_o may_v judge_v by_o that_o excellent_a passage_n of_o eberard_n bishop_n of_o saltsburg_n 330._o see_v aventin_n annal._n boior_n lib._n 4_o pag._n 330._o which_o we_o cite_v out_o of_o aventin_n in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o our_o prejudg_n after_o that_o time_n there_o never_o want_v those_o who_o assert_v the_o same_o thing_n thus_o the_o dismal_a abuse_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n be_v and_o be_v still_o a_o sore_a plague_n to_o that_o see_v for_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o strong_a argument_n by_o which_o we_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v antichrist_n man_n be_v scorch_v but_o they_o repent_v not_o to_o give_v glory_n to_o god._n the_o german_n cry_v out_o very_o much_o against_o babylon_n and_o antichrist_n but_o they_o do_v not_o forsake_v they_o or_o renounce_v their_o idolatry_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o god_n who_o have_v power_n over_o these_o plague_n for_o those_o age_n be_v exceed_o wicked_a and_o corrupt_a v._o 10._o and_o the_o five_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o viol_n upon_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v full_a of_o darkness_n and_o they_o gnaw_v their_o tongue_n for_o pain_n v._o 11._o and_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n because_o of_o their_o pain_n and_o their_o sore_n and_o repent_v not_o of_o their_o deed_n this_o be_v the_o five_o plague_n i_o ask_v not_o any_o favour_n for_o my_o conception_n about_o it_o let_v they_o be_v examine_v with_o the_o utmost_a rigour_n if_o they_o be_v not_o like_v let_v they_o be_v disregard_v but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v abandon_v they_o until_o the_o time_n and_o event_n do_v undeceive_v i_o but_o those_o event_n shall_v never_o be_v see_v who_o can_v doubt_v that_o by_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v mean_v rome_n and_o when_o be_v it_o that_o the_o viol_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n fall_v upon_o this_o seat_n i.e._n rome_n it_o be_v when_o it_o lose_v its_o sun_n the_o sun_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o precede_a plague_n i.e._n its_o pope_n the_o papal_a court_n that_o like_o a_o gulf_n or_o whirl_n pool_n draw_v to_o it_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n avignon_n a_o prophecy_n of_o what_o fall_v out_o when_o the_o pope_n left_a rome_n to_o go_v to_o avignon_n in_o the_o year_n 1305_o clement_n v._o leave_v rome_n to_o go_v and_o dwell_v at_o avignon_n the_o city_n that_o be_v mistress_n of_o the_o world_n become_v desolate_a a_o very_a desert_n and_o a_o shadow_n of_o its_o self_n during_o those_o 74_o year_n when_o its_o master_n keep_v their_o seat_n at_o avignon_n the_o viol_n fall_v upon_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v full_a of_o darkness_n it_o be_v not_o only_o say_v that_o his_o seat_n be_v darken_v but_o his_o kingdom_n and_o indeed_o till_o that_o time_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o holy_a see_v as'tis_o call_v have_v never_o suffer_v such_o a_o strange_a and_o terrible_a a_o eclipse_n this_o removal_n of_o the_o papal_a seat_n unto_o avignon_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o schism_n at_o the_o end_n of_o 74_o year_n gregory_n xi_o compel_v by_o the_o complaint_n of_o the_o roman_n bring_v back_o the_o seat_n to_o their_o city_n but_o after_o his_o death_n the_o cardinal_n who_o be_v almost_o all_o french_a resolve_v to_o have_v a_o pope_n of_o their_o own_o nation_n the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n fear_v lest_o a_o french_a pope_n shall_v return_v into_o france_n force_v the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n to_o choose_v a_o italian_a to_o be_v pope_n who_o call_v himself_o vurban_a vi_o the_o cardinal_n incense_v at_o the_o force_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o election_n contrive_v to_o revolt_n which_o they_o do_v and_o choose_v another_o pope_n who_o call_v himself_o clement_a vii_o he_o hold_v his_o seat_n at_o avignon_n and_o his_o successor_n for_o 40_o year_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n vrban_a vi_o and_o his_o successor_n at_o rome_n have_v one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n under_o their_o obedience_n at_o that_o time_n the_o sun_n of_o the_o antichristian_a world_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o empire_n the_o great_a schism_n of_o the_o west_n be_v a_o terrible_a plague_n to_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n as_o it_o happen_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n when_o they_o be_v eclipse_v it_o be_v eclipse_v and_o darken_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n suffer_v the_o great_a reproach_n imaginable_a jesus_n christ_n have_v no_o less_o than_o three_o or_o four_o spouse_n at_o one_o time_n this_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o history_n which_o confound_v popery_n even_o at_o this_o day_n which_o destroy_v its_o foolish_a pretence_n unto_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n a_o undivided_a unity_n and_o infallibility_n from_o hence_o we_o draw_v a_o conclusion_n against_o it_o which_o can_v be_v avoid_v then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v darken_v prince_n despise_v the_o pope_n and_o make_v themselves_o their_o judge_n whereas_o former_o pope_n have_v judge_v king_n they_o make_v they_o be_v depose_v they_o call_v by_o their_o own_o authority_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n where_o pope_n be_v subject_v to_o council_n and_o account_v deposable_a as_o in_o effect_n there_o be_v three_o who_o be_v there_o actual_o depose_v till_o that_o time_n censure_n and_o excommunication_n have_v be_v the_o strong_a beam_n of_o the_o antichristian_a sun_n the_o most_o efficacious_a method_n of_o his_o domination_n but_o than_o man_n begin_v to_o despise_v they_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o excommunicate_v of_o one_o another_o the_o western_a church_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o obedience_n that_o which_o obey_v one_o pope_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o other_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v all_o europe_n lie_v under_o excommunication_n which_o make_v it_o contemptible_a and_o the_o people_n who_o once_o respect_v the_o censure_n with_o incredible_a tremble_a begin_v to_o discern_v that_o these_o thunderbolt_n be_v vain_a and_o empty_a thing_n and_o this_o bring_v a_o considerable_a darkness_n upon_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o papal_a power_n for_o all_o europe_n groan_v under_o the_o slavery_n of_o the_o pope_n every_o one_o begin_v to_o think_v of_o recover_v their_o liberty_n germany_n refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o reservation_n and_o expectation_n mean_n which_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n make_v use_n of_o to_o make_v herself_o mistress_n of_o all_o benefice_n france_n not_o only_o reject_v reservation_n and_o expectation_n but_o annul_v annat_n provision_n and_o all_o other_o exaction_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n then_o be_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o pragmatic_n sanction_n which_o give_v the_o pope_n so_o much_o trouble_v because_o it_o cut_v off_o all_o the_o simonaical_a trick_n which_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n use_v to_o enrich_v herself_o even_o italy_n itself_o during_o
the_o schism_n do_v shake_v off_o they_o yoke_n the_o city_n of_o bolonia_n make_v a_o law_n that_o the_o benefice_n of_o that_o church_n shall_v be_v confer_v upon_o none_o but_o of_o that_o city_n and_o territory_n to_o conclude_v it_o can_v be_v express_v by_o how_o many_o way_n that_o grand_a schism_n which_o divide_v the_o sun_n of_o the_o antichristian_a world_n do_v spoil_v it_o of_o its_o strength_n and_o lustre_n after_o this_o time_n the_o authority_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v so_o mischievous_o use_v to_o ruin_v the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o europe_n do_v scarce_o do_v any_o more_o mischief_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o then_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v darken_v because_o by_o this_o eclipse_n it_o lose_v half_a of_o its_o beam_n i.e._n of_o its_o authority_n they_o graw_v their_o tongue_n for_o pain_n history_n must_v be_v consult_v to_o know_v how_o many_o calamity_n war_n combat_n how_o much_o shed_n of_o blood_n rage_n and_o fury_n do_v spring_n from_o this_o shameful_a schism_n every_o one_o of_o these_o pope_n gnash_v his_o tooth_n and_o bite_v his_o tongue_n against_o the_o antipope_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o thunderbolt_n excommunication_n croisades_n war_n and_o combat_n of_o one_o against_o another_o nay_o still_o to_o this_o day_n the_o slave_n of_o the_o papal_a seat_n be_v vex_v to_o the_o death_n when_o we_o pref_n they_o with_o this_o thing_n but_o under_o all_o their_o sorrow_n they_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o repent_v not_o of_o their_o deed_n in_o those_o age_n idolatry_n be_v so_o far_o from_o lose_v any_o thing_n that_o it_o increase_v then_o be_v the_o reign_n of_o monk_n of_o superstition_n of_o fable_n of_o legend_n and_o a_o thousand_o abomination_n in_o that_o age_n simony_n be_v come_v to_o its_o height_n while_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n sit_v at_o avignon_n be_v invent_v a_o thousand_o way_n of_o sell_v holy_a and_o profane_a thing_n crime_n paradise_n sacrament_n ministry_n marriage_n and_o in_o a_o word_n everything_o then_o come_v abroad_o that_o famous_a book_n the_o tax_n of_o the_o roman_a chancery_n and_o penitentiary_n which_o at_o that_o time_n and_o yet_o every_o day_n force_v to_o make_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n full_a of_o darkness_n this_o period_n last_v from_o 1305_o until_o 1440._o chap._n ix_o the_o six_o plague_n be_v the_o turk_n who_o pass_v aver_v the_o bosphorus_n and_o invade_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a empire_n the_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n which_o come_v out_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v the_o papal_a law_n arm_v with_o excommunication_n i_o have_v carry_v on_o my_o conjecture_n until_o i_o come_v hither_o and_o do_v somewhat_o content_v myself_o in_o what_o i_o have_v say_v about_o the_o five_o first_o plague_n follow_v the_o certain_o of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v aught_o to_o be_v increase_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v but_o i_o confess_v that_o the_o remainder_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v thick_a darkness_n to_o i_o and_o understand_v nothing_o of_o it_o i_o put_v it_o among_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o come_v according_a to_o the_o usual_a custom_n of_o they_o who_o interpret_v prophecy_n who_o say_v of_o every_o thing_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o that_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o this_o make_v i_o ready_a to_o think_v that_o my_o persuasion_n as_o to_o the_o five_o first_o plague_n be_v but_o a_o mere_a opinion_n for_o in_o the_o frame_n of_o system_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o principle_n and_o conclusion_n or_o of_o event_n contain_v in_o prophecy_n we_o must_v pierce_v through_o they_o all_o that_o we_o may_v see_v they_o clear_o and_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o truth_n while_o i_o think_v that_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o chapter_n concern_v the_o time_n to_o come_v i_o be_v content_a to_o understand_v nothing_o of_o it_o but_o i_o be_v afflict_v with_o the_o fear_n that_o the_o end_n of_o antichristianism_n be_v not_o at_o hand_n but_o at_o last_o after_o i_o have_v knock_v twice_o thrice_o four_o five_o yea_o six_o time_n with_o devout_a attention_n and_o deep_a humility_n i_o believe_v that_o the_o door_n be_v open_v to_o i_o i_o dare_v speak_v thus_o though_o i_o know_v that_o some_o have_v say_v that_o this_o savour_n of_o enthusiasm_n to_o who_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v one_o article_n at_o least_o more_o in_o my_o creed_n than_o there_o be_v in_o they_o viz._n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o his_o operation_n i_o be_o in_o this_o matter_n a_o disciple_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o enquiry_n after_o truth_n and_o be_o persuade_v that_o we_o see_v no_o truth_n but_o in_o god_n and_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n we_o contribute_v nothing_o beside_o our_o attention_n our_o prayer_n and_o our_o desire_n however_o i_o think_v that_o i_o have_v find_v out_o the_o two_o plague_n that_o follow_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n that_o which_o be_v only_o a_o conjecture_n of_o my_o concern_v the_o five_o foregoing_a be_v rise_v to_o a_o real_a persuasion_n i_o be_o therefore_o persuade_v that_o through_o the_o divine_a assistance_n i_o have_v pierce_v into_o the_o systeme_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n a_o favour_n for_o which_o i_o will_v render_v to_o he_o immortal_a thanks_o as_o long_o as_o i_o live_v for_o i_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v express_v the_o ravish_a consolation_n that_o my_o heart_n have_v feel_v in_o see_v such_o evident_a reason_n to_o persuade_v i_o of_o the_o approach_a deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n if_o these_o two_o plague_n have_v be_v yet_o to_o come_v i_o feel_v my_o heart_n begin_v to_o fàint_v at_o the_o prospect_n of_o the_o dismal_a calamity_n which_o now_o oppress_v the_o church_n without_o reckon_v those_o which_o do_v still_o threaten_v she_o hope_v defer_v make_v the_o heart_n sick_a say_v the_o wise_a man._n plague_n six_o plague_n v._o 12._o and_o the_o six_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o viol_n upon_o the_o great_a river_n euphrates_n and_o the_o water_n there_o of_o be_v dry_v up_o that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n may_v be_v prepare_v the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n and_o the_o river_n euphrates_n do_v give_v light_n to_o this_o text._n as_o for_o the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n we_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o turk_n for_o they_o be_v the_o only_a king_n of_o our_o east_n they_o possess_v exact_o that_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o be_v call_v the_o east_n and_o have_v keep_v the_o name_n of_o anatolia_n in_o the_o text_n they_o may_v have_v be_v translate_v the_o king_n of_o anatolia_n for_o that_o be_v the_o word_n which_o be_v use_v now_o all_o know_v that_o the_o turk_n be_v the_o king_n of_o anatolia_n as_o for_o euphrates_n we_o find_v it_o in_o the_o six_o trumpet_n as_o it_o be_v here_o in_o the_o six_o plague_n v._o 13._o and_o the_o six_o angel_n sound_v and_o i_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o the_o four_o horn_n of_o the_o golden_a altar_n 9_o revel_v ch_n 9_o which_o be_v before_o god._n v._o 14._o say_v to_o the_o six_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o trumpet_n lose_v the_o four_o angel_n which_o be_v bind_v in_o the_o great_a river_n euphrates_n v._o 15._o and_o the_o four_o angel_n be_v loose_v which_o be_v prepare_v for_o a_o hour_n and_o a_o day_n and_o a_o month_n and_o a_o year_n for_o to_o slay_v the_o three_o pare_v of_o man_n v._o 16._o and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o army_n of_o the_o horseman_n be_v two_o hundred_o thousand_o thousand_o and_o i_o hear_v the_o number_n of_o they_o v._o 17._o and_o thus_o i_o see_v the_o horse_n in_o the_o vision_n and_o they_o that_o sit_v on_o they_o have_v brest-plate_n of_o fire_n and_o of_o jacinct_n and_o brimstone_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o horse_n be_v as_o the_o head_n of_o lion_n and_o out_o of_o their_o mouth_n issue_v fire_n and_o smoke_n and_o brimstone_n the_o most_o skilful_a interpreter_n have_v in_o this_o metaphorical_a description_n discern_v the_o turkish_a cavalry_n which_o be_v former_o so_o formidable_a revelation_n the_o turk_n and_o their_o invasion_n be_v foretell_v in_o the_o 9th_o chap_v of_o the_o revelation_n and_o after_o the_o read_n of_o what_o joseph_n mede_n have_v write_v upon_o this_o i_o think_v it_o can_v be_v doubt_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o this_o barbarous_a nation_n which_o come_v out_o of_o tartary_n have_v carry_v on_o its_o conquest_n even_o to_o euphrates_n nigh_o to_o which_o if_o form_v four_o dynasty_n or_o government_n and_o there_o it_o abide_v a_o long_a time_n these_o be_v the_o four_o angel_n who_o be_v bind_v behind_o euphrates_n this_o river_n for_o some_o time_n serve_v as_o a_o boundary_a or_o barriere_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o
constantinople_n against_o the_o turk_n but_o they_o leap_v over_o this_o barriere_n and_o spread_v themselves_o as_o far_o as_o the_o euxine_a sea_n and_o the_o bosphorus_n and_o the_o aegean_a sea_n or_o the_o archipelago_n the_o croisades_n about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o age_n drive_v they_o back_o take_v from_o they_o nice_a and_o a_o part_n of_o the_o lesser_a asia_n but_o afterward_o they_o come_v again_o and_o waste_v the_o grecian_a empire_n they_o take_v all_o away_o from_o it_o as_o far_o as_o the_o sea_n call_v bosphorus_n and_o as_o far_o as_o the_o archipelago_n behold_v these_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n which_o appear_v again_o in_o our_o six_o viol_n behold_v the_o euphrates_n which_o again_o come_v upon_o the_o stage_n but_o what_o be_v this_o euphrates_n turk_n here_o euphrates_n be_v the_o thracian_a bosphorus_n the_o second_o barriere_n of_o the_o turk_n in_o this_o prophecy_n whatever_o serve_v as_o a_o barriere_n to_o the_o turk_n be_v call_v euphrates_n because_o this_o river_n be_v the_o first_o barriere_n which_o do_v separate_v that_o people_n from_o christendom_n after_o the_o turk_n have_v get_v over_o that_o river_n they_o find_v another_o euphrates_n viz._n the_o bosphorus_n this_o in_o their_o last_o eruption_n be_v the_o same_o that_o euphrates_n have_v be_v in_o their_o first_o namely_o a_o barriere_n that_o for_o a_o little_a while_n stop_v their_o course_n though_o at_o last_o they_o leap_v over_o it_o this_o figure_n be_v very_o ordinary_a in_o orator_n and_o consequent_o there_o be_v ground_n to_o seek_v it_o in_o prophet_n who_o style_n be_v much_o more_o figurative_a thus_o one_o will_v say_v here_o be_v my_o herculis_n pillar_n meaning_n here_o i_o will_v bound_v my_o conquest_n another_o will_v say_v here_o be_v my_o east-indies_n meaning_n here_o i_o will_v bound_v my_o long_a voyage_n a_o three_o say_v this_o be_v my_o lowre_n meaning_n this_o be_v my_o palace_n or_o residence_n so_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o turk_n stop_v behind_o the_o bosphorus_n this_o be_v their_o euphrates_n therefore_o the_o sea_n call_v archipel_n and_o the_o bosphorus_n of_o thrace_n in_o the_o thirteen_o age_n be_v the_o barriere_n that_o part_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o greek_a empire_n and_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o turk_n but_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 14_o age_n the_o turk_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o proud_a bajazet_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o treachery_n of_o the_o genuese_n who_o let_v their_o galley_n to_o they_o they_o pass_v the_o bosphorus_n make_v themselves_o master_n of_o all_o thrace_n fix_v the_o seat_n of_o their_o empire_n at_o adrianople_n and_o plunder_v all_o greece_n insomuch_o that_o the_o greek_a emperor_n have_v scarce_o any_o thing_n leave_v beside_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n tamerlain_n tame_v the_o pride_n of_o bajazet_n and_o for_o a_o while_o stop_v the_o fury_n of_o this_o torrent_n but_o the_o child_n and_o successor_n of_o bajazet_n soon_o after_o carry_v on_o their_o conquest_n and_o 50_o year_n after_o quite_o ruin_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o greek_a empire_n mahomet_n ii_o take_v constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 1452._o after_o which_o the_o turk_n overflow_v as_o a_o torrent_n conquer_v all_o greece_n macedonia_n albania_n slavonia_n croatia_n bulgaria_n hungary_n and_o extend_v the_o bound_n of_o their_o empire_n even_o unto_o the_o border_n of_o germany_n here_o therefore_o the_o archipel_n and_o the_o bosphorus_n which_o be_v join_v to_o it_o be_v call_v euphrates_n because_o this_o sea_n serve_v as_o a_o barriere_n against_o the_o turk_n as_o euphrates_n former_o have_v do_v this_o be_v the_o euphrates_n of_o that_o time_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n keep_v the_o name_n of_o euphrates_n in_o this_o second_o barriere_n that_o we_o may_v in_o this_o text_n the_o more_o certain_o discern_v the_o turk_n who_o have_v pass_v over_o euphrates_n when_o they_o first_o invade_v the_o greek_a empire_n and_o christendom_n europe_n the_o latin_a church_n suffer_v infinite_o by_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o turk_n into_o europe_n this_o be_v the_o six_o plague_n which_o may_v be_v well_o call_v the_o plague_n upon_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n for_o that_o kingdom_n do_v infinite_o suffer_v by_o it_o it_o be_v true_a the_o first_o desolation_n fall_v upon_o the_o greek_a empire_n but_o as_o i_o have_v already_o remark_v the_o great_a idolatry_n which_o reign_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v make_v it_o become_v a_o province_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n it_o be_v indeed_o separate_v by_o a_o schism_n from_o the_o latin_a church_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v a_o province_n beside_o this_o the_o latin_a church_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v infinite_o a_o loser_n how_o many_o fair_a province_n and_o brave_a kingdom_n be_v rend_v off_o from_o the_o west_n by_o the_o turk_n how_o often_o have_v the_o turk_n vex_v italy_n nay_o even_o christian_a prince_n have_v use_v they_o to_o mortify_v the_o pope_n beside_o what_o they_o have_v already_o do_v we_o know_v not_o what_o they_o must_v do_v hereafter_o the_o holy_a ghost_n seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o god_n have_v place_v they_o there_o for_o some_o great_a work_n than_o that_o which_o they_o have_v already_o perform_v for_o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n may_v be_v prepare_v without_o tell_v we_o what_o work_n they_o be_v to_o do_v and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o their_o great_a work_n must_v not_o be_v do_v under_o the_o six_o plague_n but_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seven_o god_n have_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v place_v they_o on_o this_o side_n the_o bosphorus_n and_o bring_v they_o even_o to_o the_o border_n of_o germany_n to_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o his_o great_a work_n at_o least_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o who_o be_v take_v with_o the_o prophecy_n of_o drabicius_n they_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o turk_n must_v destroy_v rome_n the_o present_a state_n of_o his_o affair_n do_v not_o promise_v this_o for_o since_o the_o ottoman_a empire_n be_v found_v he_o be_v never_o bring_v so_o low_a but_o i_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v far_o from_o weaken_v my_o opinion_n that_o the_o turk_n must_v be_v the_o instrument_n of_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n against_o rome_n for_o it_o be_v this_o that_o do_v confirm_v i_o in_o it_o for_o i_o look_v on_o this_o year_n 1685_o as_o a_o critical_a year_n in_o this_o great_a affair_n god_n have_v bring_v low_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o turk_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o may_v raise_v they_o up_o at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o make_v they_o the_o instrument_n of_o his_o vengeance_n against_o the_o babylonian_a empire_n notwithstanding_o as_o i_o do_v not_o find_v my_o prediction_n upon_o the_o vision_n of_o drabicius_n but_o upon_o those_o of_o saint_n john_n and_o he_o say_v nothing_o that_o do_v determine_v i_o i_o be_o in_o suspense_n whether_o the_o turk_n have_v be_v place_v so_o nigh_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o bear_v a_o part_n in_o destroy_v he_o or_o to_o be_v honour_v with_o the_o blessing_n of_o conversion_n upon_o the_o sight_n of_o that_o great_a work_n of_o god._n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o a_o few_o year_n will_v inform_v we_o which_o of_o these_o be_v the_o truth_n 1526._o from_o 1390_o until_o 1526._o the_o duration_n of_o this_o period_n be_v about_o 125_o or_o 130_o year_n in_o the_o year_n 1529_o the_o turk_n come_v and_o besiege_v vienna_n charles_n the_o five_o make_v they_o raise_v teir_n siege_n since_o that_o time_n they_o have_v not_o make_v any_o great_a progress_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o this_o six_o plague_n exact_o bring_v that_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n preach_v of_o which_o the_o consequence_n be_v foretold_v in_o the_o seven_o plague_n as_o i_o hope_v a_o parenthesis_n of_o a_o great_a depth_n and_o obscurity_n v._o 13._o and_o i_o see_v three_o unclean_a spirit_n like_o frog_n come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n v._o 14._o for_o they_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n work_v miracle_n which_o go_v forth_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o gather_v they_o to_o the_o battle_n of_o that_o great_a day_n of_o god_n almighty_n v._o 15._o behold_v i_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n etc._n etc._n v._o 16._o and_o he_o gather_v they_o together_o into_o a_o place_n call_v in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n armegeddon_n behold_v great_a affair_n until_o now_o find_v nothing_o better_a i_o be_v content_v with_o the_o conjecture_n of_o those_o who_o by_o these_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n understand_v the_o
it_o speech_n or_o word_n be_v form_v in_o the_o mouth_n by_o the_o wind_n the_o breath_n of_o the_o lung_n thus_o it_o be_v the_o breath_n or_o spirit_n of_o the_o body_n beside_o this_o it_o discover_v the_o sentiment_n and_o thought_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v the_o breath_n or_o spirit_n of_o the_o soul_n after_o all_o this_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o any_o can_v in_o the_o least_o doubt_n but_o that_o these_o three_o spirit_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v the_o false_a oracle_n and_o law_n of_o this_o false_a prophet_n these_o thing_n be_v like_o those_o riddle_n which_o when_o they_o be_v unriddle_v we_o wonder_v that_o they_o be_v not_o soon_o guess_v for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o thing_n more_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v the_o three_o expression_n which_o god_n make_v use_v of_o to_o enlighten_v my_o mind_n be_v that_o of_o armageddon_n which_o saint_n john_n say_v be_v a_o hebrew_n word_n the_o learned_a know_v hebrew_a the_o syriak_n in_o the_o age_n of_o st._n john_n be_v call_v hebrew_a that_o the_o hebrew_n language_n in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n john_n be_v syriack_n and_o chaldee_n this_o be_v the_o language_n that_o our_o saviour_n speak_v it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o hebrew_n tongue_n act_v 22.2_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n keep_v silence_n while_n st._n paul_n speak_v to_o they_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n he_o will_v not_o we_o be_v sure_a speak_v to_o they_o in_o bible-hebrew_n for_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o at_o that_o time_n it_o be_v this_o language_n which_o in_o the_o gospel_n be_v often_o call_v hebrew_a and_o yet_o the_o expression_n set_v down_o be_v find_v to_o be_v chaldee_n anathema_n armageddon_n signify_v a_o cut_n off_o by_o a_o curse_n or_o anathema_n or_o syriack_n as_o golgotha_n talitha_n kumi_fw-la gabbatha_n etc._n etc._n now_o the_o word_n armageddon_n without_o any_o strain_n signify_v in_o the_o chaldee_n or_o syriack_n cut_v off_o by_o a_o curse_n or_o excommunication_n gedad_n signify_v to_o cut_v off_o to_o cut_v asunder_o giddou_n ilana_fw-la cut_v down_o the_o tree_n say_v the_o angel_n in_o the_o vision_n relate_v in_o the_o three_o chap._n of_o daniel_n so_o geddon_n signify_v cut_v off_o the_o word_n herem_n in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o harma_n in_o the_o chaldee_n be_v a_o word_n which_o we_o find_v in_o our_o bibles_n at_o every_o step_n under_o the_o phrase_n of_o curse_v abstain_v from_o the_o curse_a thing_n this_o be_v accurse_v which_o the_o 70_o have_v every_o where_o translate_a anathema_n this_o be_v the_o term_n which_o the_o apostle_n paul_n use_v when_o he_o will_v excommunicate_v all_o those_o who_o love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n let_v he_o perish_v in_o armageddon_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o word_n that_o the_o jew_n use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o saint_n john_n and_o which_o they_o still_o use_v to_o signify_v their_o great_a excommunication_n thus_o if_o you_o join_v these_o two_o word_n harma_n and_o geddon_n you_o have_v exact_o without_o any_o alteration_n a_o cut_v off_o by_o a_o curse_n by_o excommunication_n or_o a_o anathema_n now_o what_o can_v be_v mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n and_o which_o be_v gather_v or_o place_v in_o armageddon_n i._n e._n under_o the_o shelter_n and_o under_o the_o defence_n of_o a_o cut_n off_o by_o a_o curse_n or_o a_o anathema_n but_o the_o order_n law_n and_o false_a oracle_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o the_o antichristian_a head_n it_o be_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o curse_n and_o a_o armageddon_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o every_o canon_n it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o canon_n law_n say_v gen_fw-la decret_a gratiani_n causa_fw-la 2._o quest_n 1._o canon_n gen_fw-la we_o declare_v to_o be_v anathema_n and_o accurse_a for_o ever_o before_o god_n and_o a_o prevaricator_n against_o the_o catholic_n faith_n every_o king_n bishop_n or_o other_o magistrate_n who_o shall_v violate_v and_o suffer_v to_o be_v violate_v in_o any_o kind_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n behold_v the_o scale_n of_o all_o the_o papal_a law_n last_o it_o be_v know_v that_o through_o one_o of_o the_o sore_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o ever_o be_v feel_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o popedom_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v seize_v with_o such_o a_o fear_n of_o these_o armageddons_n or_o excommunication_n with_o a_o curse_n that_o this_o very_a thing_n be_v a_o rampart_n and_o a_o inviolable_a asylum_fw-la to_o protect_v all_o the_o attempt_n and_o all_o the_o crime_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o whole_a strength_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n consist_v in_o armageddon_n but_o this_o supply_n never_o fail_v they_o whatever_o they_o do_v whatever_o they_o undertake_v man_n endure_v every_o thing_n out_o of_o fear_n of_o the_o anathema_n and_o the_o curse_n to_o avoid_v these_o imaginary_a thunderbolt_n subject_n revolt_v and_o break_v their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n king_n abandon_v their_o crown_n as_o john_n king_n of_o england_n do_v who_o that_o he_o may_v obtain_v of_o innocent_a iii_o the_o take_n off_o of_o a_o excommunication_n or_o interdict_v lay_v upon_o england_n surrender_v himself_o and_o all_o his_o subject_n to_o be_v the_o pope_n slave_n all_o public_a service_n of_o god_n be_v make_v to_o cease_v in_o a_o great_a kingdom_n church_n be_v shut_v up_o the_o sick_a die_v without_o sacrament_n the_o dead_a remain_v unbury_v excommunicate_v person_n through_o a_o ridiculous_a sillyness_n of_o the_o people_n become_v odious_a to_o all_o that_o be_v not_o it_o matter_v not_o whether_o the_o excommunication_n be_v unjust_a or_o no_o it_o be_v enough_o that_o they_o be_v denounce_v by_o mean_n of_o this_o the_o clergy_n defend_v their_o plunder_n and_o robbery_n as_o father_n paul_n have_v excellent_o remark_v in_o his_o treatise_n of_o benefice_n the_o people_n say_v he_o be_v so_o afraid_a of_o censure_n that_o nothing_o do_v terrify_v they_o more_o it_o be_v even_o amaze_a to_o see_v that_o captain_n and_o soldier_n who_o plunder_v any_o man_n without_o the_o least_o concern_v at_o the_o sin_n commit_v against_o god_n as_o desperate_a and_o profligate_v wretched_a as_o they_o be_v yet_o with_o great_a respect_n spare_v whatever_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n only_o from_o the_o dread_n which_o they_o have_v of_o its_o censure_n and_o on_o this_o ground_n many_o ordinary_a people_n give_v their_o good_n to_o the_o church_n that_o so_o they_o may_v shelter_v themselves_o from_o the_o rapine_n of_o the_o soldier_n thus_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n and_o good_n and_o crime_n and_o enterprise_n of_o the_o church_n be_v all_o under_o shelter_n and_o in_o a_o place_n of_o safety_n in_o armageddon_n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o there_o can_v arise_v any_o doubt_n in_o any_o one_o mind_n concern_v what_o we_o have_v now_o say_v but_o to_o give_v the_o full_a confirmation_n to_o these_o truth_n let_v we_o go_v over_o all_o the_o expression_n use_v in_o this_o prophecy_n come_v from_o whence_o these_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n do_v come_v and_o i_o see_v three_o unclean_a spirit_n like_o frog_n come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n the_o dragon_n be_v the_o devil_n the_o beast_n be_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v the_o pope_n these_o be_v the_o three_o spring_n of_o false_a oracle_n the_o devil_n be_v he_o who_o inspire_v they_o all_o those_o decree_n and_o those_o canon_n which_o overthrow_n the_o true_a religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n can_v come_v from_o none_o but_o he_o they_o likewise_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n for_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v they_o hence_o they_o be_v call_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o decision_n and_o last_o they_o come_v from_o the_o false_a prophet_n for_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v in_o fallible_a when_o he_o speak_v ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la all_o his_o decision_n be_v seize_v with_o the_o word_n armageddon_n and_o of_o the_o grand_a excommunication_n spirit_n why_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n these_o spirit_n or_o oracle_n be_v three_o in_o number_n not_o of_o the_o number_n seven_o for_o this_o number_n be_v sacred_a and_o proper_a to_o signify_v the_o sacred_a perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a oracle_n which_o thing_n the_o holy_a ghost_n intimate_v not_o only_o by_o seven_o spirit_n but_o also_o by_o seven_o thunder_n nevertheless_o see_v the_o oracle_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n of_o antichrist_n be_v perfect_a in_o their_o kind_n i._n e._n
they_o be_v at_o the_o height_n of_o impurity_n there_o must_v have_v be_v a_o number_n denote_v the_o perfection_n assign_v to_o they_o now_o no_o other_o can_v be_v find_v but_o that_o of_o three_o beside_o these_o unclean_a spirit_n be_v of_o the_o number_n three_o because_o of_o the_o three_o spring_n or_o source_n the_o dragon_n the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n as_o if_o every_o one_o must_v have_v one_o of_o his_o own_o and_o further_o it_o be_v a_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n which_o be_v the_o heap_n of_o the_o papal_a law_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n at_o three_o different_a time_n the_o decree_n of_o gratian_n be_v the_o first_o part_n spirit_n three_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o answer_n to_o these_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o it_o be_v compile_v in_o the_o twelve_o century_n after_o this_o come_v the_o second_o part_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o decretal_n of_o gregory_n ix_o the_o three_o part_n be_v make_v up_o of_o the_o bull_n of_o pope_n call_v clementine_n publish_v at_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n by_o clement_n v._o of_o other_o call_v extravagant_n other_o call_v common_a and_o common_a extravagant_o these_o be_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n which_o be_v in_o truth_n three_o unclean_a spirit_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o monstrous_a and_o so_o contrary_a unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n unchastity_n the_o papas_n law_n have_v three_o unclean_a spirit_n pride_n covetousness_n unchastity_n last_o these_o papal_a law_n be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o number_n of_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n because_o there_o be_v in_o effect_n three_o spirit_n of_o impurity_n that_o do_v reign_v in_o they_o pride_n covetousness_n and_o unchastity_n pride_n for_o first_o nothing_o be_v more_o proud_a than_o the_o design_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o general_a to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o world_n to_o make_v emperor_n to_o give_v a_o body_n of_o law_n which_o all_o shall_v use_v to_o call_v themselves_o infallible_a to_o pretend_v to_o pronounce_v oracle_n to_o thunder_v out_o bull_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o king_n and_o of_o all_o man_n covetousness_n for_o in_o the_o papal_a law_n every_o thing_n tend_v to_o profit_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o roman_a chancery_n and_o penetenciary_n do_v make_v up_o a_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a law_n and_o in_o they_o every_o thing_n be_v sell_v not_o the_o most_o abominable_a crime_n except_v if_o we_o will_v examine_v the_o law_n of_o the_o popedom_n they_o be_v all_o for_o gain_v and_o tend_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o a_o most_o abominable_a simony_n they_o that_o will_v may_v consult_v the_o first_o part_n of_o our_o prejud_n against_o popery_n without_o reckon_v up_o many_o other_o book_n where_o the_o same_o matter_n be_v treat_v unchastity_n have_v its_o share_n for_o in_o these_o law_n such_o filthiness_n be_v to_o be_v find_v as_o cause_v horror_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o penitenciary_n do_v enough_o prove_v this_o this_o same_o be_v find_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o gratian_n in_o buchard_n the_o famous_a canonist_n frog_n first_o part_n chap._n 28._o apolog._n for_o the_o reform_v why_o the_o oracle_n of_o popery_n be_v compare_v to_o frog_n and_o in_o such_o like_a author_n i_o have_v give_v some_o specimen_n in_o my_o prejugd_a and_o in_o my_o apology_n for_o theodore_n beza_n it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n that_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n be_v compare_v to_o frog_n the_o oracle_n of_o god_n be_v eagle_n that_o fly_v in_o pure_a air_n but_o the_o oracle_n of_o popery_n and_o false_a religion_n be_v creature_n that_o love_v the_o dirt_n that_o descend_v into_o pit_n and_o live_v there_o they_o make_v a_o great_a noise_n in_o time_n of_o darkness_n as_o frog_n do_v in_o the_o night_n but_o will_v immediate_o be_v silent_a as_o soon_o as_o the_o sun_n of_o grace_n be_v rise_v that_o be_v when_o it_o shall_v dissipate_v all_o the_o shadow_n of_o false_a religion_n these_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n work_v miracle_n for_o these_o papal_a decision_n these_o order_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n that_o they_o may_v establish_v the_o adoration_n of_o idol_n the_o invocation_n of_o creature_n the_o idolatry_n of_o bread_n be_v support_v by_o sign_n and_o a_o thousand_o lie_a miracle_n but_o it_o will_v be_v object_v these_o decision_n do_v not_o work_v miracle_n whereas_o the_o text_n here_o say_v that_o these_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n work_v miracle_n a_o very_a slight_a difficulty_n for_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n represent_v these_o law_n of_o the_o popedom_n as_o spirit_n i._n e._n as_o person_n and_o as_o intelligent_a exi_a substance_n there_o must_v be_v action_n ascribe_v to_o they_o actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la say_v the_o school_n thus_o saint_n john_n ought_v necessary_o to_o speak_v of_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o papal_a law_n and_o papist_n as_o of_o miracle_n that_o be_v wrought_v by_o they_o they_o go_v forth_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o gather_v they_o to_o the_o battle_n of_o that_o great_a day_n of_o god_n almighty_n the_o bull_n of_o pope_n be_v as_o so_o many_o thunder_a messenger_n who_o be_v send_v to_o prince_n and_o who_o threaten_v order_n and_o command_v they_o to_o make_v croisades_n to_o destroy_v pretend_a heretic_n and_o to_o employ_v temporal_a weapon_n to_o execute_v the_o order_n of_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o also_o command_v they_o to_o enjoin_v the_o observation_n in_o all_o place_n of_o idolatrous_a worship_n wicked_a canon_n and_o the_o proud_a government_n which_o the_o popedom_n have_v establish_v by_o its_o decree_n all_o this_o unite_v together_o and_o gather_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n make_v one_o body_n one_o army_n of_o person_n join_v in_o a_o bond_n of_o a_o most_o real_a conspiracy_n who_o fight_v against_o god_n and_o seek_v to_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n kingdom_n the_o day_n of_o battle_n be_v the_o whole_a duration_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n interpreter_n have_v entertain_v a_o false_a notion_n in_o imagine_v that_o by_o the_o day_n of_o battle_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o very_a time_n in_o which_o antichrist_n must_v be_v destroy_v for_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a time_n of_o the_o antichristian_a idolatry_n and_o tyranny_n though_o especial_o of_o the_o last_o period_n of_o antichrist_n i._n e._n of_o antichrist_n decline_v or_o approach_v to_o his_o fall_n this_o time_n be_v call_v the_o day_n of_o god_n almighty_n because_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o day_n or_o time_n god_n shall_v display_v his_o vengeance_n against_o these_o king_n who_o be_v league_v against_o he_o through_o mean_n of_o the_o papal_a and_o ecclesiastic_a law_n and_o decree_n during_o three_o part_n of_o that_o day_n and_o battle_n against_o god_n his_o church_n be_v worsted_n but_o in_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o battle_n god_n shall_v overcome_v these_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o armageddon_n the_o place_n armageddon_n be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o the_o thunderbolt_n of_o excommunication_n and_o curse_n do_v come_v forth_o i._n e._n the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o vatican_n who_o thunderbolt_n have_v so_o often_o consume_v whole_a country_n all_o the_o king_n who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o popedom_n be_v gather_v league_v and_o unite_v in_o this_o place_n and_o by_o this_o place_n see_v the_o prophet_n have_v represent_v the_o papal_a law_n as_o spirit_n and_o person_n he_o ought_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o represent_v the_o excommunication_n or_o curse_n as_o a_o place_n which_o unite_v and_o gather_v together_o the_o man_n who_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o behold_v i_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o watch_v and_o keep_v his_o garment_n lest_o he_o walk_v naked_a and_o they_o see_v his_o shame_n this_o be_v a_o parenthesis_n which_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o battle_n that_o the_o papal_a law_n censure_n interdict_v anathema_n decision_n and_o papist_n do_v fight_v against_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o faith_n to_o admonish_v the_o faithful_a that_o they_o be_v upon_o their_o guard_n against_o so_o many_o assault_n and_o so_o many_o lie_a oracle_n which_o deceive_v the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o man_n reason_n why_o god_n place_v these_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n of_o papery_n under_o the_o six_o viol_n first_o reason_n there_o remain_v only_o one_o difficulty_n and_o that_o be_v to_o know_v why_o the_o holy_a ghost_n place_n these_o papal_a spirit_n or_o law_n under_o the_o six_o viol_n but_o the_o reason_n be_v evident_a enough_o this_o six_o viol_n begin_v its_o period_n in_o the_o year_n 1390._o when_v the_o turk_n begin_v to_o
pass_v over_o the_o archipel_n and_o the_o bosphorus_n they_o go_v still_o forward_o until_o the_o year_n 1526._o when_o they_o cease_v to_o gain_v ground_n upon_o the_o west_n now_o it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o papal_a law_n style_v the_o canon_n law_n be_v complete_v the_o clementines_n have_v be_v publish_v by_o john_n xxii_o about_o the_o year_n 1320._o he_o likewise_o publish_v the_o extravagant_n but_o the_o common_a or_o the_o common_a extravagant_n appear_v not_o nor_o be_v compile_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o fifteen_o century_n so_o that_o it_o be_v proper_o in_o this_o six_o period_n of_o the_o viol_n that_o this_o work_n of_o darkness_n be_v whole_o finish_v now_o it_o be_v natural_a when_o something_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v upon_o a_o great_a theatre_n that_o it_o may_v be_v show_v to_o stay_v till_o it_o be_v finish_v and_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n ought_v not_o to_o speak_v soon_o of_o these_o papal_a law_n excommunication_n second_o reason_n the_o 15_o censury_n be_v a_o age_n of_o excommunication_n beside_o there_o never_o have_v be_v any_o age_n or_o time_n wherein_o there_o be_v more_o armageddons_n anathema_n and_o excommunication_n then_o in_o this_o period_n the_o pope_n at_o rome_n and_o avignon_n do_v excommunicate_v one_o another_o within_o this_o period_n the_o council_n of_o pisa_n constance_n basil_n florence_n and_o the_o lateran_n under_o julius_n ii_o and_o leo_n x._o be_v hold_v and_o it_o be_v be_v nothing_o but_o anathema_n excommunication_n canon_n decision_n censure_n either_o against_o pope_n or_o pretend_a heretic_n as_o the_o wickliffite_n bohemian_o taborite_n and_o last_o against_o luther_n etc._n etc._n last_o these_o spirit_n be_v most_o fit_o place_v under_o the_o period_n of_o the_o six_o viol_n because_o then_o the_o bull_n reason_n three_o reason_n decision_n decree_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n gather_v the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o battle_n against_o the_o bohemian_o and_o zisca_n have_v gain_v such_o signal_n victory_n that_o they_o may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o battle_n of_o the_o great_a day_n of_o god_n almighty_n a_o crusade_n be_v publish_v against_o he_o and_o all_o those_o who_o stand_v for_o the_o truth_n in_o bohemia_n and_o the_o neighbour_a country_n chap._n x._o the_o seven_o plague_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o luther_n and_o other_o reformer_n by_o which_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n papist_n lutheran_n and_o reform_v and_o thus_o behold_v we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o seven_o and_o last_o viol_n v._o 17._o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o viol_n into_o the_o air_n and_o there_o come_v a_o great_a voice_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n of_o heaven_n from_o the_o throne_n say_v it_o be_v do_v antichrist_n it_o be_v do_v do_v not_o signify_v the_o final_a ruin_n of_o antichrist_n this_o expression_n it_o be_v do_v have_v deceive_v all_o the_o interpreter_n who_o have_v confound_v this_o moment_n or_o space_n of_o time_n with_o that_o of_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n when_o it_o must_v be_v proclaim_v it_o be_v do_v the_o kingdom_n be_v bring_v under_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o great_a babylon_n be_v whole_o destroy_v etc._n etc._n they_o have_v believe_v that_o this_o expression_n it_o be_v do_v signify_v the_o total_a destruction_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n at_o that_o very_a moment_n but_o certain_o they_o be_v mistake_v it_o be_v do_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o it_o be_v do_v with_o the_o viol_n length_n the_o viol_n comprehend_v and_o signify_v period_n of_o some_o length_n this_o be_v the_o last_o this_o be_v the_o last_o period_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o which_o shall_v comprehend_v its_o total_a ruin_n we_o have_v remark_v already_o that_o every_o period_n contain_v in_o every_o viol_n take_v in_o a_o considerable_a space_n of_o time_n a_o hundred_o a_o hundred_o and_o forty_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n and_o more_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n not_o to_o allow_v some_o length_n of_o time_n to_o this_o seven_o viol_n it_o ought_v to_o have_v as_o much_o as_o least_o as_o the_o other_o yea_o more_o because_o it_o be_v the_o last_o and_o consequent_o it_o must_v have_v about_o two_o hundred_o year_n allow_v to_o it_o and_o this_o be_v the_o period_n that_o comprehend_v the_o total_a ruin_n of_o antichrist_n which_o ruin_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n the_o harvest_n have_v be_v in_o the_o age_n last_o pass_v the_o vintage_n must_v be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o next_o age_n this_o last_o viol_n begin_v exact_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o luther_n and_o as_o a_o hourglass_n must_v run_v until_o the_o total_a destruction_n of_o popery_n and_o i_o hope_v none_o will_v doubt_v of_o this_o when_o we_o shall_v have_v make_v out_o how_o exact_o all_o that_o follow_v in_o the_o prophecy_n agree_v with_o the_o time_n and_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v see_v since_o the_o reformation_n this_o seven_o viol_n be_v pour_v not_o upon_o the_o earth_n or_o the_o sea_n or_o the_o sun_n or_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n as_o the_o other_o be_v but_o on_o the_o air_n which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o voice_n of_o sound_n and_o thunder_n and_o we_o shall_v present_o give_v you_o the_o reason_n v._o 18._o and_o there_o be_v voice_n and_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a earthquake_n such_o as_o be_v not_o since_o man_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n so_o mighty_a a_o earthquake_n and_o so_o great_a these_o voice_n antichrist_n the_o seven_o viol_n raise_v preacher_n and_o voice_n for_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n these_o lightning_n and_o these_o thunder_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o preacher_n who_o labour_v in_o reform_v the_o church_n we_o shall_v afterward_o see_v that_o there_o be_v three_o way_n of_o reform_v the_o church_n the_o way_n of_o inspiration_n the_o way_n of_o authority_n the_o way_n of_o preach_v this_o last_o be_v signify_v by_o voice_n and_o thunder_n and_o it_o be_v this_o way_n that_o god_n use_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n in_o the_o last_o age_n these_o voice_n glitter_v like_o lightning_n and_o pass_v with_o a_o prodigious_a swiftness_n from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n to_o the_o other_o all_o man_n see_v they_o and_o will_v see_v they_o man_n study_v religion_n the_o very_a grandee_n of_o the_o world_n person_n who_o despise_v knowledge_n be_v concern_v in_o these_o affair_n henry_n viii_o write_v a_o book_n against_o luther_n charles_n the_o five_o make_v law_n about_o religion_n now_o on_o the_o account_n of_o these_o lightning_n i.e._n the_o voice_n of_o preacher_n this_o seven_o viol_n be_v say_v to_o be_v pour_v on_o the_o air_n for_o the_o air_n be_v the_o seat_n and_o vehicle_n of_o the_o voice_n there_o be_v a_o great_a earthquake_n in_o the_o prophetic_a style_n this_o signify_v a_o change_n of_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n the_o earth_n plain_o signify_v here_o the_o frame_n and_o face_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n we_o have_v already_o see_v and_o shall_v afterward_o have_v occasion_n to_o see_v that_o earthquake_n in_o the_o figurative_a style_n of_o the_o prophet_n always_o signify_v a_o change_n of_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n because_o earthquake_n do_v overturn_v not_o only_a city_n but_o mountain_n forest_n hilly_a country_n and_o valley_n they_o set_v mountain_n where_o valley_n stand_v and_o valley_n where_o mountain_n stand_v in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o face_n of_o a_o whole_a country_n be_v change_v now_o all_o know_v what_o a_o change_n the_o reformation_n make_v in_o the_o face_n of_o popery_n it_o take_v away_o from_o it_o at_o one_o clap_v several_a kingdom_n and_o a_o great_a number_n of_o sovereign_a state_n and_o this_o earthquake_n i._n e._n this_o change_n of_o affair_n be_v so_o great_a that_o there_o have_v not_o be_v such_o since_o man_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n this_o may_v be_v true_o speak_v without_o any_o exaggeration_n for_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o this_o last_o period_n comprehend_v the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n the_o first_o and_o last_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n it_o be_v undoubted_a that_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n be_v never_o so_o change_v as_o it_o shall_v be_v change_v after_o the_o total_a ruin_n of_o antichrist_n the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o christianity_n not_o except_v for_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v great_a number_n of_o man_n convert_v up_o and_o down_o among_o the_o nation_n but_o at_o the_o time_n we_o speak_v of_o all_o the_o nation_n and_o whole_a nation_n shall_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o faith._n and_o thus_o this_o period_n shall_v make_v great_a change_n in_o the_o world_n than_o
person_n that_o they_o may_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o will_v yet_o affirm_v that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o these_o seven_o plague_n be_v hitherto_o come_v to_o pass_v this_o singularity_n be_v neither_o too_o edify_v nor_o too_o comfortable_a i_o earnest_o entreat_v they_o to_o lay_v aside_o the_o desire_n of_o contradict_v and_o to_o consider_v without_o prejudice_n these_o two_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a explication_n of_o this_o 16_o chapter_n there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o force_a application_n the_o emblem_n which_o the_o prophet_n make_v use_v of_o do_v exact_o resemble_v the_o event_n set_v down_o in_o history_n the_o second_o that_o in_o the_o application_n of_o these_o seven_o plague_n unto_o the_o event_n every_o thing_n do_v hang_v together_o no_o part_n of_o this_o system_n contradict_v another_o this_o be_v suppose_v i_o entreat_v they_o to_o consider_v if_o chance_n can_v do_v this_o and_o have_v ever_o do_v it_o chance_n may_v hit_v right_a in_o some_o point_n but_o never_o do_v so_o in_o all_o i_o say_v again_o that_o we_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n for_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v well_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o viol_n which_o distinct_a and_o separate_v from_o other_o last_v 200_o year_n the_o great_a part_n do_v not_o come_v near_o that_o number_n this_o have_v already_o last_v 170_o year_n it_o can_v last_v much_o long_o it_o be_v true_a the_o papal_a authority_n who_o beam_n so_o scorch_v man_n under_o the_o four_o viol_n last_v above_o 200_o year_n but_o this_o be_v because_o it_o be_v inlayd_a or_o joint_v in_o those_o that_o precede_v and_o those_o that_o follow_v and_o its_o particular_a strict_a period_n must_v be_v reckon_v to_o be_v only_o 108_o year_n which_o begin_v at_o the_o year_n 1270_o when_o the_o croisades_n end_v and_o continue_v until_o the_o grand_a schism_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1378._o for_o then_o begin_v the_o diminish_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n and_o the_o darken_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n the_o seven_o viol_n have_v already_o last_v long_o than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n and_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o it_o must_v last_v about_o 200_o year_n which_o none_o of_o the_o other_o have_v do_v but_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n where_o we_o shall_v show_v that_o this_o seven_o period_n be_v itself_o divide_v into_o three_o other_o period_n the_o harvest_n the_o vintage_n and_o the_o time_n that_o be_v betwixt_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n the_o harvest_n be_v already_o past_a the_o time_n betwixt_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n be_v almost_o expire_v we_o be_v approach_v to_o the_o vintage_n and_o at_o this_o day_n ought_v to_o say_v come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v but_o within_o a_o little_a while_o we_o shall_v say_v he_o be_v come_v he_o be_v come_v chap._n xi_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o 14_o chapter_n the_o vision_n of_o the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n the_o harvest_n of_o the_o reformation_n make_v in_o the_o age_n last_o pass_v the_o vintage_n be_v the_o reformation_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v this_o present_a age_n the_o fourteen_o chapter_n be_v the_o second_o of_o those_o wherein_o we_o find_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o babylonian_a kingdom_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o chapter_n we_o find_v the_o 140_o thousand_o mark_a one_o who_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o two_o witness_n who_o we_o shall_v discourse_v of_o hereafter_o the_o small_a number_n of_o faithful_a one_o who_o god_n preserve_v in_o spiritual_a babylon_n and_o who_o do_v not_o partake_v of_o her_o idolatry_n we_o find_v they_o i_o say_v who_o sing_v a_o song_n which_o none_o be_v able_a to_o learn_v but_o they_o i._n e._n they_o taste_v peculiar_a joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o the_o antichristian_a christian_n be_v notable_a to_o taste_v in_o the_o follow_a verse_n a_o angelappear_v fly_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n chap._n 14.6_o have_v the_o everlasting_a gospel_n to_o preach_v unto_o they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o every_o nation_n and_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n this_o be_v the_o preparative_n unto_o that_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o must_v be_v make_v to_o all_o nation_n when_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n shall_v be_v ablosht_v this_o preach_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o everlasting_a gospel_n because_o it_o shall_v last_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n all_o nation_n shall_v be_v convert_v and_o their_o purity_n shall_v suffer_v no_o alteration_n as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v and_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v fall_v through_o the_o preach_n of_o this_o everlasting_a gospel_n immediate_o after_o another_o angel_n cry_v babylon_n be_v fall_v be_v fall_v that_o great_a city_n which_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o vision_n that_o follow_v the_o harvest_n and_o the_o vintage_n be_v the_o two_o part_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o babylonian_a kingdom_n 11._o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o waldenses_n &_o albigenses_n foretell_v in_o the_o 14_o chap._n vers_fw-la 9.10_o 11._o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o have_v in_o this_o chapter_n a_o angle_n who_o denounce_v the_o terrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o must_v fall_v on_o those_o who_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n or_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o these_o word_n here_o be_v the_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v signify_v a_o sore_a persecution_n that_o must_v go_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n not_o that_o persecution_n which_o we_o suffer_v at_o this_o day_n and_o which_o must_v be_v the_o last_o but_o that_o which_o the_o church_n endure_v in_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n the_o bohemian_o etc._n etc._n for_o this_o be_v the_o persecution_n which_o happen_v before_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o last_o age_n because_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o this_o chapter_n begin_v by_o the_o reformation_n make_v in_o the_o last_o age_n therefore_o the_o persecution_n here_o speak_v of_o must_v be_v that_o which_o go_v before_o our_o reformation_n but_o there_o be_v no_o other_o beside_o that_o against_o the_o poor_a waldenses_n which_o last_v a_o full_a 100_o year_n before_o the_o preach_n of_o luther_n all_o these_o thing_n be_v only_o a_o preparative_n unto_o the_o last_o vision_n of_o this_o chapter_n which_o contain_v a_o new_a prediction_n of_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n with_o new_a circumstance_n and_o it_o be_v this_o v._o 14._o and_o i_o look_v and_o behold_v a_o white_a can_v and_o upon_o the_o cloud_n one_o sit_v like_a unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v on_o his_o head_n a_o golden_a crown_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n a_o sharp_a sickle_n v._o 15._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o thy_o sickle_n and_o reap_v for_o the_o time_n be_v come_v for_o thou_o to_o reap_v for_o the_o harvest_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v ripe_a v._o 16._o and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o cloud_n thrust_v in_o his_o sickle_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v reap_v v._o 17._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o also_o have_v a_o sharp_a sickle_n v._o 18._o and_o another_o angel_n come_v out_o from_o the_o altar_n which_o have_v power_n over_o fire_n and_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a cry_n to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o sharp_a sickle_n say_v thrust_v in_o thy_o sharp_a sickle_n and_o gather_v the_o cluster_n of_o the_o vine_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o her_o grape_n be_v full_o ripe_a v._o 19_o and_o the_o angel_n thrust_v in_o his_o sickle_n into_o the_o earth_n and_o gather_v the_o vine_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o great_a wine-press_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god._n v._o 20._o and_o the_o wine-press_n be_v tread_v without_o the_o city_n and_o blood_n come_v out_o of_o the_o wine-press_n even_o unto_o the_o horse_n bridle_v by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o and_o six_o hundred_o furlong_n vision_n a_o distinction_n of_o circumstance_n and_o substance_n in_o this_o vision_n in_o this_o vision_n there_o be_v circumstance_n and_o substance_n the_o circumstance_n be_v these_o the_o angel_n who_o sit_v on_o a_o white_a cloud_n and_o his_o clothing_n another_o angel_n who_o bid_v he_o thrust_v in_o his_o sickle_n another_o angel_n who_o appear_v likewise_o have_v asickle_a the_o ripeness_n of_o the_o corn_n and_o grape_n the_o wine-press_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n the_o blood_n that_o flow_v out_o by_o the_o space_n of_o 1600_o furlong_n these_o i_o
which_o spiritual_o be_v call_v sodom_n and_o egypt_n where_o also_o our_o lord_n be_v crucify_v v._o 9_o and_o they_o of_o the_o people_n and_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o nation_n shall_v see_v their_o dead_a body_n three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a and_o shall_v not_o suffer_v their_o dead_a body_n to_o be_v put_v into_o grave_n v._o 10._o and_o they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v rejoice_v over_o they_o and_o make_v merry_a and_o send_v gift_n one_o to_o another_o because_o these_o two_o prophet_n torment_v they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o earth_n v._o 11._o and_o after_o three_o day_n and_o a_o half_a the_o spirit_n of_o life_n from_o god_n enter_v into_o they_o and_o they_o stand_v upon_o their_o foot_n and_o great_a fear_n fall_v upon_o they_o which_o see_v they_o v._o 12._o and_o they_o hear_v a_o great_a voice_n from_o heaven_n say_v unto_o they_o come_v up_o hither_o and_o they_o ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o a_o cloud_n and_o their_o enemy_n behold_v they_o v._o 13._o and_o the_o same_o hour_n be_v there_o a_o great_a earthquake_n and_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n fall_v and_o in_o the_o earthquake_n be_v slay_v of_o man_n seven_o thousand_o and_o the_o remnant_n be_v affright_v and_o give_v glory_n to_o god._n cross_n the_o witness_n who_o prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n be_v the_o faithful_a who_o preach_v under_o the_o cross_n as_o to_o what_o concern_v these_o two_o witness_n i.e._n what_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o i_o have_v not_o change_v my_o opinion_n since_o i_o write_v the_o book_n entitle_v lawful_a prejudices_fw-la against_o popery_n though_o as_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o studious_a attention_n which_o i_o have_v use_v in_o read_v these_o prophecy_n have_v give_v i_o quite_o different_a apprehension_n i_o do_v therefore_o still_o believe_v that_o these_o two_o witness_n who_o must_v prophesy_v 1260_o day_n clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n be_v the_o small_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o during_o the_o reign_n of_o antichristianism_n must_v keep_v themselves_o from_o its_o corruption_n and_o condemn_v its_o idolatry_n and_o tyranny_n god_n call_v they_o witness_n because_o these_o be_v they_o who_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n which_o but_o for_o they_o will_v have_v be_v forget_v they_o prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n i._n e._n they_o preach_v under_o the_o cross_n for_o we_o must_v well_o observe_v that_o these_o two_o phrase_n one_o use_v in_o our_o language_n the_o other_o in_o that_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n and_o to_o preach_v under_o the_o cross_n be_v absolute_o of_o the_o same_o signification_n he_o make_v they_o only_o two_o in_o number_n to_o express_v that_o those_o faithful_a who_o shall_v preserve_v themselves_o from_o the_o corruption_n of_o idolatry_n shall_v be_v but_o a_o very_a small_a number_n and_o indeed_o experience_n have_v too_o much_o verify_v this_o prediction_n nevertheless_o he_o make_v they_o two_o in_o number_n to_o signify_v that_o however_o small_a the_o number_n of_o true_a christian_n be_v it_o shall_v notwithstanding_o be_v great_a enough_o to_o support_v the_o truth_n and_o keep_v it_o from_o fall_v for_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o witness_n every_o word_n shall_v be_v establish_v 6._o how_o these_o witness_n have_v power_n to_o change_v water_n into_o blood_n and_o shut_v up_o heaven_n v._o 6._o god_n ascribe_v to_o these_o two_o witness_n power_n to_o shut_v heaven_n that_o it_o rain_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o prophesy_n and_o power_n over_o water_n to_o turn_v they_o into_o blood_n and_o to_o smite_v the_o earth_n with_o all_o plague_n as_o often_o as_o they_o will._n joseph_n mede_n give_v a_o very_a ingenious_a reason_n of_o this_o which_o i_o believe_v be_v very_o solid_a viz._n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n borrow_v his_o emblem_n from_o the_o history_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o allude_v unto_o several_a pair_n of_o eminent_a witness_n which_o god_n raise_v up_o at_o several_a time_n as_o aaron_n and_o moses_n at_o the_o come_n out_o of_o egypt_n joshua_n and_o caleb_n at_o the_o conquer_a of_o the_o promise_a land_n elijah_n and_o elisha_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o grand_a schism_n of_o the_o ten_o tribe_n zerubbabel_n and_o jehoshua_n at_o the_o return_n from_o the_o captivity_n among_o these_o witness_n elijah_n and_o elisha_n have_v power_n to_o shut_v heaven_n to_o hinder_v rain_n for_o three_o year_n and_o to_o make_v fire_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n moses_n and_o aaron_n turn_v the_o water_n of_o egypt_n into_o blood_n joshua_n and_o caleb_n bring_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o smite_v the_o ancient_a inhabitant_n with_o a_o sore_a plague_n to_o this_o the_o holy_a ghost_n allude_v but_o we_o must_v further_o add_v that_o god_n ascribe_v to_o these_o witness_n 1._o the_o shut_n of_o heaven_n that_o rain_n not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o prophecy_n to_o signify_v that_o during_o the_o 1260_o year_n of_o their_o prophecy_n and_o of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a drought_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o barrenness_n of_o virtue_n and_o gift_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o the_o turn_n of_o water_n into_o blood_n and_o the_o smite_v of_o the_o earth_n with_o all_o plague_n because_o all_o the_o heavy_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o during_o the_o course_n of_o these_o 1260_o year_n come_v upon_o the_o antichristian_a church_n be_v send_v on_o the_o account_n of_o these_o two_o witness_n and_o to_o punish_v oppression_n under_o which_o it_o hold_v both_o the_o truth_n and_o those_o who_o be_v willing_a to_o profess_v it_o reign_v here_o be_v foretold_v a_o last_o persecution_n that_o must_v happen_v before_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v the_o seven_o verse_n which_o we_o even_o now_o have_v read_v concern_v the_o persecution_n which_o these_o two_o witness_n must_v suffer_v and_o the_o consequent_a of_o that_o persecution_n contain_v a_o grand_a event_n which_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v before_o the_o last_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a circumstance_n of_o this_o fall_n first_o we_o must_v observe_v the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v finish_v their_o testimony_n mark_v this_o testimony_n must_v last_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o day_n my_o two_o witness_n shall_v prophesy_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o threescore_o day_n clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n now_o these_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o sixty_o day_n of_o the_o prophesy_a of_o the_o witness_n be_v the_o forty_o two_o month_n of_o the_o antichristian_a reign_n for_o forty_o two_o month_n make_v exact_o 1260_o day_n all_o the_o world_n be_v agree_v that_o these_o be_v the_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o antichrist_n and_o these_o two_o witness_n be_v absolute_o and_o exact_o contempory_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o very_a same_o as_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v say_v and_o when_o the_o beast_n or_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v have_v finish_v his_o reign_n of_o 1260_o year_n it_o shall_v make_v war_n against_o the_o two_o witness_n this_o be_v therefore_o a_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n against_o the_o faithful_a and_o a_o persecution_n that_o must_v happen_v before_o the_o end_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v these_o word_n when_o they_o shall_v have_v finish_v must_v not_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v say_v when_o the_o 1260_o year_n shall_v be_v finish_v for_o after_o the_o 1260_o year_n be_v finish_v there_o can_v be_v no_o persecution_n see_v the_o beast_n shall_v have_v lose_v his_o power_n so_o that_o this_o persecution_n must_v begin_v and_o end_v within_o the_o 1260_o year_n but_o yet_o at_o the_o end_n of_o they_o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a custom_n not_o only_o of_o scripture_n but_o of_o all_o man_n to_o say_v that_o something_o come_v to_o pass_v when_o this_o or_o that_o be_v finish_v because_o it_o happen_v when_o that_o thing_n be_v finish_v and_o very_o near_o its_o end_n this_o be_v therefore_o the_o last_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n against_o the_o church_n this_o persecution_n have_v its_o character_n 1._o it_o must_v continue_v a_o long_a time_n persecution_n character_n of_o the_o last_o persecution_n for_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o war_n the_o beast_n that_o come_v up_o out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o they_o 2._o this_o war_n or_o persecution_n must_v end_v in_o a_o victory_n over_o the_o two_o witness_n and_o shall_v overcome_v they_o and_o kill_v they_o mark_v that_o god_n do_v not_o reckon_v the_o death_n and_o martyrdom_n which_o the_o faithful_a suffer_v for_o the_o truth_n as_o a_o victory_n that_o the_o devil_n gain_v over_o they_o on_o the_o
all_o the_o protestant_a state_n of_o europe_n do_v concern_v themselves_o to_o obtain_v from_o the_o duke_n a_o peace_n for_o those_o poor_a people_n a_o persecution_n begin_v in_o poland_n a_o while_n after_o and_o the_o reform_a be_v involve_v in_o the_o same_o ruin_n with_o the_o heretic_n socinian_n and_o antitrinitarian_n they_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o be_v scatter_v in_o transilvania_n hungary_n and_o germany_n at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o persecution_n begin_v in_o france_n immediate_o after_o the_o pyrenaean_a peace_n the_o project_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v lay_v at_o court_n and_o have_v be_v prosecute_v till_o it_o have_v be_v execute_v as_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o year_n 1671._o begin_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o silesia_n moravia_n hungary_n the_o consequent_n of_o which_o be_v the_o almost_o utter_a extinction_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n in_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o two_o witness_n will_v in_o a_o little_a time_n be_v dead_a through_o the_o total_a extinction_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o religion_n the_o beast_n that_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o they_o this_o beast_n be_v the_o papacy_n where_o ever_o it_o be_v for_o it_o be_v not_o only_a in_o rome_n that_o the_o beast_n be_v find_v but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a extent_n of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o ten_o king_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o necessary_a that_o a_o persecution_n shall_v be_v exact_o raise_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o so_o it_o may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o beast_n it_o be_v enough_o that_o it_o be_v raise_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o popish_a kingdom_n and_o their_o body_n shall_v lie_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n it_o be_v evident_a from_o these_o word_n that_o this_o last_o persecution_n must_v be_v raise_v only_o within_o the_o circumference_n of_o the_o great_a city_n i._n e._n the_o babylonian_a and_o popish_a kingdom_n in_o the_o country_n where_o it_o reign_v on_o this_o account_n probable_o those_o kingdom_n country_n and_o state_n who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o who_o sovereign_n be_v protestant_n must_v have_v no_o share_n in_o it_o further_o the_o prophecy_n say_v that_o the_o war_n must_v be_v make_v against_o the_o two_o witness_n that_o prophesy_v clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o what_o we_o call_v preach_v under_o the_o cross_n this_o therefore_o only_o concern_v the_o faithful_a who_o preach_v and_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n so_o that_o the_o persecution_n must_v only_o be_v raise_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o city_n i._n e._n the_o babylonian_a kingdom_n and_o against_o those_o who_o preach_v under_o the_o cross_n holland_n sweden_n denmark_n and_o all_o other_o state_n which_o have_v reform_v prince_n and_o where_o the_o reformation_n be_v the_o roll_a religion_n shall_v not_o feel_v it_o and_o we_o have_v ground_n to_o hope_n that_o the_o torch_n of_o the_o reformation_n shall_v not_o be_v extinguish_v and_o though_o at_o present_a the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v of_o the_o romish_a religion_n i_o dare_v notwithstanding_o persuade_v myself_o that_o his_o kingdom_n can_v be_v reckon_v as_o one_o of_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n see_v popery_n be_v not_o the_o roll_a religion_n there_o though_o it_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o he_o that_o rule_v therefore_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o prophesy_n of_o usher_n in_o the_o letter_n or_o strict_a sense_n who_o say_v that_o the_o persecution_n must_v be_v general_a over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o europe_n for_o we_o may_v understand_v it_o of_o all_o those_o where_fw-mi popery_n do_v rule_v it_o be_v true_a he_o foretells_a a_o massacre_n in_o england_n but_o beside_o that_o those_o who_o write_v this_o prophesy_n from_o his_o mouth_n may_v be_v mistake_v it_o be_v also_o possible_a that_o this_o holy_a man_n through_o the_o violence_n of_o his_o sorrow_n go_v further_a than_o the_o spirit_n do_v carry_v he_o notwithstanding_o the_o english_a ought_v to_o remember_v the_o massacre_n in_o ireland_n circumstance_n than_o be_v not_o near_o so_o favourable_a to_o popery_n as_o they_o be_v now_o man_n must_v not_o trust_v to_o this_o that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n will_v never_o consent_v to_o so_o barbarous_a a_o action_n i_o believe_v he_o will_v not_o but_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o trouble_v themselves_o about_o the_o pleasure_n of_o their_o sovereign_n when_o they_o see_v any_o prospect_n of_o advance_v their_o cause_n by_o any_o kind_n of_o method_n therefore_o if_o the_o protestant_n be_v wise_a they_o will_v not_o put_v weapon_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n the_o body_n of_o the_o two_o witness_n shall_v lie_v in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o the_o text_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o street_n in_o the_o plural_a as_o the_o french_a translation_n read_v it_o be_v in_o the_o street_n in_o the_o singular_a and_o i_o can_v hinder_v myself_o from_o believe_v that_o this_o have_v a_o particular_a regard_n to_o france_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v certain_o the_o most_o eminent_a country_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o popish_a kingdom_n her_o king_n be_v call_v the_o elder_a son_n of_o the_o church_n the_o most_o christian_n king_n i._n e._n the_o most_o popish_a according_a to_o the_o dialect_n of_o rome_n the_o king_n of_o france_n have_v by_o their_o liberality_n make_v the_o pope_n great_a at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v the_o most_o flourish_a state_n of_o europe_n it_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o popish_a empire_n betwixt_o italy_n spain_n germany_n england_n exact_o as_o a_o street_n or_o place_n of_o concourse_n be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o a_o city_n it_o be_v also_o foursquare_n as_o such_o a_o place_n i._n e._n almost_o as_o long_o as_o broad_a in_o a_o word_n it_o be_v the_o place_n or_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n and_o i_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v particular_o in_o france_n that_o the_o witness_n must_v remain_v dead_a i.e._n that_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n must_v be_v utter_o abolish_v this_o be_v already_o do_v by_o the_o revocation_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o nantes_n and_o by_o the_o enormous_a cruclty_n of_o the_o soldier_n who_o have_v be_v let_v loose_a upon_o the_o protestant_n of_o whatsoever_o sex_n quality_n and_o condition_n if_o any_o stand_v firm_a they_o must_v either_o leave_v the_o kingdom_n or_o be_v destroy_v thus_o within_o a_o little_a while_n the_o external_a profession_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n will_v be_v whole_o abolish_v there_o and_o they_o of_o the_o people_n and_o kindred_n and_o tongue_n and_o nation_n shall_v see_v their_o dead_a body_n and_o shall_v not_o suffer_v their_o dead_a body_n to_o be_v put_v into_o grave_n i.e._n the_o truth_n shall_v be_v slay_v but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v bury_v burial_n be_v a_o degree_n beyond_o death_n and_o be_v always_o join_v with_o a_o total_a corruption_n and_o destruction_n and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o a_o office_n of_o charity_n which_o be_v deny_v to_o these_o two_o witness_n but_o a_o degree_n of_o ruin_n from_o which_o they_o be_v exempt_v destroy_v the_o witness_n shall_v not_o be_v bury_v i.e._n the_o truth_n shall_v not_o be_v destroy_v and_o observe_v who_o they_o be_v who_o hinder_v their_o burial_n they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o those_o who_o kill_v they_o those_o who_o kill_v they_o be_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n i._n e._n those_o who_o dwell_v in_o the_o most_o eminent_a part_n of_o the_o popish_a kingdom_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v france_n those_o who_o hinder_v their_o burial_n be_v the_o tribe_n language_n people_n and_o nation_n i.e._n several_a neighbour_n nation_n yea_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o propheey_n say_v not_o simple_o the_o tribe_n language_n and_o nation_n but_o they_o of_o the_o language_n tribe_n and_o nation_n i._n e._n some_o choose_a and_o elect_v out_o of_o the_o nation_n the_o faithful_a scatter_v in_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n shall_v hinder_v the_o burial_n and_o total_a destruction_n of_o the_o reformation_n in_o france_n nevertheless_o this_o do_v not_o whole_o exclude_v those_o among_o the_o tribe_n language_n and_o nation_n who_o be_v not_o elect._n for_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o all_o europe_n shall_v contribute_v to_o hinder_v france_n from_o execute_v her_o design_n of_o extirpate_v the_o truth_n but_o this_o signify_v that_o the_o reform_a and_o the_o true_a christian_n shall_v awaken_v europe_n as_o well_o that_o part_n which_o be_v roman_a catholic_n as_o that_o which_o be_v protestant_a to_o oblige_v it_o to_o look_v to_o
the_o whole_a babylonian_a empire_n we_o must_v not_o imagine_v that_o all_o this_o great_a circuit_n of_o country_n shall_v be_v lay_v desolate_a the_o 19_o chapter_n be_v the_o last_o in_o which_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n the_o ten_o first_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n must_v not_o be_v disjoin_v from_o the_o foregoing_a chapter_n for_o they_o be_v only_o the_o continuation_n of_o it_o the_o solemn_a rejoice_n of_o the_o elect_n after_o the_o ruin_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n here_o below_o upon_o earth_n the_o eleven_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o chapter_n contain_v a_o wonderful_a vision_n wherein_o jesus_n christ_n appear_v sit_v upon_o a_o white_a horse_n have_v the_o title_n of_o faithful_a of_o true_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o king_n of_o king_n of_o lord_n of_o lord_n he_o gather_v his_o army_n together_o to_o fight_v against_o the_o beast_n and_o against_o the_o false_a prophet_n a_o angel_n stand_v in_o the_o sun_n and_o call_v to_o all_o the_o fowl_n of_o heaven_n to_o come_v and_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o those_o man_n that_o must_v be_v slay_v in_o that_o great_a battle_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fight_v on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n gather_v their_o force_n the_o battle_n be_v fight_v the_o beast_n and_o king_n be_v overcome_v he_o be_v take_v with_o his_o false_a prophet_n both_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lake_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n together_o with_o all_o those_o who_o have_v worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o this_o be_v magnificent_a and_o the_o figure_n be_v lofty_a but_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a in_o this_o and_o in_o my_o judgement_n it_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o recapitulation_n of_o the_o foregoing_a vision_n concern_v the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v the_o vision_n of_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n be_v a_o epitome_n of_o the_o vision_n that_o follow_v and_o this_o be_v proper_o a_o epitome_n of_o the_o vision_n which_o go_v before_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o insist_v upon_o it_o especial_o see_v nothing_o be_v find_v of_o that_o which_o we_o seek_v for_o namely_o the_o sign_n and_o mark_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v know_v when_o and_o at_o what_o time_n the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n must_v end_v it_o be_v in_o the_o 11_o 14_o and_o above_o all_o in_o the_o 16_o chapter_n that_o we_o find_v the_o character_n of_o this_o end_n and_o of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o it_o must_v come_v to_o pass_v therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a only_o that_o we_o shall_v insist_v upon_o those_o chater_n literal_o the_o slaughter_n and_o murder_n in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n must_v nor_o be_v understand_v literal_o i_o will_v only_o make_v the_o observation_n upon_o this_o chapter_n which_o i_o make_v upon_o the_o foregoing_a that_o we_o must_v not_o understand_v literal_o the_o expression_n of_o war_n and_o destroy_v that_o be_v use_v here_o for_o example_n that_o jesus_n christ_n must_v tread_v the_o wine-press_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n that_o he_o must_v give_v to_o be_v eat_v by_o the_o fowl_n the_o flesh_n of_o king_n of_o captain_n of_o mighty_a man_n of_o horse_n of_o free_a and_o bond_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v metaphor_n borrow_v from_o war_n and_o must_v be_v understand_v surable_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o spiritual_a war_n which_o jesus_n christ_n must_v make_v against_o idolatry_n superstition_n heresy_n and_o tyranny_n his_o quarrel_n be_v with_o these_o and_o not_o with_o man_n beside_o the_o reason_n allege_v we_o have_v here_o a_o convince_a one_o that_o the_o instrument_n of_o so_o many_o victory_n and_o which_o must_v make_v such_o a_o slaughter_n 15._o verse_n 15._o be_v the_o sharp_a sword_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o he_o who_o sit_v upon_o the_o white_a horse_n and_o the_o remnant_n be_v slay_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o horse_n and_o all_o the_o folw_n be_v fill_v with_o their_o flesh_n now_o all_o know_v that_o this_o sharp_a sword_n that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n a_o spiritual_a sword_n which_o must_v act_v only_o spiritual_a slaughter_n and_o which_o do_v not_o destroy_v the_o life_n of_o man_n but_o their_o manner_n and_o idolatry_n so_o that_o i_o fear_v lest_o those_o be_v mistake_v who_o hope_v to_o render_v to_o babylon_n that_o which_o we_o have_v receive_v form_n she_o and_o in_o the_o cup_n which_o she_o have_v fill_v to_o fill_v to_o her_o double_a i._n e._n to_o give_v her_o blood_n for_o blood_n torment_n for_o torment_n this_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o have_v now_o do_v with_o this_o subject_n and_o i_o think_v there_o remain_v but_o one_o thing_n to_o do_v that_o i_o may_v give_v a_o clear_a idea_n of_o our_o prophecy_n and_o that_o be_v to_o epitomise_v and_o rank_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o time_n the_o various_a event_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n displace_v and_o confound_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o prophecy_n may_v not_o be_v clear_a than_o god_n do_v intend_v they_o shall_v be_v as_o for_o the_o seven_o plague_n of_o the_o seven_o viol_n they_o be_v perfect_o rank_v according_a to_o their_o order_n and_o according_a to_o their_o time_n ruin_n a_o commendious_a methodize_n of_o the_o event_n which_o must_v bring_v antichrist_n kingdom_n to_o its_o ruin_n 1._o the_o first_o plague_n of_o the_o first_o viol_n begin_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 900._o it_o last_v almost_o 150._o year_n and_o end_n under_o the_o popedom_n of_o leo_n ix_o about_o the_o year_n 1050._o 2._o the_o second_o and_o three_o plague_n which_o be_v the_o croisades_n begin_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eleven_o age_n and_o end_n at_o the_o go_v out_o of_o the_o thirteen_o in_o the_o year_n 1270._o or_o 1292._o for_o till_o then_o some_o of_o the_o latin_n keep_v possession_n in_o palestine_n so_o that_o they_o take_v up_o the_o space_n of_o about_o two_o hundred_o year_n 3._o the_o four_o plague_n begin_v before_o the_o croisades_n but_o if_o we_o please_v we_o may_v place_v its_o beginning_n where_o the_o forego_n end_n this_o four_o plague_n be_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o papal_a yoke_n and_o this_o period_n beginning_n at_o the_o year_n 1270_o shall_v continue_v until_o the_o year_n 1378_o when_o the_o consequent_a of_o the_o five_o plague_n begin_v namely_o the_o weaken_n of_o the_o papal_a reign_n by_o the_o schism_n therefore_o this_o period_n will_v contain_v 108_o year_n 4_o the_o five_o plague_n be_v the_o remove_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o dwell_v at_o avignon_n and_o the_o grand_a schism_n of_o the_o west_n it_o begin_v in_o the_o year_n 1305_o and_o last_v until_o the_o year_n 1440._o this_o period_n be_v a_o little_a joint_v within_o the_o former_a shall_v last_v 130_o or_o 135._o year_n 5._o the_o six_o plague_n which_o be_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o turk_n into_o europe_n and_o the_o desolation_n which_o they_o make_v in_o the_o pope_n dominion_n and_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n begin_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o fourteen_o age_n about_o the_o year_n 1370._o and_o last_v until_o the_o siege_n of_o vienna_n under_o charles_n the_o five_o in_o 1529_o this_o period_n will_v be_v 150_o year_n 6._o the_o seven_o plague_n beginning_n about_o the_o year_n 1520_o and_o last_v until_o the_o end_n of_o our_o age_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o next_o must_v last_v about_o 190_o year_n this_o last_o period_n be_v long_a than_o the_o rest_n because_o god_n intend_v to_o subdivide_v it_o into_o three_o other_o period_n 7._o the_o first_o period_n of_o this_o last_o viol_n be_v the_o harvest_n which_o last_v 30_o or_o 40_o year_n from_o the_o year_n 1520_o until_o 1560_o when_o all_o the_o country_n which_o be_v to_o be_v reform_v have_v embrace_v the_o reformation_n 8._o the_o second_o period_n of_o this_o seven_o viol_n be_v that_o season_n and_o state_n of_o rest_n and_o victory_n which_o the_o papacy_n regain_v and_o this_o period_n last_v from_o 1560_o or_o 1570_o for_o since_o that_o time_n popery_n have_v receive_v no_o considerable_a check_n but_o rather_o have_v much_o prevail_v it_o have_v make_v war_n against_o the_o saint_n have_v have_v overcome_v they_o 9_o towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o second_o period_n of_o the_o seven_o viol_n a_o sore_a persecution_n must_v happen_v the_o witness_n clothe_v in_o sackcloth_n i.e._n the_o faithful_a who_o be_v under_o the_o cross_n shall_v be_v oppress_v and_o remain_v dead_a in_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a that_o be_v the_o profession_n
of_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v whole_o suppress_v but_o the_o truth_n itself_o shall_v not_o be_v bury_v nor_o lay_v in_o the_o grave_n nor_o forget_v 10._o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a shall_v begin_v the_o three_o period_n of_o the_o seven_o viol_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v the_o vintage_n this_o be_v the_o total_a ruin_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n and_o this_o period_n shall_v last_v 20_o or_o 25_o year_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o it_o will_v begin_v about_o the_o year_n 1690_o or_o a_o little_a while_n after_o 11._o the_o first_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o three_o period_n of_o the_o seven_o vial_n be_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n i._n e._n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n which_o shall_v break_v with_o the_o kourt_n of_o rome_n and_o whole_o change_v the_o face_n of_o religion_n in_o that_o kingdom_n this_o be_v the_o first_o action_n of_o the_o vintage_n 12._o the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o agent_n shall_v rally_v all_o their_o force_n but_o god_n shall_v muster_v all_o his_o together_o and_o give_v the_o last_o blow_n to_o popery_n then_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n shall_v be_v throw_v into_o the_o lake_n and_o plunge_v into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n babylon_n shall_v whole_o fall_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v she_o be_v fall_v she_o be_v fall_v chap._n xv._o the_o reason_n why_o in_o this_o work_n we_o speak_v of_o some_o thing_n so_o positive_o the_o link_a together_o of_o our_o principle_n suffer_v we_o not_o to_o doubt_v that_o we_o now_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o papacy_n in_o the_o first_o edition_n of_o this_o work_n i_o do_v here_o finish_v what_o i_o have_v to_o say_v about_o those_o event_n past_a and_o future_a which_o concern_v the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n second_o edition_n have_v this_o advantage_n that_o they_o may_v be_v suit_v to_o the_o palate_n of_o the_o reader_n of_o who_o a_o trial_n have_v be_v make_v and_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o i_o to_o do_v it_o i_o will_v glad_o use_v this_o piece_n of_o prudence_n with_o respect_n to_o a_o remark_n which_o very_o many_o have_v make_v namely_o that_o in_o this_o discourse_n we_o speak_v over_o positive_o and_o which_o too_o much_o confidence_n concern_v thing_n which_o at_o the_o most_o ought_v to_o be_v propound_v only_o as_o conjecture_n perhaps_o some_o time_n or_o other_o man_n shall_v know_v the_o principal_a reason_n which_o make_v i_o speak_v in_o so_o confident_a a_o manner_n and_o with_o such_o token_n of_o assurance_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o desire_v their_o attention_n to_o several_a thing_n which_o i_o have_v to_o say_v conjecture_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o be_v propound_v only_o as_o strong_a conjecture_n the_o first_o be_v that_o i_o do_v not_o speak_v so_o confident_o as_o it_o be_v believe_v concern_v the_o most_o part_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v for_o example_n i_o say_v not_o down_o the_o exact_a time_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o witness_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v exact_o in_o such_o a_o year_n for_o i_o have_v declare_v and_o do_v still_o declare_v that_o i_o know_v not_o from_o what_o time_n god_n shall_v please_v to_o begin_v the_o reckon_n of_o the_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a not_o but_o that_o i_o strong_o hope_v that_o god_n intend_v to_o begin_v it_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o revocation_n of_o the_o edict_n of_o nantes_n but_o this_o do_v not_o rise_v to_o a_o full_a assurance_n that_o which_o concern_v the_o rise_n again_o of_o our_o reformation_n by_o way_n of_o inspiration_n the_o approach_a reformation_n of_o france_n by_o way_n of_o authority_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n i._n e._n of_o france_n which_o shall_v forsake_v the_o papal_a kingdom_n this_o i_o say_v seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v more_o than_o a_o conjecture_n i_o confess_v it_o and_o if_o thing_n shall_v fall_v out_o otherwise_o i_o shall_v be_v very_o much_o mistake_v but_o however_o if_o the_o fall_n of_o popery_n shall_v begin_v in_o some_o other_o place_n i_o will_v ingenous_o confess_v that_o i_o be_v deceive_v that_o the_o country_n kingdom_n and_o state_n which_o be_v not_o under_o the_o papacy_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v account_v the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n and_o that_o they_o must_v not_o feel_v a_o persecution_n seem_v to_o i_o more_o than_o probable_a and_o i_o believe_v it_o but_o notwithstanding_o i_o declare_v that_o i_o do_v not_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o it_o shall_v fall_v out_o that_o god_n shall_v send_v his_o desolate_v scourge_n upon_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o europe_n without_o except_v the_o place_n where_o our_o religion_n at_o this_o day_n bear_v sway_n i_o grant_v that_o man_n will_v have_v right_a to_o accuse_v i_o that_o i_o have_v guess_v wrong_a but_o not_o that_o i_o make_v rash_a conclusion_n and_o true_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o horrible_a looseness_n which_o every_o where_n prevail_v i_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v but_o fear_v lest_o good_a shall_v throw_v all_o into_o the_o same_o furnace_n certain_a what_o be_v propound_v as_o certain_a behold_v therefore_o what_o i_o assert_v namely_o that_o this_o be_v the_o last_o persecution_n which_o antichrist_n must_v raise_v against_o the_o church_n and_o that_o we_o be_v near_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twelve_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n which_o be_v the_o period_n of_o his_o empire_n and_o that_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o age_n this_o empire_n must_v see_v its_o end_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v mistake_v nine_o or_o ten_o year_n and_o that_o this_o empire_n shall_v instead_o of_o end_v in_o the_o year_n 1710_o or_o thereabouts_o run_v on_o until_o the_o year_n 1720_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o any_o can_v just_o treat_v i_o as_o a_o false_a prophet_n and_o accuse_v i_o of_o rashness_n many_o will_v not_o forbear_v to_o judge_v i_o rash_a because_o i_o propound_v my_o conjecture_n about_o these_o thing_n as_o certain_a conclusion_n to_o this_o i_o have_v a_o second_o thing_n to_o say_v that_o none_o have_v reason_n to_o be_v offend_v that_o i_o be_o possess_v with_o and_o persuade_v of_o that_o which_o i_o think_v i_o evident_o see_v and_o that_o i_o find_v the_o proof_n of_o what_o i_o propound_v convince_a to_o myself_o i_o shall_v do_v ill_a to_o demand_v of_o other_o the_o same_o assurance_n and_o oblige_v they_o to_o entertain_v the_o same_o persuasion_n i_o declare_v the_o contrary_a in_o express_a term_n i_o be_o well_o content_a as_o i_o have_v say_v that_o my_o reader_n shall_v account_v these_o assertion_n to_o be_v conjecture_n provide_v that_o i_o may_v have_v the_o liberty_n to_o believe_v what_o i_o see_v or_o what_o i_o believe_v i_o see_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n beside_o it_o seem_v that_o there_o be_v no_o great_a necessity_n of_o punish_v i_o for_o this_o pretend_a rashness_n see_v if_o so_o be_v that_o i_o be_o mistake_v time_n be_v prepare_v for_o i_o a_o mortification_n sore_a enough_o let_v we_o leave_v providence_n to_o work_v it_o will_v discover_v who_o be_v guilty_a of_o rashness_n and_o fond_a credulity_n consider_v our_o principle_n must_v be_v consider_v the_o last_o thing_n which_o i_o will_v say_v for_o my_o justification_n be_v that_o before_o any_o condemn_v i_o of_o rashness_n as_o to_o what_o i_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n of_o antichrist_n reign_v my_o principle_n must_v be_v due_o weigh_v and_o that_o not_o each_o apart_o as_o perhaps_o some_o have_v do_v but_o conjoint_o behold_v the_o principle_n and_o their_o connexion_n 1._o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o antichristian_a empire_n of_o which_o these_o prophecy_n speak_v 2._o that_o idolatry_n be_v the_o principal_a character_n of_o this_o antichristian_a empire_n 3._o that_o this_o empire_n of_o the_o beast_n must_v begin_v when_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v divide_v into_o ten_o kingdom_n and_o when_o that_o head_n the_o emperor_n which_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n time_n be_v destroy_v here_o be_v three_o principle_n which_o i_o know_v not_o how_o any_o protestant_n can_v doubt_v of_o we_o shall_v present_o see_v whither_o they_o will_v lead_v we_o 4._o my_o four_o principle_n be_v that_o i_o have_v hit_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o seven_o viol_n so_o that_o stink_a ulcer_n in_o the_o first_o be_v the_o horrible_a corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o ten_o age._n the_o sea_n and_o river_n of_o blood_n in_o the_o two_o follow_a plague_n be_v the_o butchery_n act_v
maimbourg_n shall_v publish_v one_o history_n upon_o another_o of_o the_o decline_a of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o croisades_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o greek_n of_o the_o great_a schism_n of_o the_o west_n of_o lutheranism_n and_o of_o calvinism_n for_o this_o purpose_n to_o raise_v our_o attention_n unto_o these_o great_a event_n of_o the_o seven_o plague_n which_o without_o this_o perhaps_o none_o will_v have_v think_v of_o i_o earnest_o beseech_v they_o i_o say_v serious_o to_o consider_v this_o heap_n of_o circumstance_n and_o to_o tell_v i_o in_o their_o conscience_n whether_o chance_n can_v produce_v and_o agreement_n of_o above_o a_o hundred_o or_o two_o hundred_o point_n relate_v to_o the_o same_o subject_n none_o can_v ever_o make_v this_o reflection_n serious_o but_o he_o must_v be_v convince_v chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o thousand_o year_n reign_n that_o in_o all_o the_o past_a time_n there_o be_v not_o a_o time_n to_o be_v find_v wherein_o satan_n have_v be_v bind_v four_o head_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o reign_n the_o first_o be_v the_o five_o monarchy_n so_o plain_o promise_v to_o the_o saint_n we_o have_v do_v examine_v that_o which_o relate_v to_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n that_o we_o may_v keep_v our_o word_n that_o we_o give_v in_o the_o title_n of_o our_o second_o part_n we_o must_v now_o inquire_v what_o must_v happen_v to_o the_o church_n after_o that_o great_a event_n this_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o 20_o chapter_n of_o the_o revelation_n in_o these_o term_n v._o 1._o and_o i_o see_v a_o angel_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o a_o great_a chain_n in_o his_o hand_n v._o 2._o and_o he_o lay_v hold_v on_o the_o dragon_n that_o old_a serpent_n which_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n and_o bind_v he_o a_o thousand_o year_n v._o 3._o and_o cast_v he_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o shut_v he_o up_o and_o set_v a_o seal_n upon_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v the_o nation_n no_o more_o till_o the_o thousand_o year_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v and_o after_o that_o he_o must_v be_v loose_v a_o little_a season_n v._o 4._o and_o i_o see_v throne_n and_o they_o sit_v upon_o they_o and_o judgement_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o and_o i_o see_v the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v behead_v for_o the_o witness_n of_o jesus_n and_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o which_o have_v not_o worship_v the_o beast_n neither_o his_o image_n neither_o have_v receive_v his_o mark_n upon_o their_o forehead_n or_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o live_v and_o reign_v with_o christ_n a_o thousand_o year_n v._o 5._o but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a live_v not_o again_o until_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v finish_v this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n behold_v the_o text_n which_o be_v the_o subject_n to_o so_o many_o doubt_n and_o so_o many_o controversy_n behold_v that_o which_o have_v make_v the_o pretend_a heretic_n who_o be_v call_v chiliast_n and_o millenaries_n i_o mean_v not_o those_o chiliast_n who_o have_v believe_v a_o thousand_o year_n reign_n of_o the_o church_n during_o which_o time_n it_o must_v enjoy_v according_a to_o their_o opinion_n the_o carnal_a and_o sinful_a pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n these_o be_v filthy_a spirit_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o dragon_n mouth_n millenaries_n a_o distinction_n between_o carnal_a and_o spiritual_a millenaries_n but_o as_o for_o those_o who_o believe_v that_o after_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n and_o before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n god_n reserve_v to_o himself_o a_o period_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o which_o he_o must_v reign_v by_o himself_o and_o his_o people_n pour_v out_o upon_o they_o a_o abundance_n of_o his_o spirit_n bring_v all_o nation_n to_o his_o knowledge_n govern_v they_o with_o a_o golden_a sceptre_n and_o no_o long_o with_o a_o iron_n one_o secure_v they_o from_o all_o evil_a and_o from_o all_o danger_n of_o corruption_n as_o for_o these_o i_o say_v the_o time_n be_v come_v and_o that_o very_o short_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v ashamed_a that_o they_o have_v brand_v they_o with_o the_o name_n of_o chiliast_n of_o millenaries_n and_o five_o monarchyman_n i_o have_v former_a by_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v something_o that_o be_v surprise_v and_o divine_a in_o the_o due_a understanding_n of_o prophecy_n we_o wonder_v at_o the_o strange_a stupidity_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o do_v not_o discern_v in_o their_o own_o oracle_n our_o jesus_n and_o their_o messiah_n we_o be_v astonish_v at_o the_o dismal_a blindness_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o do_v not_o see_v the_o beast_n and_o antichrist_n in_o that_o which_o they_o call_v their_o holy_a see_n and_o their_o holy_a church_n god_n have_v have_v reason_n why_o he_o have_v give_v these_o man_n eye_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o a_o heart_n void_a of_o understanding_n certain_o here_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n there_o must_v be_v a_o blindness_n great_a than_o can_v be_v imagine_v earth_n it_o be_v surprise_v that_o man_n have_v not_o see_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n on_o the_o earth_n in_o those_o who_o see_v not_o this_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o church_n which_o must_v make_v the_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v something_o supernatural_a in_o this_o blindness_n i_o have_v this_o favour_n from_o god_n that_o i_o see_v this_o reign_n in_o the_o scripture_n ever_o since_o i_o be_v able_a to_o read_v and_o understand_v they_o without_o have_v read_v either_o any_o commentary_n upon_o the_o revelation_n or_o writing_n of_o the_o millenaries_n i_o hope_v to_o make_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o reign_n with_o such_o clearness_n that_o if_o shall_v be_v difficult_a to_o shake_v any_o doubt_n of_o it_o bind_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o find_v in_o the_o time_n bypass_a room_n for_o the_o period_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o which_o satant_n must_v be_v bind_v first_o it_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o within_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v necessary_o find_v a_o period_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o which_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o satan_n have_v be_v bind_v i.e._n hinder_v in_o his_o design_n which_o be_v seduction_n and_o persecution_n this_o it_o too_o plain_a to_o be_v deny_v but_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v this_o period_n i_o be_o sorry_a to_o see_v so_o great_a so_o learned_a and_o so_o holy_a a_o person_n as_o usher_n archbishop_n of_o armagh_n to_o place_v this_o period_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n within_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n incarnation_n and_o the_o eleven_o age._n how_o can_v any_o one_o say_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v during_o that_o space_n be_v it_o with_o respect_n to_o seduction_n in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n do_v he_o not_o seduce_v man_n be_v not_o the_o pagan_n seduce_v their_o religion_n be_v it_o not_o the_o rule_v religion_n there_o be_v christian_n i_o grant_v but_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o fifty_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a roman_a empire_n in_o the_o succeed_a age_n have_v he_o not_o set_v on_o foot_n that_o grand_a seduction_n that_o be_v call_v the_o beast_n the_o false_a prophet_n the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n have_v he_o not_o bring_v idolatry_n into_o the_o church_n the_o abomination_n into_o the_o sanctuary_n such_o tyranny_n pride_n and_o corruption_n of_o manner_n that_o there_o be_v never_o great_a among_o the_o pagan_n with_o respect_n to_o persecution_n have_v he_o be_v bind_v how_o much_o blood_n have_v shed_v how_o many_o butchery_n have_v he_o act_v how_o many_o massacre_n what_o a_o great_a number_n of_o martyr_n can_v it_o enter_v into_o any_o man_n thought_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o period_n of_o satan_n bind_n he_o be_v never_o so_o break_v loose_a constantin_n the_o falsity_n of_o their_o hypothesis_n who_o begin_v they_o at_o constantin_n what_o do_v those_o gain_n who_o come_v three_o hundred_o year_n low_o and_o hold_v that_o santan_n begin_v to_o be_v bind_v at_o the_o time_n of_o constantin_n they_o must_v upon_o that_o principle_n place_v their_o end_n at_o the_o year_n thirteen_o hundred_o and_o so_o include_v within_o their_o period_n of_o the_o thousand_o year_n the_o rage_n of_o the_o beast_n who_o have_v feed_v upon_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o seduction_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n who_o make_v the_o image_n of_o the_o beast_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o run_v after_o he_o who_o oblige_v all_o man_n to_o bear_v his_o mark_n upon_o their_o forehead_n who_o make_v war_n against_o the_o saint_n and_o overcome_v they_o in_o one_o word_n they_o must_v take_v in_o into_o their_o period_n of_o santan_n bind_v that_o space_n of_o time_n in_o which_o
that_o have_v mercy_n on_o they_o shall_v lead_v they_o even_o by_o the_o spring_n of_o water_n shall_v he_o guide_v they_o i_o will_v make_v all_o my_o mountain_n a_o way_n 13._o c._n 55.12_o 13._o and_o my_o high_a way_n shall_v be_v exalt_v you_o shall_v go_v out_o with_o joy_n and_o be_v lead_v forth_o with_o peace_n the_o mountain_n and_o the_o hill_n shall_v break_v forth_o before_o you_o into_o sing_v and_o all_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o field_n shall_v clap_v their_o hand_n instead_o of_o the_o thorn_n shall_v come_v up_o the_o firr-tree_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o briar_n shall_v come_v up_o the_o myrtle-tree_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o a_o name_n and_o for_o a_o everlasting_a sign_n that_o shall_v not_o be_v cut_v off_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o thy_o light_n by_o day_n neither_o for_o brightness_n shall_v the_o moon_n give_v light_a unto_o thou_o 60.19_o be_v 60.19_o but_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v unto_o thou_o a_o everlasting_a light_n and_o thy_o god_n thy_o glory_n the_o sun_n shall_v no_o more_o go_v down_o neither_o shall_v thy_o moon_n withdraw_v itself_o for_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v thy_o everlasting_a light_n and_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o mourning_n shall_v be_v end_v 54.9.10_o be_v 54.9.10_o this_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o water_n of_o noah_n unto_o i_o for_o as_o i_o have_v swear_v that_o the_o water_n of_o noah_n shall_v no_o more_o go_v over_o the_o earth_n so_o have_v i_o swear_v that_o i_o will_v not_o be_v wrath_n with_o thou_o nor_o rebuke_v thou_o for_o the_o mountain_n shall_v depart_v and_o the_o hill_n be_v remove_v but_o my_o kindness_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o thou_o neither_o shall_v the_o covenant_n of_o my_o peace_n be_v remove_v say_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v mercy_n on_o thou_o prophecy_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o all_o these_o prophecy_n all_o these_o and_o the_o like_a expression_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o prophet_n do_v import_v 1._o a_o profound_a peace_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v interrupt_v by_o war._n 2._o plenty_n and_o abundance_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o good_n 3._o a_o exemption_n from_o all_o evil_n 4._o such_o a_o prosperity_n where_o be_v riches_n and_o plenty_n and_o joy._n 5._o a_o felicity_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v interrupt_v by_o the_o return_n of_o calamity_n this_o must_v be_v fix_v that_o all_o these_o prophecy_n respect_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o messiah_n for_o as_o to_o those_o who_o endeavour_n to_o turn_v they_o to_o another_o sense_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o temporal_a blessing_n of_o the_o jew_n i_o can_v consider_v they_o as_o christian_n but_o reckon_v they_o enemy_n to_o christianity_n accomplish_v these_o promise_n have_v not_o be_v accomplish_v we_o must_v therefore_o search_v for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o these_o prophecy_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n that_o no_o such_o thing_n can_v be_v find_v there_o the_o antimillenaries_n themselves_o confess_v for_o they_o constant_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o thousand_o year_n of_o rest_n be_v altogether_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o order_n of_o divine_a providence_n and_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v always_o calamitous_a and_o afflict_a upon_o earth_n that_o sorrow_n and_o suffer_v persecution_n and_o the_o cross_n do_v inseparable_o belong_v to_o it_o that_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o what_o be_v to_o come_v by_o the_o history_n of_o what_o be_v past_a it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n the_o church_n be_v under_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o pagan_n in_o the_o four_o under_o that_o of_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o five_o she_o begin_v to_o sink_v into_o superstition_n and_o have_v remain_v overwhelm_v with_o it_o during_o the_o whole_a reign_n of_o antichrist_n where_o then_o shall_v we_o place_v those_o happy_a day_n the_o prophet_n promise_n it_o be_v trifle_v to_o apply_v those_o promise_n of_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n to_o certain_a little_a interval_n of_o quiet_a which_o from_o time_n to_o time_n the_o church_n have_v have_v in_o some_o place_n for_o it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a ill_a use_n of_o rhetoric_n and_o a_o strange_a force_n put_v upon_o figure_n to_o represent_v so_o imperfect_a a_o calm_a by_o such_o term_n as_o give_v we_o a_o idea_n of_o the_o great_a and_o most_o perfect_a prosperity_n imaginable_a moreover_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o a_o endless_a peace_n to_o which_o no_o affliction_n shall_v succeed_v it_o must_v be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v like_o the_o water_n of_o noah_n which_o shall_v never_o return_v to_o cover_v the_o earth_n it_o must_v be_v a_o peace_n so_o firm_a that_o though_o the_o mountain_n be_v overthrow_v shall_v never_o be_v change_v receive_v these_o prophecy_n not_o accomplish_v by_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n which_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v we_o may_v not_o say_v that_o all_o this_o have_v respect_n only_o to_o spiritual_a grace_n the_o stability_n of_o god_n covenant_n and_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o faithful_a i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v have_v some_o reference_n thereto_o but_o it_o be_v false_a that_o those_o spiritual_a favour_n in_o that_o weak_a degree_n wherein_o we_o see_v they_o at_o this_o day_n can_v comprehend_v the_o full_a signification_n of_o such_o great_a expression_n which_o clear_o import_v a_o peace_n in_o reference_n to_o earth_n as_o well_o as_o heaven_n add_v to_o this_o that_o though_o these_o promise_n shall_v not_o be_v apply_v but_o to_o spiritual_a blessing_n there_o must_v yet_o be_v a_o new_a kingdom_n and_o a_o new_a age_n for_o the_o fulfil_n of_o they_o for_o we_o have_v never_o yet_o see_v any_o wherein_o spiritual_a peace_n and_o invisible_a grace_n have_v be_v so_o abundant_o pour_v out_o to_o satisfy_v in_o any_o measure_n the_o greatness_n of_o such_o expression_n chap._n xix_o the_o four_o head_n of_o argument_n for_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v the_o type_n four_o type_n of_o this_o period_n the_o principal_a be_v the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o be_v not_o a_o immediate_a type_n of_o eternal_a rest_n but_o of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o four_o head_n of_o argument_n viz._n the_o type_n they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o prophecy_n be_v picture_n and_o representation_n of_o future_a event_n they_o be_v not_o vain_a speculation_n of_o divine_n and_o the_o great_a wit_n that_o look_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v so_o approach_v very_o near_o to_o impiety_n it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o shadow_n forth_o his_o mystery_n in_o certain_a dispensation_n of_o his_o providence_n saint_n paul_n teach_v we_o that_o hagar_n the_o servant_n of_o sarah_n sinai_n a_o mountain_n in_o arabia_n be_v type_n of_o the_o legal_a institution_n as_o sarah_n and_o zion_n be_v also_o type_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o melchisedeck_v be_v a_o type_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o general_a that_o the_o law_n have_v shadow_n of_o which_o the_o substance_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o christ_n the_o type_n therefore_o be_v no_o false_a or_o deceitful_a light_n whereby_o to_o judge_v in_o case_n they_o be_v right_o use_v now_o i_o pretend_v that_o all_o the_o type_n make_v for_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n we_o may_v find_v a_o great_a number_n of_o they_o the_o captivity_n of_o israel_n in_o egypt_n be_v certain_o a_o type_n of_o that_o bondage_n under_o which_o the_o church_n shall_v groan_v antichrist_n the_o deliverance_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n figure_v that_o of_o the_o church_n from_o under_o the_o bondage_n of_o antichrist_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n the_o antichristian_a empire_n be_v therefore_o call_v egypt_n now_o after_o the_o israelite_n be_v come_v out_o of_o egypt_n they_o enter_v into_o canaan_n the_o land_n flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n which_o do_v certain_o prefigure_v the_o happy_a state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o all_o her_o enemy_n shall_v be_v subdue_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n be_v the_o image_n of_o that_o great_a and_o eternal_a dwelling_n to_o which_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v transport_v after_o the_o last_o judgement_n i_o deny_v it_o not_o but_o you_o must_v know_v canaan_n 1._o type_n the_o rest_n in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n that_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o description_n of_o the_o future_a blessedness_n of_o the_o church_n by_o emblem_n type_n figure_n and_o metaphorical_a resemblance_n have_v not_o their_o immediate_a relation_n to_o eternal_a blessedness_n st._n paul_n have_v tell_v we_o that_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v it_o nor_o ear_n hear_v it_o nor_o can_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v and_o consequent_o
it_o be_v not_o that_o which_o the_o h._n ghost_n will_v immediate_o describe_v because_o he_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v keep_v ignorant_a of_o it_o so_o that_o those_o description_n have_v a_o immediate_a relation_n to_o the_o flourish_a state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o last_o period_n and_o by_o analogy_n they_o may_v be_v transfer_v to_o the_o blessing_n of_o paradise_n captivity_n 2._o type_n the_o rest_n after_o the_o babylonish_n captivity_n the_o captivity_n of_o babylon_n be_v doubtless_o another_o type_n of_o the_o captivity_n of_o the_o church_n under_o antichrist_n and_o therefore_o the_o papacy_n be_v call_v the_o city_n of_o babylon_n and_o after_o that_o captivity_n the_o people_n return_v to_o their_o own_o land_n and_o live_v peaceable_o there_o so_o doubtless_o the_o church_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v return_v to_o its_o rest_n here_o on_o earth_n antiochus_n 3._o type_n the_o rest_n after_o the_o persecution_n under_o antiochus_n the_o persecution_n of_o antiochus_n be_v also_o a_o type_n of_o the_o persecution_n which_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v under_o antichrist_n now_o after_o the_o three_o year_n and_o half_a of_o that_o persecution_n the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n return_v to_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o temple_n and_o rise_v to_o a_o more_o flourish_a condition_n than_o they_o have_v ever_o be_v in_o since_o their_o come_n out_o of_o babylon_n mention_v 4_o type_n the_o number_n seven_o which_o be_v so_o often_o mention_v i_o leave_v these_o and_o many_o other_o type_n which_o may_v be_v find_v to_o insist_v on_o one_o which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v very_o evident_a and_o convince_a it_o be_v that_o which_o may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o it_o will_v be_v grant_v that_o this_o be_v a_o mysterious_a and_o sacred_a number_n and_o that_o it_o signify_v perfection_n it_o be_v on_o this_o account_n it_o be_v mention_v so_o often_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n there_o be_v seven_o church_n seven_o star_n seven_o candlestick_n seven_o spirit_n seven_o lamp_n seven_o eye_n seven_o horn_n of_o the_o lamb_n seven_o plague_n seven_o trumpet_n seven_o thunder_n seven_o viol_n so_o in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n the_o seven_o day_n be_v holy_a and_o the_o seven_o year_n be_v the_o year_n of_o rest_n and_o the_o seven_o time_n seven_o year_n be_v the_o great_a jubilee_n the_o live_a creature_n enter_v into_o the_o ark_n by_o seven_n the_o first-born_a of_o every_o beast_n remain_v seven_o day_n with_o its_o dam_n the_o male_a child_n be_v to_o be_v seven_o day_n old_a before_o they_o be_v circumcise_v the_o candlestick_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n have_v seven_o lamp_n a_o woman_n after_o her_o uncleanness_n a_o leper_n after_o he_o be_v cure_v of_o his_o leprosy_n be_v to_o be_v purify_v for_o seven_o day_n it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o recite_v all_o the_o example_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o may_v be_v mention_v for_o the_o number_n seven_o be_v almost_o every_o where_o to_o be_v find_v for_o what_o reason_n be_v it_o so_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o number_n signify_v completion_n and_o perfection_n and_o of_o what_o can_v it_o signify_v the_o perfection_n if_o not_o of_o the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n that_o for_o which_o all_o his_o other_o work_n be_v wrought_v that_o be_v the_o church_n if_o then_o the_o seven_o the_o be_v every_o where_o sacred_a why_o be_v not_o the_o seven_o period_n reckon_v from_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n also_o sacred_a and_o a_o period_n of_o perfection_n it_o will_v be_v say_v the_o number_n seven_o be_v sacred_a because_o of_o the_o seven_o day_n which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o why_o have_v god_n choose_v the_o seven_o day_n to_o be_v holy_a and_o a_o day_n of_o rest_n for_o man_n be_v it_o not_o plain_o to_o signify_v that_o the_o seven_o day_n or_o the_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v a_o time_n of_o holiness_n tranquillity_n and_o peace_n church_n the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n a_o type_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o church_n the_o seven_o day_n they_o far_o tell_v we_o be_v consecrate_v to_o rest_n and_o holiness_n because_o god_n create_v the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n and_o rest_v on_o the_o seven_o behold_v now_o we_o be_v at_o the_o spring_n head_n and_o can_v rise_v no_o high_o but_o here_o also_o we_o shall_v find_v a_o excellent_a type_n of_o our_o seven_o period_n it_o be_v here_o i_o will_v ask_v with_o boldness_n wherefore_o god_n create_v the_o world_n in_o six_o day_n and_o rest_v on_o the_o seven_o why_o do_v he_o not_o employ_v five_o day_n eight_o ten_o or_o twelve_o in_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n but_o precise_o seven_o certain_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n of_o god_n will_v not_o permit_v that_o he_o shall_v do_v any_o thing_n without_o reason_n here_o be_v this_o reason_n because_o he_o intend_v to_o hold_v the_o church_n in_o a_o imperfect_a state_n for_o six_o period_n of_o time_n labour_v in_o that_o great_a work_n for_o which_o he_o make_v all_o other_o and_o cause_v it_o successive_o to_o pass_v through_o seven_o degree_n we_o must_v not_o say_v that_o the_o sabbath_n the_o seven_o day_n on_o which_o god_n rest_v be_v the_o image_n of_o that_o great_a rest_n into_o which_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v after_o he_o shall_v have_v complete_v it_o upon_o earth_n for_o the_o seven_o period_n ought_v to_o bear_v proportion_n to_o the_o other_o six_o whereas_o eternity_n have_v none_o with_o time_n much_o less_o with_o one_o day_n so_o that_o the_o seven_o period_n can_v be_v the_o eternal_a rest_n it_o must_v be_v a_o time_n that_o bear_v proportion_n to_o the_o six_o precede_a period_n as_o then_o after_o six_o day_n of_o labour_n god_n finish_v his_o work_n by_o a_o day_n to_o which_o he_o affix_v holiness_n and_o rest_n as_o its_o character_n there_o must_v likewise_o be_v for_o the_o church_n after_o six_o day_n of_o sin_n and_o suffering_n one_o last_o day_n that_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o those_o two_o seal_n peace_n and_o holiness_n upon_o earth_n not_o but_o that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v also_o a_o figure_n of_o the_o eternal_a rest_n but_o it_o be_v because_o these_o thousand_o year_n of_o peace_n and_o holiness_n on_o earth_n shall_v be_v the_o image_n of_o that_o perfect_a peace_n and_o holiness_n which_o the_o church_n shall_v enjoy_v in_o heaven_n and_o so_o it_o be_v a_o mediate_a type_n of_o the_o eternal_a rest_n these_o thousand_o year_n i_o confess_v have_v no_o proportion_n with_o eternity_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o type_n in_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o time_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o state_n of_o peace_n and_o holiness_n image_n of_o the_o celestial_a peace_n so_o these_o thousand_o year_n may_v be_v type_n of_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n but_o the_o seven_o day_n can_v not_o be_v the_o immediate_a type_n because_o of_o what_o be_v say_v before_o because_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n be_v a_o period_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o six_o precede_a and_o which_o by_o consequent_a aught_o to_o bear_v proportion_n to_o they_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v these_o supposition_n hut_a difficult_a to_o prove_v they_o but_o i_o have_v a_o sure_a method_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o when_o the_o several_a part_n of_o a_o system_n support_v one_o another_o even_o therein_o they_o be_v prove_v in_o a_o hypothesis_n that_o be_v false_a there_o be_v always_o some_o part_n inconsistent_a with_o itself_o now_o i_o will_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n do_v perfect_o answer_v to_o the_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o church_n that_o in_o every_o one_o of_o those_o day_n such_o work_n be_v wrought_v which_o be_v exact_a emblem_n of_o the_o event_n which_o have_v happen_v and_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v in_o every_o period_n of_o the_o church_n answer_v to_o every_o day_n if_o i_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o in_o the_o six_o period_n of_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v past_a we_o have_v see_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v paint_v out_o by_o the_o six_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n so_o that_o the_o first_o period_n contain_v that_o which_o be_v figure_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o first_o day_n the_o second_o period_n that_o of_o the_o second_o and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n if_o i_o say_v i_o can_v do_v this_o methinks_v it_o will_v then_o be_v prove_v that_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n be_v the_o image_n of_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o our_o seven_o period_n of_o the_o church_n the_o part_n of_o this_o system_n do_v admirable_o support_v one_o
abraham_n it_o begin_v to_o assume_v a_o new_a form_n she_o have_v then_o sacrament_n and_o the_o distinction_n of_o people_n begin_v by_o moses_n the_o church_n take_v another_o form_n quite_o different_a from_o the_o precede_a by_o christ_n she_o become_v incomparable_o more_o perfect_a by_o the_o rise_n and_o growth_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n be_v entire_o change_v by_o antichrist_n be_v at_o the_o height_n the_o corruption_n be_v also_o at_o the_o high_a and_o at_o length_n by_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n she_o must_v put_v on_o another_o face_n this_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o seven_o period_n answer_v to_o the_o seven_o day_n we_o must_v observe_v in_o every_o of_o those_o period_n such_o event_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o answer_v to_o the_o several_a work_n of_o the_o creation_n do_v on_o every_o day_n so_o that_o what_o be_v make_v on_o the_o first_o day_n may_v resemble_v that_o which_o happen_v in_o the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o which_o be_v do_v on_o the_o second_o day_n be_v the_o image_n of_o what_o happen_v in_o the_o second_o period_n and_o so_o of_o the_o follow_v if_o we_o find_v a_o perfect_a correspondence_n between_o the_o copy_n and_o the_o original_a between_o the_o type_n and_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o pretend_v be_v represent_v by_o they_o we_o shall_v have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v some_o what_o more_o than_o a_o sport_n of_o wit_n or_o the_o effect_n of_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n which_o be_v the_o next_o thing_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v chap._n xxi_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o mystery_n signify_v by_o the_o chaos_n by_o the_o creation_n of_o light_n by_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o water_n and_o by_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o plant_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o the_o three_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n i_o intend_v not_o to_o stay_v long_o upon_o what_o be_v well_o know_v and_o have_v be_v say_v already_o and_o therefore_o shall_v speak_v but_o little_a of_o the_o chaos_n we_o see_v plain_o that_o this_o confuse_a mass_n without_o form_n and_o void_a which_o be_v proper_o nothing_o but_o a_o vast_a abyss_n cover_v with_o darkness_n be_v the_o image_n of_o that_o sad_a estate_n to_o which_o sin_n have_v reduce_v the_o world._n it_o be_v without_o form_n spoil_v and_o deface_v by_o sin_n for_o it_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o beauty_n it_o way_n confuse_a for_o every_o thing_n there_o be_v in_o disorder_n that_o which_o shall_v have_v be_v above_o be_v below_o god_n be_v blaspheme_v instead_o of_o be_v worship_v and_o self-love_n have_v place_v the_o creature_n on_o the_o throne_n of_o god._n it_o be_v empty_a and_o void_a for_o nothing_o that_o be_v good_a can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o world._n it_o be_v cover_v with_o darkness_n for_o a_o stupid_a ignorance_n may_v be_v observe_v to_o reign_v there_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n out_o of_o which_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v draw_v as_o a_o new_a world_n god_n be_v doubtless_o the_o creator_n of_o unshape_a mass_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o we_o have_v a_o account_n of_o its_o creation_n in_o the_o first_o verse_n in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o as_o be_v common_o think_v a_o abridgement_n of_o what_o be_v more_o ample_o and_o by_o particular_n relate_v afterward_o it_o be_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o chaos_n call_v heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o it_o possess_v that_o place_n which_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n now_o do_v possess_v and_o because_o it_o contain_v the_o matter_n of_o they_o this_o be_v plain_a enough_o by_o the_o second_o verse_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v without_o form_n and_o void_a etc._n etc._n it_o be_v the_o description_n exact_o of_o that_o earth_n which_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o first_o verse_n chaos_n why_o it_o be_v not_o say_v express_o that_o god_n create_v the_o chaos_n nevertheless_o though_o god_n create_v the_o chaos_n it_o be_v but_o implicit_o say_v so_o for_o moses_n say_v not_o that_o god_n make_v the_o earth_n without_o form_n and_o void_a which_o may_v import_v that_o though_o god_n do_v govern_v that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o wicked_a world_n and_o that_o enormous_a mass_n be_v not_o form_v without_o his_o providence_n nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o author_n of_o it_o because_o he_o be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o evil._n god_n appoint_v no_o certain_a day_n to_o this_o chaos_n which_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o corrupt_a world._n 1._o because_o this_o chaos_n have_v its_o reign_n and_o extension_n during_o the_o whole_a six_o day_n of_o the_o spiritual_a creation_n day_n why_o the_o chaos_n have_v no_o assign_a day_n for_o it_o be_v the_o perpetual_a fund_z whence_o god_n draw_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o intelligible_a world_n which_o be_v his_o church_n as_o the_o chaos_n be_v the_o fund_z from_o whence_o by_o little_a and_o little_a god_n draw_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o universe_n 2._o god_n assign_v it_o no_o particular_a day_n because_o it_o be_v the_o empire_n or_o darkness_n into_o which_o the_o light_n and_o the_o day_n can_v enter_v he_o produce_v not_o the_o chaos_n by_o a_o fiat_n say_v let_v there_o be_v a_o chaos_n as_o he_o create_v the_o light_n because_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o make_v the_o wicked_a world_n by_o its_o efficacy_n this_o world_n produce_v itself_o by_o its_o own_o corruption_n last_o he_o give_v it_o not_o his_o approbation_n he_o say_v not_o and_o god_n see_v that_o it_o be_v good_a he_o bless_v it_o not_o as_o he_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o six_o day_n because_o god_n see_v nothing_o good_a in_o the_o carnal_a world_n instead_o of_o blessing_n it_o it_o be_v under_o his_o curse_n people_n water_n in_o all_o the_o type_n of_o the_o creation_n signify_v people_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v upon_o the_o water_n water_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o type_n do_v signify_v people_n this_o we_o have_v observe_v before_o and_o be_v too_o well_o know_v to_o need_v to_o be_v prove_v this_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o water_n signify_v people_n in_o all_o the_o type_n of_o the_o creation_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n move_v on_o the_o water_n of_o the_o chaos_n to_o prepare_v that_o matter_n to_o bruise_v and_o reduce_v it_o into_o little_a part_n and_o to_o introduce_v the_o disposition_n to_o receive_v that_o form_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o give_v it_o god_n intend_v to_o draw_v his_o church_n out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o from_o among_o the_o nation_n have_v preside_v over_o they_o by_o a_o wise_a providence_n water_n what_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o spirit_n move_v on_o the_o water_n if_o he_o have_v entire_o abandon_v the_o world_n to_o itself_o after_o the_o entrance_n of_o sin_n it_o have_v be_v impossible_a to_o draw_v thence_o the_o intelligible_a world._n it_o will_v have_v fall_v into_o a_o total_a deprivation_n of_o light_n equity_n and_o goodness_n and_o into_o that_o spirit_n which_o the_o scripture_n call_v a_o spirit_n of_o slumber_n past_a feeling_n and_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v preside_v over_o these_o water_n he_o have_v preserve_v and_o keep_v up_o in_o the_o world_n some_o fragment_n and_o remainder_n of_o light_n conviction_n conscience_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o distinction_n of_o right_n and_o wrong_n and_o the_o apprehension_n of_o future_a reward_n and_o punishment_n we_o may_v see_v every_o where_o this_o motion_n this_o action_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n on_o the_o water_n that_o be_v the_o people_n of_o the_o world_n even_o to_o the_o approach_n of_o the_o four_o period_n which_o be_v that_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n god_n be_v then_o about_o to_o give_v a_o form_n to_o the_o church_n to_o this_o intelligible_a world_n which_o proper_o speak_v it_o never_o yet_o have_v then_o he_o cause_v in_o the_o world_n such_o thing_n as_o will_v dispose_v to_o this_o great_a work_n he_o prepare_v his_o matter_n by_o the_o study_n of_o philosophy_n which_o draw_v man_n from_o that_o stupidity_n that_o before_o render_v they_o uncapable_a of_o receive_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n he_o disperse_v the_o jew_n who_o carry_v every_o where_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o make_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o proselyte_n he_o cause_v the_o bible_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o greek_a tongue_n which_o then_o spread_v and_o prevail_v in_o the_o world_n and_o guide_v the_o heathen_a insensible_o to_o a_o dislike_n of_o their_o idol_n and_o their_o religion_n this_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o chaos_n creation_n the_o mystery_n of_o ●he_n first_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n in_o
and_o his_o follower_n the_o other_o sort_n of_o creature_n be_v fish_n creature_n that_o make_v their_o abode_n in_o the_o water_n that_o swim_v and_o descend_v into_o the_o deep_a creature_n among_o who_o there_o be_v some_o of_o a_o monstrous_a bigness_n creature_n that_o live_v upon_o filth_n and_o mud_n and_o be_v the_o lively_a image_n of_o the_o second_o sort_n of_o people_n to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o five_o period_n which_o be_v that_o of_o antichrist_n rise_v and_o grow_v to_o perfection_n we_o there_o see_v the_o great_a leviathan_n of_o the_o abyss_n antichrist_n himself_o the_o monster_n of_o the_o great_a water_n who_o devour_v all_o the_o other_o fish_n and_o subject_n they_o to_o his_o government_n there_o we_o see_v all_o the_o follower_n of_o antichrist_n fish_n of_o the_o second_o order_n all_o these_o creature_n i._n e._n all_o these_o man_n 1._o have_v their_o abode_n in_o the_o water_n which_o denote_v a_o collection_n of_o much_o people_n they_o have_v the_o multitude_n on_o their_o side_n they_o reckon_v it_o their_o honour_n they_o glory_v in_o it_o 2._o they_o descend_v into_o dark_a abysses_n for_o whereas_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o four_o and_o five_o century_n will_v be_v too_o know_v those_o of_o the_o follow_a age_n fall_v into_o a_o most_o stupid_a ignorance_n they_o descend_v into_o the_o darkness_n of_o superstition_n and_o as_o for_o the_o most_o part_n fish_n adhere_v to_o the_o rock_n or_o to_o the_o mud_n so_o those_o false_a doctor_n addict_v themselves_o to_o creature_n and_o rise_v not_o towards_o heaven_n where_o be_v the_o creator_n in_o those_o time_n spring_v up_o the_o adoration_n of_o relic_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o even_o the_o sublime_a wit_n who_o be_v the_o bird_n of_o the_o five_o period_n who_o fly_v so_o high_a by_o their_o lofty_a speculation_n as_o do_v gregory_n of_o nazianzen_n and_o ambrose_n of_o milan_n do_v sometime_o fall_v from_o their_o elevation_n into_o the_o mire_n of_o a_o carnal_a and_o superstitious_a worship_n as_o eagle_n after_o a_o flight_n into_o the_o high_a region_n of_o the_o air_n fall_v down_o as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o moment_n to_o fix_v upon_o carrion_n last_o fish_n puddle_n and_o roll_n themselves_o in_o the_o mud_n and_o slime_n a_o good_a emblem_n of_o that_o dreadful_a corruption_n into_o which_o the_o last_o age_n of_o this_o five_o period_n be_v plunge_v viz._n the_o nine_o and_o ten_o we_o have_v already_o speak_v of_o that_o corruption_n and_o you_o need_v but_o look_v back_o to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v to_o perceive_v how_o just_o we_o may_v compare_v the_o man_n of_o those_o time_n to_o fish_n that_o live_v in_o mire_n and_o dirt_n some_o will_v doubtless_o make_v a_o objection_n here_o on_o this_o account_n that_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o bird_n and_o fish_n which_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n for_o in_o the_o thing_n represent_v by_o the_o type_n because_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o heresy_n idolatry_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o papacy_n i_o may_v reply_v that_o no_o typical_a relation_n ought_v to_o hinder_v but_o that_o god_n may_v be_v say_v the_o author_n of_o and_o give_v his_o blessing_n to_o those_o creature_n which_o be_v good_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o natural_a be_v he_o do_v not_o bless_v the_o chaos_n it_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v because_o that_o in_o its_o natural_a be_v it_o be_v neither_o fair_a nor_o good_a no_o more_o than_o in_o its_o typical_a relation_n but_o if_o any_o will_n that_o the_o mystery_n be_v carry_v far_o it_o may_v be_v observe_v that_o god_n say_v let_v the_o water_n bring_v forth_o every_o move_a creature_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v the_o water_n that_o immediate_o produce'em_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n as_o he_o say_v before_o let_v the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o plant_n for_o this_o end_n that_o god_n will_v our_o work_n shall_v be_v reckon_v as_o our_o own_o that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o they_o so_o the_o water_n i._n e._n the_o multitude_n of_o degenerate_a mankind_n be_v say_v to_o produce_v those_o corruption_n and_o false_a doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v suffer_v the_o punishment_n annex_v to_o they_o and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v impute_v unto_o god._n but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o god_n bless_v these_o work_n he_o see_v that_o it_o be_v good_a once_o more_o i_o may_v ask_v why_o shall_v not_o god_n approve_v those_o creature_n which_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v good_a and_o which_o be_v typical_o to_o represent_v such_o event_n as_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n will_v appoint_v for_o his_o own_o glory_n for_o doubtless_o the_o false_a teacher_n who_o corrupt_v the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o five_o century_n must_v come_v within_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n as_o such_o thing_n whereby_o he_o will_v glorify_v himself_o day_n mystery_n of_o the_o six_o day_n in_o the_o six_o day_n god_n make_v two_o work_n 1._o infect_v creep_v thing_n and_o fourfooted_a beast_n 2._o the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n this_o six_o day_n answer_v to_o the_o six_o period_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o ten_o century_n to_o the_o period_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n these_o fourfooted_a beast_n infect_v and_o creep_v thing_n can_v be_v think_v to_o signify_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a under_o creep_v thing_n be_v comprehend_v serpent_n venomous_a and_o the_o most_o accurse_a creature_n among_o infect_v be_v caterpillar_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o hurtful_a creature_n among_o fourfooted_a beast_n be_v wolf_n lion_n tiger_n leopard_n and_o bear_n all_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a creature_n which_o live_v upon_o prey_n this_o be_v the_o true_a character_n of_o the_o man_n who_o live_v in_o the_o six_o period_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o second_o of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n there_o we_o meet_v with_o man_n like_o bloodsucker_n caterpillar_n worm_n devour_a infect_v that_o ravage_v and_o consume_v and_o destroy_v and_o gratify_v their_o covetousness_n by_o a_o curse_a simony_n there_o we_o meet_v with_o doctor_n like_o serpent_n and_o basilick_n who_o poison_n by_o their_o very_a breath_n and_o spread_v the_o venom_n of_o their_o false_a doctrine_n with_o pierce_v sharpen_a tongue_n i_o mean_v the_o schoolman_n who_o with_o subtle_a argument_n whet_v and_o set_v in_o order_n as_o so_o many_o dart_n and_o spear_n diffuse_v heresy_n impurity_n poison_n and_o idolatry_n moreover_o we_o there_o meet_v with_o wild_a beast_n bloody_a and_o cruel_a man_n who_o delight_n in_o blood_n and_o slaughter_n and_o glut_v themselves_o therewith_o as_o so_o many_o lion_n and_o tiger_n we_o may_v there_o see_v multitude_n engage_v in_o a_o holy_a war_n against_o infidel_n who_o go_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n to_o conquer_v it_o but_o carry_v with_o they_o the_o lion_n tooth_n for_o they_o rend_v and_o devour_v every_o thing_n which_o come_v in_o their_o way_n especial_o may_v we_o there_o take_v notice_n of_o those_o cruel_a persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n kill_v burn_a and_o commit_v outrage_n and_o massacre_n in_o all_o place_n this_o shall_v be_v careful_o observe_v that_o we_o meet_v with_o bird_n and_o fish_n in_o the_o five_o day_n answer_v to_o the_o first_o period_n of_o antichrist_n or_o the_o five_o of_o the_o church_n and_o some_o of_o those_o creature_n live_v upon_o the_o spoil_n but_o do_v not_o prey_v upon_o man._n we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o bird_n and_o fish_n go_v out_o of_o their_o own_o element_n to_o fall_v upon_o man_n and_o destroy_v they_o so_o in_o the_o five_o period_n there_o be_v it_o be_v true_a some_o heretic_n and_o a_o great_a corruption_n but_o there_o be_v not_o much_o persecution_n little_a blood_n spill_v at_o that_o time_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n that_o sort_n of_o rage_n begin_v not_o to_o be_v much_o employ_v but_o since_o the_o eleven_o century_n in_o the_o six_o period_n woman_n mystery_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o the_o same_o day_n god_n create_v the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o church_n his_o spouse_n the_o parallel_n between_o the_o first_o and_o second_o adam_n and_o between_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o church_n have_v be_v make_v so_o often_o and_o be_v so_o easy_a to_o make_v that_o i_o need_v not_o dwell_v upon_o it_o and_o therefore_o shall_v only_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o type_n do_v exact_o correspond_v with_o the_o mystery_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o day_n god_n finish_v his_o work_n he_o then_o give_v the_o last_o stroke_n to_o it_o by_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o man_n and_o the_o woman_n a_o emblem_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o of_o their_o union_n
in_o the_o six_o period_n near_o the_o end_n whereof_o we_o now_o be_v god_n will_v complete_a his_o church_n by_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n and_o bring_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n to_o its_o perfection_n this_o shall_v be_v well_o remember_v that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o type_n of_o the_o creation_n appear_v under_o four_o emblem_n 1._o as_o the_o earth_n bury_v and_o cover_v under_o water_n 2._o as_o a_o dry_a land_n above_o the_o water_n and_o bear_v fruit_n 3._o as_o a_o moon_n enlighten_v by_o the_o sun._n 4._o and_o last_o as_o the_o woman_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n appear_v there_o under_o three_o emblem_n 1._o as_o the_o light_n of_o the_o first_o day_n without_o or_o before_o the_o sun._n 2._o as_o the_o sun._n 3._o under_o the_o emblem_n of_o the_o man._n the_o church_n in_o her_o first_o state_n before_o the_o law_n be_v as_o the_o earth_n under_o water_n she_o be_v obscure_a and_o as_o it_o be_v bury_v among_o the_o nation_n in_o her_o second_o state_n under_o the_o law_n she_o be_v as_o a_o discover_a land_n distinguish_v and_o know_v and_o bear_v fruit_n but_o yet_o she_o be_v but_o earth_n i._n e._n not_o very_o considerable_a in_o her_o three_o state_n under_o the_o gospel_n she_o appear_v as_o a_o moon_n a_o rival_n of_o the_o sun_n imitate_v his_o light_n and_o therein_o she_o be_v more_o glorious_a than_o the_o earth_n this_o be_v the_o apostolical_a church_n so_o glorious_a and_o full_a of_o knowledge_n in_o the_o four_o state_n she_o appear_v as_o the_o woman_n take_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o adam_n close_o unite_v with_o he_o be_v one_o body_n and_o one_o flesh_n it_o be_v in_o the_o last_o period_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v more_o unite_v to_o christ_n than_o before_o in_o the_o four_o period_n she_o be_v as_o the_o moon_n and_o notwithstanding_o the_o near_a approach_n of_o the_o sun_n there_o remain_v vast_a distance_n between_o they_o but_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o period_n and_o throughout_o the_o seven_o her_o union_n unto_o christ_n shall_v be_v immediate_a and_o intimate_a as_o that_o of_o a_o wife_n with_o her_o husband_n therefore_o the_o church_n in_o this_o seven_o period_n be_v represent_v as_o a_o spouse_n which_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o lamb._n on_o the_o other_o hand_n jesus_n christ_n appear_v under_o three_o emblem_n in_o the_o four_o period_n as_o a_o sun_n which_o scatter_v the_o darkness_n of_o idolatry_n paganism_n and_o ignorance_n that_o cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o sun_n be_v place_v in_o the_o four_o point_n just_a in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o seven_o to_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o the_o church_n the_o sun_n which_o give_v light_n before_o and_o behind_o to_o the_o precede_a age_n and_o to_o those_o which_o follow_v he_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o period_n and_o throughout_o the_o seven_o he_o be_v a_o man_n to_o who_o god_n give_v dominion_n over_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o creep_a thing_n and_o fourfooted_a beast_n i._n e._n that_o christ_n in_o this_o last_o period_n shall_v be_v lord_n and_o king_n who_o shall_v rule_v over_o the_o bird_n tame_v the_o bold_a and_o most_o aspire_a spirit_n who_o mount_v even_o unto_o the_o heaven_n he_o shall_v humble_v they_o and_o keep_v they_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o duty_n over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n to_o deliver'em_v from_o their_o corruption_n over_o creep_v thing_n to_o destroy_v the_o influence_n of_o their_o poison_n over_o wild_a beast_n to_o tame_v their_o fierceness_n and_o render_v they_o meek_a as_o lamb_n in_o the_o first_o day_n jesus_n christ_n be_v figure_v but_o by_o a_o dim_a light_n because_o in_o the_o first_o period_n of_o the_o church_n he_o vouchsafe_v she_o but_o a_o very_a imperfect_a knowledge_n of_o himself_o this_o methinks_v be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o six_o day_n which_o way_n well_o serve_v as_o a_o favourable_a omen_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o seven_o day_n creation_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n of_o the_o creation_n because_o every_o thing_n therein_o seem_v to_o accord_v well_o what_o then_o be_v want_v to_o the_o world_n after_o the_o work_n of_o the_o six_o day_n to_o render_v it_o perfect_a holiness_n and_o rest_n and_o these_o be_v the_o two_o thing_n which_o god_n add_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n holiness_n for_o he_o sanctify_v the_o seven_o day_n and_o thereby_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world._n rest_v for_o till_o then_o god_n have_v be_v at_o work_n and_o the_o world_n in_o motion_n now_o god_n give_v the_o world_n that_o rest_v which_o it_o want_v in_o that_o he_o himself_o rest_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n all_o this_o be_v a_o admirable_a emblem_n of_o our_o seven_o period_n for_o the_o sake_n whereof_o all_o this_o explication_n of_o the_o type_n of_o the_o world_n creation_n have_v be_v give_v during_o the_o six_o day_n god_n make_v the_o church_n to_o pass_v through_o several_a change_n he_o will_v bring_v it_o to_o perfection_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o by_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o by_o the_o conversion_n of_o all_o nation_n what_o then_o be_v want_v to_o it_o rest_v and_o holiness_n rest_v for_o hitherto_o she_o have_v always_o be_v in_o toil_n and_o travel_n holiness_n for_o she_o have_v always_o be_v imperfect_a we_o must_v therefore_o look_v for_o a_o seven_o period_n which_o shall_v be_v a_o kingdom_n of_o rest_n and_o holiness_n wherein_o the_o church_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v persecute_v either_o by_o fire_n and_o sword_n or_o by_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n wherein_o also_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o plentiful_a effusion_n of_o the_o h._n spirit_n to_o produce_v a_o great_a degree_n of_o holiness_n and_o sanctification_n among_o man_n earth_n this_o mystery_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v upon_o earth_n we_o must_v not_o say_v that_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o this_o type_n will_v be_v find_v in_o heaven_n where_o be_v rest_n and_o holiness_n and_o that_o therein_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n i_o say_v again_o that_o can_v be_v mean_v because_o this_o seven_o period_n must_v be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_a and_o order_n with_o the_o other_o six_o we_o even_o now_o observe_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v create_v on_o the_o four_o day_n there_o be_v three_o day_n before_o and_o three_o after_o exact_o in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o seven_o to_o signify_v that_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n be_v the_o centre_n of_o the_o intelligible_a world._n if_o he_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n he_o must_v certain_o have_v a_o equal_a reference_n to_o all_o the_o point_n of_o that_o circumference_n now_o what_o relation_n can_v he_o have_v to_o the_o seven_o day_n if_o eternity_n be_v mean_v by_o it_o in_o that_o eternal_a abode_n christ_n shall_v have_v no_o more_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o centre_n a_o sun_n and_o a_o king._n for_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o that_o then_o god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o christ_n shall_v deliver_v up_o the_o kingdom_n again_o to_o his_o father_n moreover_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o proportion_n between_o the_o seven_o period_n and_o the_o six_o foregoing_a one_o now_o there_o be_v none_o between_o eternity_n and_o the_o duration_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n and_o last_o i_o be_o bold_a to_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a type_n be_v not_o establish_v by_o god_n immediate_o to_o figure_v heavenly_a thing_n but_o only_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o this_o world_n under_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n you_o can_v show_v i_o any_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a type_n which_o have_v a_o immediate_a relation_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n the_o marriage_n of_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v the_o immediate_a type_n of_o the_o union_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o grace_n it_o do_v only_o mediate_o typify_v their_o union_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n by_o consequence_n this_o seven_o day_n which_o all_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v typical_a must_v have_v its_o immediate_a relation_n not_o to_o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o church_n in_o heaven_n but_o to_o its_o state_n of_o rest_n upon_o earth_n chap._n xxiii_o a_o far_a confirmation_n of_o the_o future_a prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n the_o 21_o and_o 22._o chap._n of_o the_o apocalypse_n interpret_v that_o in_o those_o chapter_n the_o church_n be_v describe_v as_o victorious_a upon_o earth_n and_o not_o as_o triumphant_a in_o heaven_n we_o may_v not_o pass_v from_o the_o apocalypse_v without_o say_v somewhat_o concern_v the_o last_o chapter_n if_o we_o need_v another_o head_n of_o argument_n to_o
prove_v our_o notion_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o the_o triumphant_a state_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n before_o its_o final_a glorious_a triumph_n in_o heaven_n we_o may_v be_v furnish_v from_o these_o last_o chapter_n for_o they_o be_v not_o as_o be_v common_o suppose_v a_o description_n of_o the_o church_n in_o heaven_n apocalypse_n the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o nine_o last_o chapter_n of_o ezekiel_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o last_o chapt._n of_o the_o apocalypse_n they_o exact_o answer_v to_o the_o nine_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o ezekiel_n that_o prophet_n in_o those_o nine_o last_o chapter_n set_v forth_o in_o a_o figurative_a manner_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n after_o its_o restoration_n their_o glorious_a kingdom_n and_o the_o wonderful_a peace_n they_o shall_v enjoy_v after_o their_o return_n which_o return_n or_o recall_v be_v to_o be_v after_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n st._n john_n give_v a_o account_n what_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v after_o with_o relation_n to_o that_o fall_n after_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v accomplish_v so_o that_o both_o these_o prophet_n describe_v the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o same_o period_n and_o the_o same_o condition_n this_o will_v easy_o appear_v if_o we_o brief_o run_v over_o that_o which_o remain_v of_o the_o apocalypse_n it_o can_v be_v question_v but_o that_o our_o prophet_n conclude_v the_o 20_o chapter_n with_o a_o description_n of_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o war_n of_o gog_n and_o magog_n follow_v upon_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n to_o the_o revolt_n of_o gog_n and_o magog_n succeed_v their_o defeat_n after_o their_o defeat_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o last_o day_n which_o shall_v come_v and_o surprise_v the_o world_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n this_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o word_n v._n 11._o 20._o chap._n 20._o then_o i_o see_v a_o great_a white_a throne_n and_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o it_o from_o who_o face_n the_o earth_n and_o heaven_n flee_v way_n and_o there_o be_v find_v no_o place_n for_o they_o white_a as_o well_o as_o purple_a be_v a_o royal_a colour_n and_o withal_o a_o priestly_a for_o the_o priest_n be_v clothe_v in_o white_a the_o holy_a priest_n garment_n on_o the_o day_n of_o expiation_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v call_v bigdei_n lavan_n white_a garment_n in_o like_a manner_n he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n be_v our_o king_n and_o priest_n the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n flee_v from_o his_o face_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v burn_v that_o they_o may_v be_v renew_v v._o 12._o and_o i_o see_v the_o dead_a small_a and_o great_a stand_n before_o god_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o description_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n all_o this_o be_v plain_a the_o 21._o 1._o v._o 1._o chapter_n begin_v with_o these_o word_n and_o i_o see_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n for_o the_o first_o heaven_n and_o the_o first_o earth_n be_v pass_v away_o world_n the_o first_o vision_n of_o 21_o chapt._n to_o the_o 9th_o v._n respect_v that_o which_o follow_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n these_o word_n do_v evident_o allude_v to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v just_a before_o and_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n flee_v away_o as_o that_o be_v interpret_v of_o what_o shall_v happen_v at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o these_o new_a heaven_n and_o this_o new_a earth_n must_v be_v understand_v in_o a_o literal_a and_o not_o a_o figurative_a sense_n for_o the_o new_a world_n after_o it_o have_v be_v refine_v by_o fire_n and_o so_o the_o description_n we_o read_v of_o here_o even_o to_o the_o nine_o verse_n be_v that_o of_o eternal_a reward_n and_o punishment_n it_o be_v true_a that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o h._n city_n 4._o v._o 3_o 4._o of_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n prepare_v as_o a_o bride_n adorn_v for_o her_o husband_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n with_o man_n of_o his_o dwell_n with_o they_o and_o they_o with_o he_o and_o that_o god_n shall_v wipe_v away_o all_o tear_n from_o their_o eye_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o death_n or_o sorrow_n or_o cry_v or_o pain_n all_o this_o i_o say_v may_v very_o well_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n as_o victorious_a upon_o earth_n but_o this_o description_n be_v determine_v by_o what_o precede_v and_o by_o what_o follow_v to_o eternal_a glory_n by_o that_o which_o precede_v which_o be_v the_o description_n of_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v which_o be_v the_o description_n of_o everlasting_a punishment_n but_o the_o fearful_a and_o unbelieving_a etc._n etc._n 8._o v._o 8._o shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o lake_n which_o burn_v with_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n vision_n the_o 9th_o v._o begin_v a_o new_a vision_n the_o nine_o verse_n begin_v a_o new_a vision_n and_o a_o more_o particular_a description_n of_o the_o bless_a reign_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o h._n spirit_n after_o he_o have_v in_o the_o 13_o chapter_n give_v a_o enigmatical_a and_o general_a description_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n under_o the_o image_n of_o the_o two_o beast_n give_v a_o more_o ample_a account_n of_o it_o in_o the_o 17_o chapt._n so_o have_v in_o the_o 20_o chapt._n describe_v the_o reign_n of_o christ_n though_o in_o few_o word_n he_o set_v forth_o that_o reign_n more_o at_o length_n afterward_o that_o state_n of_o the_o deliver_v church_n under_o the_o image_n of_o a_o great_a city_n call_v jerusalem_n as_o after_o have_v set_v out_o the_o antichristian_a church_n under_o the_o image_n of_o a_o beast_n and_o of_o a_o empire_n he_o represent_v it_o under_o the_o emblem_n of_o a_o great_a city_n call_v babylon_n v._o 9_o and_o there_o come_v unto_o i_o one_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n which_o have_v the_o seven_o viol_n full_a of_o the_o seven_o last_o plague_n and_o talk_v with_o i_o say_v come_v hither_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o bride_n the_o lamb_n wife_n it_o be_v in_o all_o likelihood_n the_o last_o of_o those_o seven_o angel_n who_o have_v pour_v out_o the_o viol_n and_o the_o same_o who_o show_v unto_o the_o prophet_n the_o great_a city_n the_o mother_n of_o fornication_n 17.1_o cha._n 17.1_o then_o come_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o angel_n unto_o i_o which_o have_v the_o seven_o viol_n and_o talk_v with_o i_o say_v come_v hither_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n that_o sit_v on_o many_o water_n as_o it_o be_v this_o seven_o and_o last_o angel_n who_o have_v the_o viol_n by_o who_o the_o ruin_n of_o antichrist_n be_v effect_v it_o do_v most_o proper_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o show_v babylon_n fall_v and_o jerusalem_n rebuilt_a v._o 10._o and_o he_o carry_v i_o away_o in_o the_o spirit_n to_o a_o great_a and_o high_a mountain_n and_o show_v i_o that_o great_a city_n the_o holy_a jerusalem_n descend_v out_o of_o heaven_n from_o god._n this_o be_v somewhat_o like_o what_o the_o devil_n do_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o carry_v he_o up_o into_o a_o high_a mountain_n and_o show_v he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n what_o the_o devil_n make_v appear_v by_o illusion_n st._n john_n see_v by_o vision_n that_o he_o be_v carry_v or_o seem_v to_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o a_o high_a mountain_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v to_o be_v make_v see_v from_o thence_o be_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o not_o the_o triumphant_a church_n in_o heaven_n though_o it_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a jerusalem_n descend_v out_o of_o heaven_n from_o god._n she_o shall_v be_v descend_v from_o heaven_n because_o she_o shall_v abound_v in_o grace_n which_o come_v from_o thence_o she_o be_v call_v the_o great_a city_n and_o it_o be_v the_o first_o time_n she_o be_v so_o call_v it_o be_v a_o detestable_a name_n which_o in_o all_o the_o precede_a prophecy_n be_v give_v only_o to_o spiritual_a babylon_n but_o it_o be_v on_o this_o account_n that_o then_o the_o church_n shall_v possess_v the_o multitude_n of_o the_o nation_n as_o antichristianism_n do_v at_o present_a v._o 11._o have_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o her_o light_n wus_fw-mi like_o unto_o a_o stone_n most_o precious_a even_o like_o a_o jasper_n stone_n clear_a as_o crystal_n v._o 12._o and_o have_v a_o wall_n great_a and_o high_a and_o have_v twelve_o gate_n and_o at_o the_o gate_n twelve_o angel_n and_o name_n write_v thereon_o which_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n v._o 13._o
of_o the_o gospel_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n this_o gospel_n be_v the_o pearl_n of_o great_a price_n which_o when_o one_o have_v find_v he_o go_v his_o way_n and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o purchase_v it_o this_o be_v the_o treasure_n of_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v we_o have_v this_o treasure_n in_o earthen_a vessel_n the_o apostle_n with_o evangelical_n truth_n in_o their_o breast_n be_v the_o 12_o foundation_n the_o 12_o gate_n and_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n they_o be_v every_o thing_n with_o this_o for_o truth_n be_v every_o thing_n and_o without_o it_o they_o be_v nothing_o v._o 22._o and_o i_o see_v no_o temple_n therein_o for_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a and_o the_o lamb_n be_v its_o temple_n this_o must_v be_v understand_v as_o the_o word_n of_o another_o prophet_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o period_n say_v every_o man_n shall_v not_o teach_v his_o neighbour_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n which_o do_v not_o import_v that_o the_o ministry_n shall_v be_v abolish_v but_o that_o the_o increase_n of_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v so_o great_a that_o ordinary_a man_n may_v rather_o be_v teacher_n than_o need_v to_o be_v teach_v doubtless_o there_o shall_v be_v temple_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o place_n set_v a_o part_n for_o public_a worship_n but_o it_o shall_v hardly_o be_v necessary_a to_o distinguish_v place_n for_o divine_a service_n because_o god_n shall_v be_v every_o where_o serve_v in_o perfection_n the_o lord_n and_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v its_o temple_n god_n shall_v dwell_v in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o god_n the_o union_n of_o holy_a soul_n with_o god_n shall_v be_v most_o intimate_a and_o reciprocal_a v._o 23._o and_o the_o city_n have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sun_n nor_o of_o the_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v lighten_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o light_n thereof_o here_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n do_v signify_v create_v light_n which_o cause_n a_o succession_n of_o day_n and_o night_n and_o these_o luminary_n be_v emblem_n of_o the_o manner_n wherein_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n be_v now_o dispense_v there_o be_v now_o a_o mixture_n of_o light_n and_o darkness_n of_o day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o same_o church_n and_o in_o the_o same_o soul_n it_o shall_v no_o more_o be_v thus_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o seven_o period_n the_o air_n of_o that_o church_n shall_v be_v always_o full_a of_o light._n god_n shall_v abundant_o impart_v knowledge_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o a_o more_o immediate_a manner_n without_o any_o create_a luminary_n v._o 24._o and_o the_o nation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v save_v shall_v walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o it_o and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v bring_v their_o glory_n and_o honour_n into_o it_o v._o 25._o and_o its_o gate_n shall_v not_o at_o all_o be_v shut_v by_o day_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o night_n there_o v._o 26._o and_o they_o shall_v bring_v the_o glory_n and_o honour_n of_o the_o nation_n into_o it_o v._o 27._o and_o there_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_n enter_v into_o it_o any_o thing_n that_o defile_v or_o that_o work_v abomination_n and_o a_o lie_n but_o they_o who_o be_v write_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n of_o life_n here_o be_v the_o perfect_a and_o complete_a call_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o shall_v join_v themselves_o with_o the_o convert_a jew_n to_o compose_v this_o glorious_a church_n the_o holy_a ghost_n seem_v to_o intimate_v as_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v none_o but_o the_o elect_n and_o no_o reprobate_n at_o least_o if_o there_o be_v any_o hypocrite_n that_o their_o number_n shall_v be_v so_o small_a as_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v count_v then_o he_o show_v i_o a_o pure_a river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n clear_a as_o crystal_n proceed_v out_o of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o lamb._n it_o be_v so_o well_o know_v that_o water_n in_o the_o scripture_n stile_n signify_v grace_n and_o the_o divine_a spirit_n that_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o remark_n it_o ho_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v come_v to_o the_o water_n out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v live_v water_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o shall_v receive_v who_o believe_v on_o he_o so_o that_o the_o river_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n be_v that_o vital_a spring_n of_o spirit_n and_o grace_n which_o god_n will_v most_o plentiful_o dispense_v to_o this_o church_n it_o be_v the_o same_o river_n which_o the_o prophet_n ezekiel_n see_v come_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n 47._o chap._n 47._o at_o first_o it_o be_v no_o high_a than_o the_o anckel_v but_o by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o increase_n be_v such_o that_o you_o must_v be_v oblige_v to_o swim_v to_o pass_v over_o it_o it_o be_v the_o emblem_n of_o that_o measure_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v always_o progressive_a and_o in_o thesis_n last_v and_o happy_a day_n shall_v flow_v as_o the_o sea._n v._o 2._o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o street_n of_o it_o and_o of_o either_o side_n of_o the_o river_n be_v there_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o bear_v twelve_o manner_n of_o fruit_n and_o yield_v her_o fruit_n every_o month_n and_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n this_o be_v almost_o copy_v from_o ezekiel_n so_o that_o we_o may_v see_v it_o describe_v the_o same_o thing_n ezekiel_n say_v that_o on_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o river_n be_v very_o many_o tree_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o other_o fruit_n tree_n who_o leaf_n shall_v not_o fade_v neither_o shall_v the_o fruit_n thereof_o be_v consume_v it_o shall_v bring_v forth_o new_a fruit_n every_o month_n this_o far_a denote_v grace_n which_o be_v our_o meat_n and_o drink_n to_o satisfy_v our_o hunger_n and_o quench_v our_o thirst_n which_o be_v the_o manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o water_n out_o of_o the_o rock_n the_o fruit_n of_o this_o tree_n shall_v be_v for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o nation_n ezekiel_n say_v the_o leaf_n thereof_o shall_v be_v for_o medicine_n 12._o v._o 12._o that_o grace_n which_o shall_v be_v our_o food_n shall_v also_o supply_v the_o use_n of_o physic_n every_o one_o may_v see_v here_o a_o manifest_a allusion_n to_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n to_o its_o river_n and_o to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n that_o be_v there_o to_o denote_v that_o the_o church_n in_o this_o her_o last_o period_n shall_v be_v a_o true_a paradise_n where_o plenty_n and_o abundance_n of_o all_o blessing_n may_v be_v meet_v with_o it_o be_v of_o this_o reign_n and_o of_o this_o last_o period_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v we_o have_v already_o see_v how_o that_o chapter_n be_v a_o epitome_n of_o what_o shall_v befall_v the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o part_n we_o have_v a_o short_a account_n of_o the_o happy_a state_n of_o the_o church_n during_o the_o time_n of_o its_o purity_n in_o the_o second_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n be_v describe_v and_o the_o last_o persecution_n which_o the_o church_n shall_v suffer_v and_o in_o the_o three_o we_o have_v the_o glorious_a state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o she_o have_v subdue_v her_o enemy_n this_o be_v the_o prophecy_n v._o 15._o 11._o chap._n 11._o and_o the_o seven_o angel_n sound_v and_o there_o be_v great_a voice_n in_o heaven_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v become_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o christ_n and_o he_o shall_v reign_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o v._o 16._o and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n who_o sit_v before_o god_n on_o their_o seat_n fall_v upon_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god._n v._o 17._o say_v we_o give_v thou_o thanks_o o_o lord_n god_n almighty_a which_o art_n and_o waste_v and_o be_v to_o come_v because_o thou_o have_v take_v to_o thou_o thy_o great_a power_n and_o have_v reign_v v._o 18._o and_o the_o nation_n be_v angry_a and_o thy_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o that_o thou_o shall_v give_v reward_n unto_o thy_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o to_o the_o saint_n and_o they_o that_o fear_v thy_o name_n small_a and_o great_a and_o shall_v destroy_v they_o which_o destroy_v the_o earth_n v._o 19_o and_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v see_v in_o his_o temple_n the_o ark_n of_o his_o testament_n and_o there_o be_v lightning_n and_o voice_n and_o thundering_n and_o a_o earthquake_n and_o great_a hail_n we_o have_v observe_v that_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n follow_v upon_o the_o seven_o seal_n and_o be_v
not_o contemporary_a with_o they_o the_o seven_o seal_n carry_v the_o prophecy_n almost_o as_o far_o as_o the_o fall_n of_o paganism_n unto_o constantine_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n divide_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o time_n between_o constantine_n and_o his_o christian_a successor_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n and_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n that_o sound_v here_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o the_o last_o period_n which_o comprehend_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o world_n and_o particular_o that_o of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n or_o the_o papacy_n the_o seven_o angel_n sound_v and_o there_o be_v great_a voice_n these_o be_v voice_n of_o acclamation_n and_o joy_n that_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n be_v join_v to_o those_o voice_n signify_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n who_o sit_v before_o god_n on_o their_o seat_n fall_v upon_o their_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n say_v we_o give_v thou_o thanks_o o_o lord_n god_n almighty_a etc._n etc._n it_o be_v the_o song_n and_o subject_a matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n wherewith_o the_o holy_a people_n shall_v praise_v god_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n when_o god_n shall_v have_v subdue_v all_o their_o enemy_n observe_v here_o that_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o elder_n appear_v alone_o and_o begin_v the_o song_n whereas_o in_o the_o first_o vision_n the_o live_a creature_n begin_v the_o song_n and_o the_o elder_n follow_v follow_v they_o it_o be_v not_o to_o exclude_v the_o live_a creature_n and_o the_o ministry_n in_o the_o last_o period_n of_o the_o church_n but_o to_o signify_v that_o then_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v so_o fill_v with_o the_o divine_a spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o wait_v the_o inspiration_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n to_o engage_v they_o to_o praise_n god_n and_o perform_v holy_a duty_n the_o nation_n be_v angry_a and_o thy_o wrath_n in_o come_v i._n e._n the_o nation_n of_o the_o antichristian_a people_n have_v execute_v their_o malice_n and_o fury_n and_o thou_o have_v avenge_v it_o by_o destroy_v their_o empire_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v and_o that_o thou_o shall_v give_v reward_n unto_o thy_o servant_n the_o prophet_n and_o to_o the_o saint_n and_o they_o that_o fear_v thy_o name_n small_a and_o great_a this_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o last_o judgement_n or_o the_o last_o resurrection_n it_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n the_o deliverance_n of_o the_o church_n her_o come_n to_o the_o expect_a kingdom_n this_o be_v set_v forth_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o the_o 20_o chapter_n of_o the_o apocalypse_v as_o have_v be_v already_o see_v the_o time_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v judge_v he_o say_v not_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a or_o all_o the_o dead_a but_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n which_o lie_v as_o dead_a during_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n and_o shall_v rise_v again_o when_o that_o kingdom_n be_v destroy_v the_o dead_a shall_v be_v judge_v and_o how_o it_o be_v god_n will_v reward_v the_o faithful_a and_o the_o church_n by_o give_v they_o peace_n and_o a_o kingdom_n it_o be_v a_o judgement_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o beneficence_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o eternal_a reward_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o follow_v and_o to_o destroy_v those_o who_o destroy_v the_o earth_n which_o be_v not_o a_o proper_a term_n to_o signify_v eternal_a punishment_n wherein_o nothing_o be_v destroy_v man_n continue_v under_o they_o for_o ever_o so_o that_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n must_v be_v here_o mean_v v._o 19_o 11._o chap._n 11._o and_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v open_v in_o heaven_n and_o there_o be_v see_v in_o his_o temple_n the_o ark_n of_o his_o testament_n the_o ark_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o god_n covenant_n with_o the_o jew_n so_o this_o prophecy_n of_o the_o ark_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n signify_v the_o recall_v of_o the_o jew_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v open_a the_o church_n shall_v be_v open_a to_o all_o nation_n all_o people_n shall_v resort_v to_o it_o and_o among_o other_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o people_n who_o derive_v their_o glory_n from_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n chap._n xxiv_o the_o character_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o church_n eight_o be_v certain_a and_o five_o doubtful_a what_o shall_v happen_v after_o this_o kingdom_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o gog_n and_o magog_n there_o shall_v probable_o be_v a_o lesser_a kind_n of_o antichrist_n a_o little_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n have_v confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o reign_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n we_o ought_v now_o to_o consider_v the_o nature_n and_o character_n of_o it_o they_o may_v be_v divide_v into_o two_o class_n some_o that_o be_v doubtful_a and_o other_o certain_a it_o be_v fit_a that_o we_o begin_v with_o the_o certain_a we_o be_v not_o to_o reckon_v among_o the_o character_n of_o this_o reign_n either_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o babylonish_n empire_n or_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o remain_a gentile_n for_o these_o three_o thing_n be_v to_o go_v before_o it_o they_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v about_o but_o with_o confusion_n and_o tumult_n the_o popish_a empire_n can_v fall_v but_o it_o must_v cost_v blood_n and_o make_v a_o mighty_a noise_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n must_v needs_o be_v attend_v with_o great_a commotion_n among_o the_o people_n and_o it_o may_v be_v violent_a contradiction_n it_o be_v likewise_o impossible_a to_o conceive_v that_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n can_v be_v bring_v about_o without_o the_o utmost_a endeavour_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o hinder_v it_o he_o will_v raise_v all_o his_o force_n every_o where_o to_o hinder_v the_o last_o establishment_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o that_o we_o can_v doubt_v but_o he_o will_v cause_v great_a opposition_n not_o only_o by_o word_n but_o it_o may_v be_v blow_n now_o this_o can_v belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n whereof_o the_o principal_a character_n be_v sovereign_a peace_n insomuch_o that_o we_o thus_o conceive_v of_o it_o 1._o the_o papal_a empire_n shall_v fall_v 2._o after_o that_o some_o year_n will_v be_v necessary_a to_o abolish_v sect_n and_o party_n and_o compose_v the_o difference_n among_o christian_n 3._o that_o after_o this_o many_o heathen_a nation_n and_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v convert_v for_o it_o can_v be_v think_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v convert_v while_o christian_n be_v so_o much_o at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o and_o seek_v the_o destruction_n of_o one_o another_o 4._o after_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o remainder_n of_o the_o most_o remote_a nation_n shall_v also_o be_v convert_v now_o for_o all_o this_o there_o must_v be_v time_n for_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o god_n will_v act_v in_o a_o more_o miraculous_a manner_n in_o this_o than_o in_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o first_o christian_a church_n wherefore_o as_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v near_o a_o hundred_o year_n in_o its_o first_o settle_v no_o less_o will_v be_v necessary_a perfect_o to_o resettle_v it_o and_o then_o shall_v that_o bless_a kingdom_n come_v which_o we_o expect_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o probability_n that_o god_n may_v begin_v to_o compute_v the_o thousand_o year_n from_o the_o fall_n of_o antichrist_n even_o before_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o so_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o nation_n may_v in_o some_o sort_n be_v comprehend_v within_o the_o reign_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n but_o when_o we_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n we_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o in_o its_o perfection_n which_o will_v not_o be_v till_o after_o these_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o pass_v 29._o a_o extraordinary_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o first_o certain_a character_n chap._n 2.28_o 29._o the_o first_o certain_a character_n of_o this_o reign_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o plentiful_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n upon_o man_n the_o prophecy_n of_o joel_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v one_o of_o those_o which_o be_v but_o in_o part_n accomplish_v hitherto_o i_o will_v pour_v out_o my_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v your_o old_a man_n shall_v dream_v dream_n and_o your_o young_a man_n see_v vision_n also_o on_o the_o servant_n and_o the_o handmaid_n in_o those_o day_n will_v i_o pour_v out_o my_o spirit_n that_o lesser_a effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o the_o first_o christian_n experience_v be_v not_o enough_o to_o fill_v up_o the_o
17._o nor_o with_o babylon_n chap._n 18._o the_o father_n who_o live_v near_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o may_v be_v hear_v some_o discourse_n of_o this_o and_o that_o probable_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o mistake_n this_o be_v the_o most_o that_o can_v be_v say_v with_o any_o pretence_n of_o reason_n to_o excuse_v st._n irenaeus_n and_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_n who_o follow_v he_o in_o the_o description_n of_o antichrist_n gog_n and_o magog_n be_v name_n borrow_v from_o ezekiel_n which_o in_o my_o opinion_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o same_o people_n in_o both_o place_n here_o it_o denote_v in_o general_a the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o i_o know_v nothing_o concern_v it_o with_o any_o great_a certainty_n chap._n xxv_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o anti-millinaries_a against_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n according_a to_o the_o method_n of_o a_o regular_a disputation_n i_o come_v now_o to_o answer_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o anti-millinaries_a but_o most_o of_o they_o be_v so_o weak_a that_o they_o hardly_o deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v but_o that_o the_o mention_n of_o they_o will_v serve_v as_o a_o further_a proof_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o seven_o period_n for_o it_o be_v a_o very_a good_a argument_n for_o any_o opinion_n to_o be_v support_v on_o the_o one_o hand_n by_o powerful_a and_o weighty_a reason_n and_o to_o be_v oppose_v on_o the_o other_o by_o weak_a and_o slender_a one_o those_o gentleman_n have_v the_o plurality_n of_o voice_n on_o their_o side_n and_o be_v doubtless_o man_n of_o worth_n and_o learning_n it_o be_v nevertheless_o true_a that_o they_o have_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v bear_v down_o with_o the_o stream_n without_o much_o mind_v it_o judgement_n first_o objection_n christ_n not_o to_o come_v but_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 1._o first_o they_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o christ_n second_o come_v never_o speak_v of_o any_o other_o than_o that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v in_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n attend_v with_o angel_n and_o archangel_n to_o raise_v mankind_n and_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o dead_a whereas_o we_o suppose_v a_o kind_n of_o a_o clandestine_v come_v of_o christ_n to_o settle_v a_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n which_o the_o scripture_n know_v nothing_o of_o for_o it_o speak_v of_o no_o future_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v save_v that_o which_o he_o shall_v have_v in_o heaven_n after_o the_o distribution_n of_o eternal_a reward_n and_o punishment_n i_o answer_v 1._o these_o man_n suppose_v by_o this_o argument_n a_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n after_o the_o last_o judgement_n but_o there_o be_v no_o such_o kingdom_n neither_o shall_v there_o ever_o be_v any_o on_o the_o contrary_a st._n paul_n do_v express_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o shall_v then_o cease_v to_o reign_v and_o give_v up_o the_o kingdom_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o father_n 17._o 1_o cor._n 17._o so_o that_o since_o we_o be_v assure_v from_o scripture_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o reign_v it_o must_v be_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o mediator_n shall_v then_o be_v finish_v 2._o it_o be_v suppose_v in_o this_o objection_n that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o no_o more_o than_o one_o come_v of_o christ_n which_o shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n to_o summon_v the_o dead_a to_o judgement_n this_o be_v plain_o to_o suppose_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o those_o who_o have_v read_v the_o foregoing_a chapter_n with_o attention_n and_o without_o prejudice_n will_v still_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o first_o come_v of_o christ_n and_o it_o may_v be_v a_o first_o resurrection_n 3._o last_o who_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o this_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o establish_v his_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o that_o manner_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o archangel_n and_o in_o great_a magnificence_n and_o glory_n who_o can_v prove_v that_o at_o that_o first_o come_v of_o christ_n he_o shall_v not_o raise_v some_o of_o the_o dead_a as_o st._n john_n seem_v express_o to_o have_v foretold_v all_o the_o little_a reason_n pretend_v from_o conveniency_n and_o inconveniency_n which_o be_v here_o allege_v will_v have_v much_o ado_n to_o resist_v the_o evidence_n of_o so_o express_v a_o text_n and_o of_o that_o matth._n 19_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o in_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n you_o shall_v also_o sit_v on_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n world_n 2._o object_n christ_n be_v to_o remain_v in_o heaven_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o the_o next_o thing_n allege_v be_v that_o the_o heaven_n be_v to_o contain_v jesus_n christ_n till_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o they_o say_v be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v confine_v to_o heaven_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o consequent_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o settle_v a_o kingdom_n upon_o earth_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n must_v stay_v in_o heaven_n till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n may_v he_o not_o destroy_v his_o enemy_n give_v peace_n to_o his_o church_n and_o govern_v it_o in_o peace_n by_o his_o prophet_n and_o servant_n without_o come_v in_o person_n from_o heaven_n moreover_o in_o case_n our_o lord_n shall_v for_o a_o short_a space_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o establish_v a_o kingdom_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o to_o give_v his_o seal_n to_o the_o conversion_n of_o all_o nation_n by_o some_o glorious_a apparition_n return_v back_o to_o heaven_n immediate_o after_o may_v it_o not_o be_v say_v notwithstanding_o this_o that_o the_o heaven_n shall_v contain_v he_o till_o the_o end_n of_o time_n so_o small_a a_o interruption_n of_o his_o abode_n in_o heaven_n can_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o heaven_n may_v still_o be_v reckon_v the_o place_n of_o his_o abode_n last_o how_o will_v they_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o end_n be_v represent_v as_o the_o overturning_a and_o not_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o heaven_n the_o star_n the_o element_n shall_v be_v burn_v up_o and_o destroy_v by_o fire_n it_o be_v true_a after_o this_o there_o shall_v be_v new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v more_o frequent_o describe_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o a_o universal_a confusion_n and_o overturning_a than_o by_o the_o new_a heaven_n which_o shall_v follow_v and_o the_o new_a heaven_n in_o most_o place_n of_o scripture_n signify_v the_o renovation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o its_o last_o period_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n so_o that_o i_o hardly_o make_v any_o doubt_n but_o that_o by_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n chap._n 8._o act_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v the_o establishment_n of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n church_n 3._o argum._n peace_n and_o prosperity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v the_o lot_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o three_o argument_n of_o the_o antimillenaries_a be_v this_o that_o such_o a_o state_n of_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n as_o we_o promise_v to_o the_o church_n do_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v with_o what_o the_o h._n scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n that_o the_o church_n and_o the_o faithful_a be_v always_o to_o meet_v with_o in_o this_o world._n 1._o ought_v not_o this_o to_o be_v mutual_o grant_v that_o the_o whole_a be_v to_o be_v denominate_v from_o the_o major_a part_n for_o six_o thousand_o year_n the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v persecute_v and_o in_o a_o low_a condition_n and_o in_o a_o seven_o period_n she_o shall_v have_v rest_n and_o shall_v we_o count_v it_o strange_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n speak_v of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n here_o below_o as_o a_o low_a and_o miserable_a condition_n and_o that_o he_o say_v very_o little_a of_o her_o state_n of_o glory_n since_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o first_o and_o second_o state_n be_v as_o six_o to_o one_o 2._o i_o answer_v that_o they_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v not_o true_a viz._n that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v always_o in_o a_o state_n of_o suffer_v on_o the_o contrary_a more_o place_n can_v be_v bring_v wherein_o her_o prosperity_n and_o peace_n be_v promise_v than_o of_o those_o where_o she_o be_v threaten_v with_o calamity_n and_o persecution_n we_o may_v see_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o
in_o the_o precede_a chapter_n where_o i_o have_v show_v that_o empire_n and_o a_o kingdom_n peace_n and_o prosperity_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o have_v never_o hitherto_o be_v fulfil_v corrupt_a object_n when_o christ_n shall_v come_v the_o church_n shall_v be_v most_o corrupt_a 4._o after_o this_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o god_n describe_v those_o time_n which_o shall_v immediate_o precede_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n instead_o of_o represent_v they_o as_o a_o golden_a age_n they_o be_v paint_v out_o as_o a_o age_n of_o iron_n and_o darkness_n iniquity_n shall_v abound_v the_o love_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v cold_a false_a prophet_n and_o false_a christ_n shall_v arise_v they_o shall_v work_v sign_n and_o wonder_n to_o deceive_v if_o possible_a the_o very_a elect._n 12.24.37_o math._n 24._o v._n 12.24.37_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v 8._o luke_n 18._o c._n 8._o he_o shall_v not_o find_v faith_n upon_o earth_n and_o 2_o ep._n thessaly_n 2._o chap._n it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n shall_v destroy_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n but_o all_o this_o be_v ground_v on_o a_o false_a supposition_n viz._n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o other_o come_v of_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o last_o &_o final_a judgement_n which_o be_v not_o true_a the_o come_n of_o christ_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o to_o settle_v the_o peace_n and_o glory_n and_o kingdom_n of_o his_o church_n and_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a that_o this_o be_v mean_v in_o almost_o all_o the_o passage_n where_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v speak_v of_o it_o be_v true_a that_o when_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o destroy_v the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n he_o shall_v not_o find_v true_a faith_n upon_o earth_n that_o be_v very_o little_a of_o it_o experience_n confirm_v this_o for_o we_o be_v now_o in_o that_o very_a time_n far_o when_o christ_n shall_v come_v the_o three_o and_o last_o time_n for_o the_o last_o judgement_n it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a scarcity_n of_o faith_n &_o piety_n in_o the_o world_n at_o that_o time_n for_o gog_n and_o magog_n shall_v be_v increase_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o great_a seduction_n upon_o earth_n and_o a_o great_a affliction_n upon_o the_o church_n so_o that_o these_o prophecy_n shall_v have_v their_o accomplishment_n whenever_o christ_n come_v they_o be_v fulfil_v at_o his_o first_o come_n when_o he_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o church_n be_v then_o exceed_o corrupt_v and_o so_o at_o his_o second_o come_v when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o destroy_v the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n for_o in_o our_o day_n there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a corruption_n and_o shall_v be_v at_o his_o three_o come_n for_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o insurrection_n against_o the_o church_n and_o against_o the_o son_n of_o god._n unknown_a 5._o object_n the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v not_o then_o be_v unknown_a 5._o it_o will_v far_o follow_v say_v these_o gentleman_n that_o the_o hour_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v not_o then_o be_v unknown_a as_o our_o lord_n j._n christ_n have_v say_v it_o be_v for_o if_o just_a after_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o antichristian_a empire_n the_o reign_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n must_v take_v place_n we_o likewise_o know_v that_o at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n shall_v be_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n first_o you_o must_v know_v that_o our_o lord_n j._n christ_n say_v not_o that_o the_o day_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n shall_v be_v always_o conceal_v he_o only_o say_v that_o no_o man_n then_o know_v it_o concern_v that_o day_n say_v he_o know_v not_o man._n that_o depend_v on_o the_o fix_v the_o time_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n for_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n now_o no_o man_n know_v for_o certain_a at_o that_o time_n when_o the_o 1260_o year_n shall_v begin_v god_n do_v not_o permit_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v well_o know_v till_o this_o last_o age_n which_o be_v as_o also_o the_o last_o of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n for_o 1260_o year_n moreover_o after_o have_v well_o fix_v the_o epocha_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o antichrist_n that_o we_o may_v discover_v his_o end_n yet_o can_v we_o not_o thereby_o come_v to_o the_o exact_a knowledge_n of_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n 1._o because_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o thousand_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o church_n must_v begin_v just_a at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 1260_o year_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n we_o may_v say_v the_o contrary_a without_o say_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v improbable_a that_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compute_v but_o from_o the_o complete_a establishment_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 2._o we_o can_v tell_v whether_o the_o period_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v to_o be_v exact_o so_o much_o neither_o more_o or_o less_o for_o the_o h._n ghost_n be_v not_o so_o critical_a and_o precise_a and_o often_o make_v use_n of_o a_o round_a and_o certain_a number_n to_o signify_v one_o that_o be_v uncertain_a unless_o when_o he_o make_v use_v of_o a_o break_a number_n as_o three_o and_o half_a for_o than_o we_o can_v doubt_v but_o we_o be_v to_o reckon_v exact_o so_o much_o so_o that_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v always_o doubtful_a we_o can_v never_o know_v the_o precise_a time_n of_o the_o judgement_n day_n while_n 6._o object_n the_o world_n will_v then_o last_v a_o long_a while_n 6._o after_o this_o they_o say_v that_o if_o the_o church_n must_v reign_v a_o thousand_o year_n on_o earth_n the_o world_n be_v yet_o to_o last_v for_o a_o long_a time_n which_o be_v not_o likely_a it_o shall_v because_o the_o apostle_n even_o in_o their_o day_n speak_v of_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o a_o thing_n approach_v and_o near_o at_o hand_n we_o be_v in_o the_o last_o time_n say_v st._n paul._n the_o come_n of_o i._o christ_n be_v at_o hand_n say_v st._n james_n my_o littie_n child_n it_o be_v the_o last_o time_n say_v st._n john._n they_o ought_v to_o confess_v that_o these_o passage_n make_v against_o they_o instead_o of_o be_v for_o they_o the_o apostle_n call_v their_o day_n the_o last_o time_n and_o the_o last_o hour_n and_o yet_o almost_o two_o thousand_o year_n have_v pass_v since_o those_o text_n therefore_o must_v not_o be_v take_v in_o too_o rigid_a a_o sense_n we_o have_v spend_v one_o chapter_n on_o purpose_n in_o this_o book_n to_o explain_v those_o passage_n resurrection_n 7._o object_n the_o scripture_n speak_v but_o of_o one_o resurrection_n 7._o last_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n at_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n j._n christ_n all_o the_o dead_a must_v be_v raise_v at_o once_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o wicked_a which_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o supposition_n of_o the_o millenaries_n who_o will_v make_v one_o part_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o rise_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o the_o rest_n at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o but_o how_o can_v any_o one_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o when_o it_o speak_v the_o quite_o contrary_a that_o one_o part_n of_o the_o dead_a must_v rise_v first_o which_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n and_o that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o to_o rise_v till_o the_o thousand_o year_n be_v fullfil_v there_o be_v some_o passage_n it_o be_v true_a wherein_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o good_a and_o bad_a be_v speak_v of_o as_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o so_o it_o shall_v according_o be_v for_o this_o first_o resurrection_n will_v be_v but_o of_o a_o very_a few_o viz._n of_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n the_o remainder_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v not_o be_v raise_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world._n many_o dead_a be_v rise_v with_o christ_n when_o he_o rise_v and_o be_v certain_o with_o he_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o heaven_n notwithstanding_o this_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o all_o the_o dead_a as_o a_o thing_n defer_v and_o adjourn_v to_o the_o last_o day_n because_o one_o little_a exception_n destroy_v not_o a_o general_a rule_n it_o be_v strange_a that_o these_o gentleman_n find_v so_o much_o difficulty_n in_o this_o first_o resurrection_n methinks_v they_o shall_v remember_v the_o many_o saint_n who_o be_v raise_v with_o christ_n why_o may_v not_o christ_n raise_v some_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n saint_n at_o the_o come_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o raise_v some_o of_o the_o ancient_a patriarch_n when_o he_o rise_v from_o the_o grave_a however_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o i_o have_v say_v on_o this_o subject_n of_o that_o first_o resurrection_n i_o once_o again_o declare_v that_o i_o be_o not_o solliciton_n to_o decide_v it_o therefore_o i_o have_v and_o do_v again_o place_v it_o among_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v doubtful_a i_o be_o inform_v that_o the_o learned_a and_o famous_a prof._n mr._n witsius_n of_o vtrecht_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o declare_v his_o mind_n on_o this_o subject_n in_o some_o public_a lecture_n i_o be_o tell_v that_o he_o agree_v with_o i_o concern_v a_o great_a change_n which_o be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n with_o respect_n to_o manner_n union_n in_o doctrine_n and_o the_o spread_a of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o well_o among_o the_o jew_n as_o among_o the_o nation_n which_o as_o yet_o be_v pagan_a he_o be_v also_o willing_a 17_o de_fw-fr x_o tribubus_fw-la israelis_fw-la c._n 9_o 9_o 1._o &_o cap_n 11._o 11._o 17_o that_o the_o jew_n shall_v hope_v to_o return_v to_o their_o own_o land_n and_o rebuild_v jerusalem_n i_o will_v ask_v no_o more_o and_o be_o more_o rejoy_v to_o meet_v with_o the_o concurrence_n of_o so_o great_a a_o man_n in_o that_o which_o be_v essential_a than_o i_o can_v be_v trouble_v that_o he_o differ_v from_o i_o concern_v that_o first_o resurrection_n for_o i_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o i_o meet_v with_o very_o great_a difficulty_n about_o it_o but_o when_o i_o look_v upon_o it_o on_o that_o side_n and_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o i_o have_v represent_v it_o i_o find_v it_o to_o be_v very_o probable_a nevertheless_o i_o be_o far_o from_o be_v full_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o as_o i_o be_o concern_v those_o article_n wherein_o we_o two_o agree_v these_o i_o think_v be_v all_o the_o objection_n wherewith_o these_o gentleman_n oppose_v we_o for_o i_o regard_v not_o what_o they_o say_v when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o reign_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v a_o jewish_a vision_n a_o fancy_n derive_v from_o the_o impure_a fountain_n of_o their_o tradition_n this_o be_v to_o declaim_v and_o not_o to_o prove_v it_o be_v not_o impossible_a but_o there_o may_v remain_v something_o that_o be_v good_a among_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n at_o least_o st._n paul_n and_o st._n jude_n believe_v so_o the_o first_o learn_v from_o their_o tradition_n the_o name_n of_o the_o magician_n of_o egypt_n who_o oppose_v moses_n and_o likewise_o those_o word_n of_o moses_n i_o exceed_o quake_v and_o fear_n which_o we_o no_o where_n read_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o st._n jude_n learn_v from_o thence_o the_o combat_n of_o michael_n the_o archangel_n with_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n also_o the_o prophecy_n of_o enoch_n they_o urge_v likewise_o against_o we_o a_o multitude_n of_o ancient_a and_o modern_a author_n but_o i_o have_v rather_o give_v credit_n to_o justin_n martyr_n and_o papias_n who_o may_v have_v see_v st._n john_n than_o to_o all_o those_o who_o have_v write_v since_o god_n have_v his_o particular_a reason_n why_o he_o will_v not_o that_o the_o prophecy_n shall_v be_v understand_v in_o every_o age._n finis_fw-la
that_o the_o destroy_a angel_n of_o spiritual_n egypt_n may_v pass_v over_o they_o &_o spare_v they_o and_o they_o be_v to_o be_v seal_v before_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n sound_v because_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o happen_v under_o these_o seven_o trumpet_n thus_o you_o have_v the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o the_o 7_o ch._n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 8_o ch._n after_o the_o open_v the_o seven_o seal_n there_o be_v silence_n for_o about_o half_a a_o hour_n plain_o by_o way_n of_o allusion_n to_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o temple_n where_o while_o the_o incense_n be_v offer_v the_o music_n cease_v &_o all_o be_v in_o silence_n the_o seven_o trumpet_n be_v give_v to_o seven_o angel_n every_o thing_n be_v make_v ready_a for_o the_o sound_n of_o these_o trumpet_n the_o first_o angel_n sound_v 8_o ●_o 8_o &_o there_o follow_v hail_o &_o fire_n mingle_v with_o blood_n &_o they_o be_v cast_v on_o the_o earth_n &_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v burn_v up_o &_o all_o green_a grass_n be_v burn_v up_o the_o seven_o trumpet_n continue_v to_o concern_v the_o roman_a empire_n as_o the_o seven_o seal_n have_v do_v the_o first_o trumpet_n begin_v where_o the_o six_o seal_v end_v the_o six_o seal_n bring_v the_o roman_a empire_n to_o the_o total_a fall_n of_o paganism_n which_o happen_v under_o the_o two_o theodosius_n father_n &_o son_n barbarian_n the_o first_o trumpet_n begin_v under_o theodosius_n the_o young_a &_o signify_v the_o first_o eruption_n of_o the_o barbarian_n the_o first_o trumpet_n than_o must_v begin_v at_o the_o same_o time_n hail_v mingle_v with_o fire_n &_o blood_n fall_v on_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v be_v a_o lively_a &_o good_a representation_n of_o the_o inundation_n of_o those_o barbarous_a people_n who_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o theodosius_n the_o young_a come_v out_o of_o thrace_n under_o the_o conduct_n of_o alaric_n &_o ravage_v first_o of_o all_o macedonia_n thessaly_n greece_n achaia_n corinth_n argos_n sparta_n epirus_n &_o italy_n itself_o afterward_o &_o about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o vandal_n the_o alane_n the_o marcoman_o the_o herule_v the_o sueve_n the_o allemans_n possess_v &_o desolate_v gaul_n spain_n &_o africa_n it_o be_v a_o hail_n mingle_v with_o fire_n &_o blood_n for_o these_o barbarous_a people_n fall_v on_o like_o a_o storm_n of_o hail_n with_o violence_n &_o in_o a_o sudden_a manner_n the_o carry_v fire_v every_o where_o &_o bathe_v the_o earth_n with_o blood_n 32.19_o be_v 28.2_o &_o ●0_n 3._o &_o 32.19_o we_o may_v see_v hail_n use_v for_o the_o like_a inundation_n of_o strange_a people_n in_o divers_a place_n of_o the_o prophet_n so_o be_v the_o come_n of_o salmanassar_n &_o his_o assyrian_n express_v by_o the_o prophet_n esay_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v burn_v empire_n the_o three_o part_n signify_v the_o roman_a empire_n it_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o this_o three_o part_n appear_v again_o in_o all_o the_o trumpet_n &_o this_o three_o part_n certain_o signify_v the_o roman_a empire_n the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v evident_a it_o be_v because_o this_o empire_n do_v possess_v &_o do_v still_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world._n geographer_n divide_v the_o world_n into_o three_o part_n europe_n asia_n &_o africa_n the_o roman_a empire_n take_v up_o one_o of_o these_o three_o part_n viz._n europe_n so_o that_o when_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o the_o several_a plague_n of_o the_o trumpet_n afflict_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v they_o afflict_v europe_n it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o roman_a empire_n extend_v itself_o also_o into_o asia_n &_o africa_n but_o one_a there_o be_v also_o in_o europe_n a_o great_a extent_n of_o northern_a country_n that_o be_v not_o possess_v by_o the_o roman_n so_o that_o what_o it_o have_v in_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n can_v only_o serve_v as_o a_o equivalent_a for_o what_o it_o have_v not_o in_o europe_n so_o that_o it_o always_o remain_v true_a that_o the_o roman_a empire_n do_v not_o reach_v to_o above_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n 2_o moreover_o europe_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n because_o rome_n &_o constantinople_n be_v both_o of_o they_o seat_v in_o this_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v clear_v the_o roman_a empire_n can_v be_v better_a represent_v than_o by_o europe_n or_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n last_o it_o be_v europe_n chief_v that_o be_v harrass_v by_o the_o inundation_n of_o the_o barbarous_a people_n therefore_o by_o the_o three_o part_n we_o can_v understand_v any_o thing_n but_o europe_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n be_v burn_v see_v here_o a_o grammatical_a figure_n that_o must_v be_v well_o observe_v for_o it_o be_v much_o use_v in_o the_o three_o follow_a trumpet_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o tree_n of_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n viz._n of_o europe_n be_v burn_v now_o the_o prophet_n represent_v this_o first_o inundation_n of_o the_o babarian_o as_o have_v yet_o afflict_v the_o tree_n only_o of_o europe_n or_o the_o roman_a empire_n because_o the_o follow_a plague_n make_v so_o very_a much_o great_a havoc_n this_o first_o tempest_n if_o i_o may_v use_v the_o expression_n touch_v the_o tree_n only_o do_v not_o cause_v such_o terrible_a desolation_n as_o the_o follow_a one_o do_v the_o barbarian_n content_v themselves_o with_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o man_n good_n and_o the_o second_o angel_n sound_v 8._o v._o 8._o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mountain_n burn_v with_o fire_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n &_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o sea_n become_v blood_n and_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v in_o the_o sea_n 9_o v._o 9_o &_o have_v life_n die_v &_o three_o part_n of_o the_o ship_n be_v destroy_v and_o the_o three_o angel_n sound_v 10._o v._o 10._o &_o there_o fall_v a_o great_a star_n from_o heaven_n burn_v as_o it_o be_v a_o lamp_n &_o it_o fall_v on_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o river_n &_o upon_o the_o fountain_n of_o water_n and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o star_n be_v call_v wormwood_n 11._o v._o 11._o &_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o water_n become_v wormwood_n &_o many_o man_n die_v of_o the_o water_n because_o they_o be_v make_v bitter_a empire_n the_o second_o &_o three_o trumpet_n signify_v the_o effusion_n of_o blood_n &_o the_o bitter_a affliction_n which_o the_o barbarian_n cause_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n these_o two_o plague_n of_o the_o second_o &_o the_o three_o trumpet_n be_v very_o like_o those_o two_o of_o the_o second_o &_o three_o viol_n in_o the_o 16_o ch._n of_o the_o revelation_n for_o in_o this_o late_a place_n the_o two_o vial_n fall_v as_o they_o do_v here_o on_o the_o sea_n &_o the_o river_n they_o produce_v the_o same_o effect_n which_o be_v that_o they_o turn_v the_o water_n into_o blood_n &_o into_o liquor_n of_o wormwood_n the_o second_o &_o three_o vial_n be_v but_o one_o plague_n continue_v so_o the_o second_o &_o three_o trumpet_n be_v but_o one_o &_o the_o same_o plague_n continue_v so_o that_o these_o two_o place_n of_o the_o revelation_n may_v give_v much_o light_a one_o to_o the_o other_o not_o that_o they_o signfy_v the_o same_o event_n but_o very_o like_a one_o 19.5_o see._n jer._n 51.36.44_o ezek._n 31_o 4._o be_v 19.5_o in_o the_o one_o &_o in_o the_o other_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o sea_n &_o the_o river_n signify_v people_n it_o be_v the_o resemblance_n &_o emblem_n which_o all_o the_o prophet_n use_n &_o particular_o st._n john._n we_o shall_v see_v the_o whore_n sit_v on_o the_o water_n i.e._n on_o the_o people_n for_o in_o all_o language_n in_o the_o style_n of_o the_o vulgar_a in_o that_o of_o orator_n &_o prophet_n to_o make_v a_o sea_n of_o blood_n always_o signify_v to_o make_v a_o great_a slaughter_n we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o sea_n of_o blood_n in_o the_o 16_o ch._n signify_v the_o great_a slaughter_v cause_v by_o the_o crusado_n here_o the_o sea_n of_o blood_n signify_v the_o slaughter_n which_o the_o barbarian_n make_v in_o the_o whole_a extent_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n this_o mountain_n burn_v like_o fire_n &_o this_o great_a star_n like_o a_o lamp_n at_o the_o bottom_n signify_v but_o one_o &_o the_o same_o thing_n except_v that_o the_o mountain_n of_o fire_n have_v the_o same_o proportion_n with_o the_o star_n like_o a_o lamp_n as_o the_o sea_n have_v with_o the_o river_n the_o mountain_n of_o fire_n fall_v into_o the_o sea_n the_o star_n or_o the_o great_a lamp_n of_o fire_n fall_v into_o the_o river_n i._n e._n the_o great_a fire_n fall_v into_o the_o great_a water_n &_o the_o lesser_a fire_n